CHAPTER NINETEEN
THE HUNGARIAN HORNTAIL
The prospect of talking face-to-face with Sirius was all that
sustained Harry over the next fortnight, the only bright spot on a horizon
that had never looked darker. The shock of finding himself school
champion had worn off slightly now, and the fear of what was facing him
had started to sink in. The first task was draw-ing steadily nearer;
he felt as though it were crouching ahead of him hike some horrific monster,
barring his path. He had never suf-fered nerves like these; they
were way beyond anything he had ex-perienced before a Quidditch match,
not even his last one against Slytherin, which had decided who would win
the Quidditch Cup. Harry was finding it hard to think about the future
at all; he felt as though his whole life had been heading up to, and would
finish with, the first task.
Admittedly, he didn't see how Sirius was going to make him feel any
better about having to perform an unknown piece of difficult and dangerous
magic in front of hundreds of people, but the mere sight of a friendly
face would be something at the moment. Harry wrote back to Sirius
saying that he would be beside the common room fire at the time Sirius
had suggested; and he and Hermione spent a long time going over plans for
forcing any stragglers out of the common room on the night in question.
If the worst came to the worst, they were going to drop a bag of Dungbombs,
but they hoped they wouldn't have to resort to that - Filch would skin
them alive.
In the meantime, life became even worse for Harry within the confines
of the castle, for Rita Skeeter had published her piece about the Triwizard
Tournament, and it had turned out to be not so much a report on the tournament
as a highly colored life story of Harry. Much of the front page had been
given over to a picture of Harry; the article (continuing on pages two,
six, and seven) had been all about Harry, the names of the Beauxbatons
and Durm-strang champions (misspelled) had been squashed into the last
line of the article, and Cedric hadn't been mentioned at all.
The article had appeared ten days ago, and Harry still got a sick,
burning feeling of shame in his stomach every time he thought about it.
Rita Skeeter had reported him saying an awful lot of things that he couldn't
remember ever saying in his life, let alone in that broom cupboard.
I suppose I get my strength from my parents. I know they'd be very proud of me if they could see me now. . . . Yes, sometimes at night I still cry about them, I'm not ashamed to admit it. . . . I know nothing will hurt me during the tournament, because they're watching over me. . .
But Rita Skeeter had gone even further than transforming his "er's" into long, sickly sentences: She had interviewed other people about him too.
Harry has at last found love at Hogwarts. His close friend, Colin Creevey, says that Harry is rarely seen out of the company of one Hermione Granger, a stunningly pretty Muggle-born girl who, like Harry, is one of the top students in the school.
From the moment the article had appeared, Harry had had to endure people
--Slytherins, mainly -- quoting it at him ass he passed and making sneering
comments.
"Want a hanky, Potter, in case you start crying in Transfig-uration?"
"Since when have you been one of the top students in the school, Potter?
Or is this a school you and Longbottom have set up together?"
"Hey - Harry!"
"Yeah, that's right!" Harry found himself shouting as he wheeled
around in the corridor, having had just about enough. "I've just
been crying my eyes out over my dead mum, and I'm just off to do a bit
more. . .
"No - it was just - you dropped your quill."
It was Cho. Harry felt the color rising in his face.
"Oh - right - sorry," he muttered, taking the quill back.
"Er. . . good luck on Tuesday," she said. "I really hope you
do well."
Which left Harry feeling extremely stupid.
Hermione had come in for her fair share of unpleasantness too, but
she hadn't yet started yelling at innocent bystanders; in fact, Harry was
full of admiration for the way she was handling the situation.
"Stunningly pretty? Her?" Pansy Parkinson had shrieked the first
time she had come face-to-face with Hermione after Rita's article had appeared.
"What was she judging against - a chipmunk?"
"Ignore it," Hermione said in a dignified voice, holding her head in
the air and stalking past the sniggering Slytherin girls as though she
couldn't hear them. "Just ignore it, Harry."
But Harry couldn't ignore it. Ron hadn't spoken to him at all
since he had told him about Snape's detentions. Harry had half hoped
they would make things up during the two hours they were forced to pickle
rats' brains in Snape's dungeon, but that had been the day Rita's article
had appeared, which seemed to have con-firmed Ron's belief that Harry was
really enjoying all the attention.
Hermione was furious with the pair of them; she went from one to the
other, trying to force them to talk to each other, but Harry was adamant:
He would talk to Ron again only if Ron admitted that Harry hadn't put his
name in the Goblet of Fire and apolo-gized for calling him a liar.
"I didn't start this," Harry said stubbornly. "It's his problem."
"You miss him!" Hermione said impatiently. "And I know
he misses you -"
"Miss him?" said Harry. "I don't miss him. . .
But this was a downright lie. Harry liked Hermione very much,
but she just wasn't the same as Ron. There was much hess laughter
and a lot more hanging around in the library when Hermione was your best
friend. Harry still hadn't mastered Summoning Charms, he seemed to
have developed something of a block about them, and Hermione insisted that
learning the theory would help. They consequently spent a lot of
time poring over books during their lunchtimes.
Viktor Krum was in the library an awful lot too, and Harry wondered
what he was up to. Was he studying, or was he looking for things
to help him through the first task? Hermione often com-plained about
Krum being there - not that he ever bothered them - but because groups
of giggling girls often turned up to spy on him from behind bookshelves,
and Hermione found the noise distracting.
"He's not even good-looking!" she muttered angrily, glaring at
Krum's sharp profile. "They only like him because he's famous! They
wouldn't look twice at him if he couldn't do that Wonky-Faint thing -"
"Wronski Feint," said Harry, through gritted teeth. Quite apart
from liking to get Quidditch terms correct, it caused him another pang
to imagine Ron's expression if he could have heard Hermione talking about
Wonky-Faints.
It is a strange thing, but when you are dreading something, and would
give anything to slow down time, it has a disobliging habit of speeding
up. The days until the first task seemed to slip by as though someone
had fixed the clocks to work at double speed. Harry's feeling of
barely controlled panic was with him wherever he went, as everpresent as
the snide comments about the Daily Prophet article.
On the Saturday before the first task, all students in the third year
and above were permitted to visit the village of Hogsmeade. Hermione
told Harry that it would do him good to get away from the castle for a
bit, and Harry didn't need much persuasion.
"What about Ron, though?" he said. "Don't you want to go
with him?"
"Oh. . . well.. ." Hermione went slightly pink. "I thought
we might meet up with him in the Three Broomsticks. . . ."
"No," said Harry flatly.
"Oh Harry, this is so stupid -"
"I'll come, but I'm not meeting Ron, and I'm wearing my Invis-ibility
Cloak."
"Oh all right then. . ." Hermione snapped, "but I hate talking
to you in that cloak, I never know if I'm looking at you or not."
So Harry put on his Invisibility Cloak in the dormitory, went back
downstairs, and together he and Hermione set off for Hogsmeade.
Harry felt wonderfully free under the cloak; he watched other students
walking past them as they entered the village, most of them sporting Support
Cedric Diggory! badges, but no horrible re-marks came his way for
a change, and nobody was quoting that stupid article.
"People keep looking at me now," said Hermione grumpily as they came
out of Honeydukes Sweetshop later, eating large cream-filled chocolates.
"They think I'm talking to myself."
"Don't move your lips so much then."
"Come on, please just take off your cloak for a bit, no one's go-ing
to bother you here."
"Oh yeah?" said Harry. "Look behind you."
Rita Skeeter and her photographer friend had just emerged from the
Three Broomsticks pub. Talking in low voices, they passed right by
Hermione without hooking at her. Harry backed into the wall of Honeydukes
to stop Rita Skeeter from hitting him with her crocodile-skin handbag.
When they were gone, Harry said, "She's staying in the village. I
bet she's coming to watch the first task."
As he said it, his stomach flooded with a wave of molten panic.
He didn't mention this; he and Hermione hadn't discussed what was coming
in the first task much; he had the feeling she didn't want to think about
it.
"She's gone," said Hermione, looking right through Harry to-ward the
end of the street. "Why don't we go and have a butterbeer in the Three
Broomsticks, it's a bit cold, isn't it? You don't have to talk to
Ron!" she added irritably, correctly interpreting his silence.
The Three Broomsticks was packed, mainly with Hogwarts stu-dents enjoying
their free afternoon, but also with a variety of mag-ical people Harry
rarely saw anywhere else. Harry supposed that as Hogsmeade was the only
all-wizard village in Britain, it was a bit of a haven for creatures like
hags, who were not as adept as wizards at disguising themselves.
It was very hard to move through crowds in the Invisibility Cloak,
in case you accidentally trod on someone, which tended to lead to awkward
questions. Harry edged slowly toward a spare table in the corner
while Hermione went to buy drinks. On his way through the pub, Harry
spotted Ron, who was sitting with Fred, George, and Lee Jordan. Resisting
the urge to give Ron a good hard poke in the back of the head, he finally
reached the table and sat down at it.
Hermione joined him a moment later and slipped him a butter-beer under
his cloak.
"I look like such an idiot, sitting here on my own," she mut-tered.
"Lucky I brought something to do."
And she pulled out a notebook in which she had been keeping a record
of S.P.E.W. members. Harry saw his and Ron's names at the top of
the very short list. It seemed a long time ago that they had sat
making up those predictions together, and Hermione had turned up and appointed
them secretary and treasurer.
"You know, maybe I should try and get some of the villagers in-volved
in S.P.E.W.," Hermione said thoughtfully, looking around the pub.
"Yeah, right," said Harry. He took a swig of butterbeer under
his cloak. "Hermione, when are you going to give up on this spew
stuff?"
"When house-elves have decent wages and working conditions!"
she hissed back. "You know, I'm starting to think it's time for more direct
action. I wonder how you get into the school kitchens?"
"No idea, ask Fred and George," said Harry.
Hermione lapsed into thoughtful silence, while Harry drank his butterbeer,
watching the people in the pub. All of them looked cheerful and relaxed.
Ernie Macmillan and Hannah Abbot were swapping Chocolate Frog cards at
a nearby table; both of them sporting Support Cedric Diggory! badges on
their cloaks. Right over by the door he saw Cho and a large group
of her Ravenclaw friends. She wasn't wearing a Cedric badge though.
. . . This cheered up Harry very slightly.
What wouldn't he have given to be one of these peophe, sitting around
laughing and talking, with nothing to worry about but homework? He
imagined how it would have felt to be here if his name hadn't come out
of the Goblet of Fire. He wouldn't be wearing the Invisibility Cloak,
for one thing. Ron would be sitting with him. The three of
them would probably be happily imagining what deadly dangerous task the
school champions would be facing on Tuesday. He'd have been really
hooking forward to it, watching them do whatever it was...cheering on Cedric
with everyone else, safe in a seat at the back of the stands...
He wondered how the other champions were feeling. Every time
he had seen Cedric lately, he had been surrounded by admirers and looking
nervous but excited. Harry glimpsed Fleur Delacour from time to time
in the corridors; she looked exactly as she always did, haughty and unruffled.
And Krum just sat in the library, poring over books.
Harry thought of Sirius, and the tight, tense knot in his chest seemed
to ease slightly. He would be speaking to him in just over twelve
hours, for tonight was the night they were meeting at the common room fire
- assuming nothing went wrong, as every-thinng else had done lately...
"Look, it's Hagrid!" said Hermione.
The back of Hagrid's enormous shaggy head - he had merci-fully abandoned
his bunches - emerged over the crowd. Harry wondered why he hadn't
spotted him at once, as Hagrid was so large, but standing up carefully,
he saw that Hagrid had been lean-ing low, talking to Professor Moody.
Hagrid had his usual enor-mous tankard in front of him, but Moody was drinking
from his hip flask. Madam Rosmerta, the pretty landlady, didn't seem
to think much of this; she was looking askance at Moody as she col-lected
glasses from tables around them. Perhaps she thought it was an insult to
her mulled mead, but Harry knew better. Moody had told them all during
their last Defense Against the Dark Arts lesson that he preferred to prepare
his own food and drink at all times, as it was so easy for Dark wizards
to poison an unattended cup.
As Harry watched, he saw Hagrid and Moody get up to leave. He
waved, then remembered that Hagrid couldn't see him. Moody, however,
paused, his magical eye on the corner where Harry was standing. He
tapped Hagrid in the small of the back (being unable to reach his shoulder),
muttered something to him, and then the pair of them made their way back
across the pub toward Harry and Hermione's table.
"All right, Hermione?" said Hagrid loudly.
"Hello," said Hermione, smiling back.
Moody limped around the table and bent down; Harry thought he was reading
the S.P.E.W. notebook, until he muttered, "Nice cloak, Potter."
Harry stared at him in amazement. The large chunk missing from
Moody's nose was particularly obvious at a few inches' dis-tance.
Moody grinned.
"Can your eye - I mean, can you - ?"
"Yeah, it can see through Invisibility Cloaks," Moody said qui-etly.
"And it's come in useful at times, I can tell you."
Hagrid was beaming down at Harry too. Harry knew Hagrid couldn't see
him, but Moody had obviously told Hagrid he was there. Hagrid now
bent down on the pretext of reading the S.P.E.W. notebook as well, and
said in a whisper so low that only Harry could hear it, "Harry, meet me
tonight at midnight at me cabin. Wear that cloak."
Straightening up, Hagrid said loudly, "Nice ter see yeh, Hermione,"
winked, and departed. Moody followed him.
"Why does Hagrid want me to meet him at midnight?" Harry said, very
surprised.
"Does he?" said Hermione, looking startled. "I wonder what he's
up to? I don't know whether you should go, Harry. . . ." She
looked nervously around and hissed, "It might make you late for Sirius."
It was true that going down to Hagrid's at midnight would mean cutting
his meeting with Sirius very fine indeed; Hermione sug-gested sending Hedwig
down to Hagrid's to tell him he couldn't go - always assuming she would
consent to take the note, of course - Harry, however, thought it better
just to be quick at what-ever Hagrid wanted him for. He was very curious
to know what this might be; Hagrid had never asked Harry to visit him so
late at night.
At half past eleven that evening, Harry, who had pretended to go up
to bed early, pulled the Invisibility Cloak back over himself and crept
back downstairs through the common room. Quite a few people were still
in there. The Creevey brothers had managed to get hold of a stack
of Support Cedric Diggory! badges and were trying to bewitch them
to make them say Support Harry Potter! instead. So far, however,
all they had managed to do was get the badges stuck on POTTER STINKS.
Harry crept past them to the portrait hole and waited for a minute or so,
keeping an eye on his watch. Then Hermione opened the Fat Lady for
him from outside as they had planned. He slipped past her with a
whispered "Thanks!" and set off through the castle.
The grounds were very dark. Harry walked down the lawn toward
the lights shining in Hagrid's cabin. The inside of the enormous
Beauxbatons carriage was also lit up; Harry could hear Madame Maxime talking
inside it as he knocked on Hagrid's front door.
"You there, Harry?" Hagrid whispered, opening the door and looking
around.
"Yeah," said Harry, slipping inside the cabin and pulling the cloak
down off his head. "What's up?"
"Got summat ter show yeh," said Hagrid.
There was an air of enormous excitement about Hagrid. He was
wearing a flower that resembled an oversized artichoke in his but-tonhole.
It looked as though he had abandoned the use of axle grease, but he had
certainly attempted to comb his hair - Harry could see the comb's broken
teeth tangled in it.
"What're you showing me?" Harry said warily, wondering if the skrewts
had laid eggs, or Hagrid had managed to buy another giant three-headed
dog off a stranger in a pub.
"Come with me, keep quiet, an' keep yerself covered with that cloak,"
said Hagrid. "We won' take Fang, he won' like it. . .
"Listen, Hagrid, I can't stay long. . . . I've got to be back up at
the castle by one o'clock -"
But Hagrid wasn't listening; he was opening the cabin door and striding
off into the night. Harry hurried to follow and found, to his great
surprise, that Hagrid was leading him to the Beauxbatons carriage.
"Hagrid, what - ?"
"Shhh!" said Hagrid, and he knocked three times on the door bearing
the crossed golden wands.
Madame Maxime opened it. She was wearing a silk shawl wrapped
around her massive shoulders. She smiled when she saw Hagrid.
"Ah, 'Agrid . . . it is time?"
"Bong-sewer," said Hagrid, beaming at her, and holding out a hand to
help her down the golden steps.
Madame Maxime closed the door behind her, Hagrid offered her his arm,
and they set off around the edge of the paddock con-taining Madame Maxime's
giant winged horses, with Harry, totally bewildered, running to keep up
with them. Had Hagrid wanted to show him Madame Maxime? He could
see her any old time he wanted.. . she wasn't exactly hard to miss....
But it seemed that Madame Maxime was in for the same treat as Harry,
because after a while she said playfully, "Wair is it you are taking
me, 'Agrid?"
"Yeh'll enjoy this," said Hagrid gruffly, "worth seein', trust me.
On'y - don' go tellin' anyone I showed yeh, right? Yeh're not s'posed
ter know."
"Of course not," said Madame Maxime, fluttering her long black eyelashes.
And still they walked, Harry getting more and more irritated as he
jogged along in their wake, checking his watch every now and then.
Hagrid had some harebrained scheme in hand, which might make him miss Sirius.
If they didn't get there soon, he was going to turn around, go straight
back to the castle, and leave Hagrid to en-joy his moonlit stroll with
Madame Maxime.
But then - when they had walked so far around the perimeter of the
forest that the castle and the lake were out of sight - Harry heard something.
Men were shouting up ahead. . . then came a deafening, earsplitting roar.
. .
Hagrid led Madame Maxime around a clump of trees and came to a halt.
Harry hurried up alongside them - for a split second, he thought he was
seeing bonfires, and men darting around them - and then his mouth fell
open.
Dragons.
Four fully grown, enormous, vicious-looking dragons were rear-ing onto
their hind legs inside an enclosure fenced with thick planks of wood, roaring
and snorting - torrents of fire were shooting into the dark sky from their
open, fanged mouths, fifty feet above the ground on their outstretched
necks. There was a silvery-blue one with long, pointed horns, snapping
and snarling at the wizards on the ground; a smooth-scaled green one, which
was writhing and stamping with all its might; a red one with an odd fringe
of fine gold spikes around its face, which was shooting mushroom-shaped
fire clouds into the air; and a gigantic black one, more lizard-hike than
the others, which was nearest to them.
At least thirty wizards, seven or eight to each dragon, were attempting
to control them, pulling on the chains connected to heavy leather straps
around their necks and legs. Mesmerized, Harry looked up, high above him,
and saw the eyes of the black dragon, with vertical pupils like a cat's,
bulging with either fear or rage, he couldn't tell which. . . . It was
making a horrible noise, a yowling, screeching scream.
"Keep back there, Hagrid!" yelled a wizard near the fence, strain-ing
on the chain he was holding. "They can shoot fire at a range of twenty
feet, you know! I've seen this Horntail do forty!"
"Is'n' it beautiful?" said Hagrid softly.
"It's no good!" yelled another wizard. "Stunning Spells, on the
count of three!"
Harry saw each of the dragon keepers pull out his wand.
"Stupefy!" they shouted in unison, and the Stunning Spells shot
into the darkness like fiery rockets, bursting in showers of stars on the
dragons' scaly hides -
Harry watched the dragon nearest to them teeter dangerously on its
back legs; its jaws stretched wide in a silent howl; its nostrils were
suddenly devoid of flame, though still smoking - then, very slowly, it
fell. Several tons of sinewy, scaly-black dragon hit the ground with
a thud that Harry could have sworn made the trees behind him quake.
The dragon keepers lowered their wands and walked forward to their
fallen charges, each of which was the size of a small hill. They
hurried to tighten the chains and fasten them securely to iron pegs, which
they forced deep into the ground with their wands.
"Wan' a closer look?" Hagrid asked Madame Maxime excitedly.
The pair of them moved right up to the fence, and Harry followed.
The wizard who had warned Hagrid not to come any closer turned, and Harry
realized who it was: Charlie Weasley.
"All right, Hagrid?" he panted, coming over to talk. "They
should be okay now - we put them out with a Sleeping Draft on the way here,
thought it might be better for them to wake up in the dark and the quiet
- but, like you saw, they weren't happy, nott happy at all -"
"What breeds you got here, Charlie?" said Hagrid, gazing at the
closest dragon, the black one, with something chose to reverence.
Its eyes were still just open. Harry could see a strip of gleaming
yel-low beneath its wrinkled black eyelid.
"This is a Hungarian Horntail," said Charlie. "There's a Com-mon
Welsh Green over there, the smaller one -- a Swedish Short--Snout, that
blue-gray -- and a Chinese Fireball, that's the red."
Charlie looked around; Madame Maxime was strolling away around the
edge of the enclosure, gazing at the stunned dragons.
"I didn't know you were bringing her, Hagrid," Charlie said, frowning.
"The champions aren't supposed to know what's com-ing - she's bound to
tell her student, isn't she?"
"Jus' thought she'd like ter see 'em," shrugged Hagrid, still gaz-ing,
enraptured, at the dragons.
"Really romantic date, Hagrid," said Charlie, shaking his head.
"Four. . ." said Hagrid, "so it's one fer each o' the champions, is
it? What've they gotta do - fight 'em?"
"Just get past them, I think," said Charlie. "We'll be on hand
if it gets nasty, Extinguishing Spells at the ready. They wanted
nest-ing mothers, I don't know why. . . but I tell you this, I don't envy
the one who gets the Horntail. Vicious thing. Its back end's
as dan-gerous as its front, look."
Charlie pointed toward the Horntail's tail, and Harry saw long, bronze-colored
spikes protruding along it every few inches.
Five of Charlie's fellow keepers staggered up to the Horntail at that
moment, carrying a clutch of huge granite-gray eggs between them in a blanket.
They placed them carefully at the Horntail's side. Hagrid let out
a moan of longing.
"I've got them counted, Hagrid," said Charlie sternly. Then he
said, "How's Harry?"
"Fine," said Hagrid. He was still gazing at the eggs.
"Just hope he's still fine after he's faced this lot," said Charlie
grimly, looking out over the dragons' enclosure. "I didn't dare tell
Mum what he's got to do for the first task; she's already having kit-tens
about him. . . ." Charlie imitated his mother's anxious voice. "How
could they let him enter that tournament, he's much too young! I
thought they were all safe, I thought there was going to be an age limit!'
She was in floods after that Daily Prophet article about him. 'He
still cries about his parents! Oh bless him, I never knew!"
Harry had had enough. Trusting to the fact that Hagrid wouldn't
miss him, with the attractions of four dragons and Madame Maxime to occupy
him, he turned silently and began to walk away, back to the castle.
He didn't know whether he was glad he'd seen what was coming or not.
Perhaps this way was better. The first shock was over now.
Maybe if he'd seen the dragons for the first time on Tuesday, he would
have passed out cold in front of the whole school. . . but maybe he would
anyway. .. . He was going to be armed with his wand - which, just now,
felt like nothing more than a narrow strip of wood -- against a fifty-foot-high,
scaly, spike-ridden, fire-breathing dragon. And he had to get past
it. With everyone watch-ing. How?
Harry sped up, skirting the edge of the forest; he had just under fifteen
minutes to get back to the fireside and talk to Sirius, and he couldn't
remember, ever, wanting to talk to someone more than he did right now --
when, without warning, he ran into something very solid.
Harry fell backward, his glasses askew, clutching the cloak around
him. A voice nearby said, "Ouch! Who's there?"
Harry hastily checked that the cloak was covering him and hay very
still, staring up at the dark outline of the wizard he had hit. He
recognized the goatee. . . it was Karkaroff.
"Who's there?" said Karkaroff again, very suspiciously, looking
around in the darkness. Harry remained still and silent. After
a minute or so, Karkaroff seemed to decide that he had hit some sort of
animal; he was looking around at waist height, as though ex-pecting to
see a dog. Then he crept back under the cover of the trees and started
to edge forward toward the place where the drag-ons were.
Very slowly and very carefully, Harry got to his feet and set off again
as fast as he could without making too much noise, hurrying through the
darkness back toward Hogwarts.
He had no doubt whatsoever what Karkaroff was up to. He had sneaked
off his ship to try and find out what the first task was going to be.
He might even have spotted Hagrid and Madame Maxime heading off around
the forest together - they were hardly difficult to spot at a distance.
. . and now all Karkaroff had to do was fol-low the sound of voices, and
he, like Madame Maxime, would know what was in store for the champions.
By the looks of it, the only champion who would be facing the unknown
on Tuesday was Cedric.
Harry reached the castle, slipped in through the front doors, and began
to climb the marble stairs; he was very out of breath, but he didn't dare
slow down. . . . He had less than five minutes to get up to the fire.
"Balderdash!" he gasped at the Fat Lady, who was snoozing in her frame
in front of the portrait hole.
"If you say so," she muttered sleepily, without opening her eyes, and
the picture swung forward to admit him. Harry climbed in-side.
The common room was deserted, and, judging by the fact that it smelled
quite normal, Hermione had not needed to set off any Dungbombs to ensure
that he and Sirius got privacy.
Harry pulled off the Invisibility Cloak and threw himself into an armchair
in front of the fire. The room was in semidarkness; the flames were
the only source of light. Nearby, on a table, the Support Cedric
Diggory! badges the Creeveys had been trying to improve were glinting in
the firelight. They now read POTTER REALLY STINKS. Harry looked
back into the flames, and jumped.
Sirius's head was sitting in the fire. If Harry hadn't seen Mr.
Diggory do exactly this back in the Weasleys' kitchen, it would have scared
him out of his wits. Instead, his face breaking into the first smile
he had worn for days, he scrambled out of his chair, crouched down by the
hearth, and said, "Sirius - how're you doing?"
Sirius looked different from Harry's memory of him. When they
had said good-bye, Sirius's face had been gaunt and sunken, sur-rounded
by a quantity of long, black, matted hair - but the hair was short and
clean now, Sirius's face was fuller, and he looked younger, much more like
the only photograph Harry had of him, which had been taken at the Potters'
wedding.
"Never mind me, how are you?" said Sirius seriously.
"I'm -" For a second, Harry tried to say "fine" - but he couldn't
do it. Before he could stop himself, he was talking more than he'd
talked in days - about how no one believed he hadn't entered the tournament
of his own free will, how Rita Skeeter had lied about him in the Daily
Prophet, how he couldn't walk down a corridor without being sneered at
- and about Ron, Ron not believing him, Ron''s jealousy...
". . . and now Hagrid's just shown me what's coming in the first task,
and it's dragons, Sirius, and I'm a goner," he finished des-perately.
Sirius looked at him, eyes full of concern, eyes that had not yet lost
the look that Azkaban had given them - that deadened, haunted look
He had let Harry talk himself into silence without interruption, but now
he said, "Dragons we can deal with, Harry, but we'll get to that in a minute
- I haven't got long here. . . I've broken iinto a wizarding house to use
the fire, but they could be back at any time. There are things I
need to warn you about."
"What?" said Harry, feeling his spirits slip a further few notches..
. . Surely there could be nothing worse than dragons coming?
"Karkaroff," said Sirius. "Harry, he was a Death Eater.
You know what Death Eaters are, don't you?"
"Yes - he - what?"
"He was caught, he was in Azkaban with me, but he got released.
I'd bet everything that's why Dumbledore wanted an Auror at Hogwarts this
year - to keep an eye on him. Moody caught Karkaroff. Put him into
Azkaban in the first place."
"Karkaroff got released?" Harry said slowly - his brain seemed
to be struggling to absorb yet another piece of shocking informa-tion.
"Why did they release him?"
"He did a deal with the Ministry of Magic," said Sirius bitterly.
"He said he'd seen the error of his ways, and then he named names. . .
he put a load of other people into Azkaban in his place. . . . He's not
very popular in there, I can tell you. And since he got out, from
what I can tell, he's been teaching the Dark Arts to every student who
passes through that school of his. So watch out for the Durmstrang
champion as well."
"Okay," said Harry slowly. "But. . . are you saying Karkaroff
put my name in the goblet? Because if he did, he's a really good
actor. He seemed furious about it. He wanted to stop me from
competing."
"We know he's a good actor," said Sirius, "because he convinced the
Ministry of Magic to set him free, didn't he? Now, I've been keeping
an eye on the Daily Prophet, Harry.."
"- you and the rest of the world," said Harry bitterly.
"- and reading between the lines of that Skeeter woman's arti-cle last
month, Moody was attacked the night before he started at Hogwarts.
Yes, I know she says it was another false alarm," Sirius said hastily,
seeing Harry about to speak, "but I don't think so, somehow. I think
someone tried to stop him from getting to Hogwarts. I think someone
knew their job would be a lot more difficult with him around. And
no one's going to look into it too closely; Mad-Eye's heard intruders a
bit too often. But that doesn't mean he can't still spot the real
thing. Moody was the best Auror the Min-istry ever had."
"So. . . what are you saying?" said Harry slowly. "Karkaroff's
trying to kill me? But - why?"
Sirius hesitated.
"I've been nearing some very strange things," he said slowly.
"The Death Eaters seem to be a bit more active than usual lately.
They showed themselves at the Quidditch World Cup, didn't they? Someone
set off the Dark Mark.. . and then - did you hear about that Ministry of
Magic witch who's gone missing?"
"Bertha Jorkins?" said Harry.
"Exactly. . . she disappeared in Albania, and that's definitely where
Voldemort was rumored to be last. . . and she would have known the Triwizard
Tournament was coming up, wouldn't she?"
"Yeah, but. . . it's not very likely she'd have walked straight into
Voldemort, is it?" said Harry.
"Listen, I knew Bertha Jorkins," said Sirius grimly. "She was
at Hogwarts when I was, a few years above your dad and me. And she
was an idiot. Very nosy, but no brains, none at all. It's not
a good combination, Harry. I'd say she'd be very easy to lure into
a trap."
"So. . . so Voldemort could have found out about the tourna-ment?"
said Harry. "Is that what you mean? You think Karkaroff might
be here on his orders?"
"I don't know," said Sirius slowly, "I just don't know...Karkaroff
doesn't strike me as the type who'd go back to Voldemort unless he knew
Voldemort was powerful enough to protect him. But whoever put your
name in that goblet did it for a reason, and I can't help thinking the
tournament would be a very good way to attack you and make it hook like
an accident."
"Looks hike a really good plan from where I'm standing," said Harry
grinning bleaky. "They'll just have to stand back and let the dragons do
their stuff."
"Right - these dragons," said Sirius, speaking very quickly now.
"There's a way, Harry. Don't be tempted to try a Stunning Spell - dragons
are strong and too powerfully magical to be knocked out by a single Stunner,
you need about half a dozen wiz-ards at a time to overcome a dragon -"
"Yeah, I know, I just saw," said Harry.
"But you can do it alone," said Sirius. "There is away, and a
sim-ple spell's all you need. Just -"
But Harry held up a hand to silence him, his heart suddenly pounding
as though it would burst. He could hear footsteps com-ing down the
spiral staircase behind him.
"Go!" he hissed at Sirius. " Go! There's someone coming!"
Harry scrambled to his feet, hiding the fire - if someone saw Sirius's
face within the walls of Hogwarts, they would raise an almighty uproar
- the Ministry would get dragged in - he, Haarry, would be questioned about
Sirius's whereabouts -
Harry heard a tiny pop! in the fire behind him and knew Sirius had
gone. He watched the bottom of the spiral staircase. Who had
decided to go for a stroll at one o'clock in the morning, and stopped Sirius
from telling him how to get past a dragon?
It was Ron. Dressed in his maroon paisley pajamas, Ron stopped dead
facing Harry across the room, and looked around.
"Who were you talking to?" he said.
"What's that got to do with you?" Harry snarled. "What
are you doing down here at this time of night?"
"I just wondered where you -" Ron broke off, shrugging.
"Nothing. I'm going back to bed."
"Just thought you'd come nosing around, did you?" Harry shouted.
He knew that Ron had no idea what he'd walked in on, knew he hadn't done
it on purpose, but he didn't care - at this moment he hated everything
about Ron, right down to the several inches of bare ankle showing beneath
his pajama trousers.
"Sorry about that," said Ron, his face reddening with anger.
"Should've realized you didn't want to be disturbed. I'll let you
get on with practicing for your next interview in peace."
Harry seized one of the POTTER REALLY STINKS badges off the table and
chucked it, as hard as he could, across the room. It hit Ron on the
forehead and bounced off.
"There you go," Harry said. "Something for you to wear on Tuesday.
You might even have a scar now, if yon're lucky.. . . That's what you want,
isn't it?"
He strode across the room toward the stairs; he half expected Ron to
stop him, he would even have liked Ron to throw a punch at him, but Ron
just stood there in his too-small pajamas, and Harry, having stormed upstairs,
lay awake in bed fuming for a long time afterward and didn't hear him come
up to bed.
CHAPTER TWENTY
THE FIRST TASK
Harry got up on Sunday morning and dressed so inatten-tively
that it was a while before he realized he was trying to pull his hat onto
his foot instead of his sock. When he'd finally got all his clothes
on the right parts of his body, he hurried off to find Hermione, locating
her at the Gryffindor table in the Great Hall, where she was eating breakfast
with Ginny. Feeling too queasy to eat, Harry waited until Hermione
had swallowed her last spoonful of porridge, then dragged her out onto
the grounds. There, he told her all about the dragons, and about
everything Sirius had said, while they took another long walk around the
lake.
Alarmed as she was by Sirius's warnings about Karkaroff, Hermione
still thought that the dragons were the more pressing problem.
"Let's just try and keep you alive until Tuesday evening," she said
desperately, "and then we can worry about Karkaroff."
They walked three times around the lake, trying all the way to
think of a simple spell that would subdue a dragon. Nothing what-soever
occurred to them, so they retired to the library instead. Here, Harry
pulled down every book he could find on dragons, and both of them set to
work searching through the large pile.
"Talon-clipping by charms. .. treating scale-rot. . .' This is no good,
this is for nutters like Hagrid who want to keep them healthy. ..
"Dragons are extremely difficult to slay, owing to the ancient magic
that imbues their thick hides, which none but the most powerful spells
can penetrate. . .' But Sirius said a simple one would do it.. .
"Let's try some simple spellbooks, then," said Harry, throwing aside
Men Who Love Dragons Too Much.
He returned to the table with a pile of spellbooks, set them down,
and began to flick through each in turn, Hermione whis-pering nonstop at
his elbow.
"Well, there are Switching Spells. . . but what's the point of Switching
it? Unless you swapped its fangs for wine-gums or some-thing that
would make it less dangerous.. . . The trouble is, like that book said,
not much is going to get through a dragon's hide. . . . I'd say Transfigure
it, but something that big, you really haven't got a hope, I doubt even
Professor McGonagall. . . unless you're supposed to put the spell on yourself?
Maybe to give yourself extra powers? But they're not simple spells,
I mean, we haven't done any of those in class, I only know about them because
I've been do-ing O.W.L. practice papers. . . ."
"Hermione," Harry said, through gritted teeth, "will you shut up for
a bit, please? I m trying to concentrate."
But all that happened, when Hermione fell silent, was that Harry's
brain filled with a sort of blank buzzing, which didn't seem to allow room
for concentration. He stared hopelessly down the in-dex of Basic
Hexes for the Busy and Vexed. Instant scalping. . . but dragons had
no hair. . . pepper breath.. . that would probably in-crease a dragon's
firepower. . . horn tongue. . . just what he needed, to give it an extra
weapon...
"Oh no, he's back again, why can't he read on his stupid ship?"
said Hermione irritably as Viktor Krum slouched in, cast a surly look over
at the pair of them, and settled himself in a distant cor-ner with a pile
of books. "Come on, Harry, we'll go back to the common room. . .
his fan club'll be here in a moment, twittering away... ."
And sure enough, as they left the library, a gang of girls tiptoed
past them, one of them wearing a Bulgaria scarf tied around her waist.
Harry barely slept that night. When he awoke on Monday morn-ing,
he seriously considered for the first time ever just running away from
Hogwarts. But as he looked around the Great Hall at breakfast time,
and thought about what leaving the castle would mean, he knew he couldn't
do it. It was the only place he had ever been happy. . . well, he
supposed he must have been happy with his parents too, but he couldn't
remember that.
Somehow, the knowledge that he would rather be here and fac-ing a dragon
than back on Privet Drive with Dudley was good to know; it made him feel
slightly calmer. He finished his bacon with difficulty (his throat
wasn't working too well), and as he and Hermione got up, he saw Cedric
Diggory leaving the Hufflepuff table.
Cedric still didn't know about the dragons. . . the only cham-pion
who didn't, if Harry was right in thinking that Maxime and Karkaroff would
have told Fleur and Krum....
"Hermione, I'll see you in the greenhouses," Harry said, coming to
his decision as he watched Cedric leaving the Hall. "Go on, I'll
catch you up."
"Harry, you'll be late, the bell's about to ring -"
"I'll catch you up, okay?"
By the time Harry reached the bottom of the marble staircase, Cedric
was at the top. He was with a load of sixth-year friends. Harry didn't
want to talk to Cedric in front of them; they were among those who had
been quoting Rita Skeeter's article at him every time he went near them.
He followed Cedric at a distance and saw that he was heading toward the
Charms corridor. This gave Harry an idea. Pausing at a distance
from them, he pulled out his wand, and took careful aim.
"Diffindo!"
Cedric's bag split. Parchment, quills, and books spilled out
of it onto the floor. Several bottles of ink smashed.
"Don't bother," said Cedric in an exasperated voice as his friends
bent down to help him. "Tell Flitwick I'm coming, go on. . .
This was exactly what Harry had been hoping for. He slipped his
wand back into his robes, waited until Cedric's friends had disap-peared
into their classroom, and hurried up the corridor, which was now empty
of everyone but himself and Cedric.
"Hi," said Cedric, picking up a copy of A Guide to Advanced Transfiguration
that was now splattered with ink. "My bag just split. . . brand-new
and all. . ."
"Cedric," said Harry, "the first task is dragons."
"What?" said Cedric, looking up.
"Dragons," said Harry, speaking quickly, in case Professor Flitwick
came out to see where Cedric had got to. "They've got four, one for
each of us, and we've got to get past them."
Cedric stared at him. Harry saw some of the panic he'd been feeling
since Saturday night flickering in Cedric's gray eyes.
"Are you sure?" Cedric said in a hushed voice.
"Dead sure," said Harry. "I've seen them."
"But how did you find out? We're not supposed to know. . . ."
"Never mind," said Harry quickly - he knew Hagrid would be in trouble
if he told the truth. "But I'm not the only one who knows.
Fleur and Krum will know by now - Maxime and Karkaroff both saw the dragons
too."
Cedric straightened up, his arms full of inky quills, parchment, and
books, his ripped bag dangling off one shoulder. He stared at Harry,
and there was a puzzled, almost suspicious look in his eyes.
"Why are you telling me?" he asked.
Harry looked at him in disbelief. He was sure Cedric wouldn't
have asked that if he had seen the dragons himself. Harry wouldn't
have let his worst enemy face those monsters unprepared - well, perhaps
Malfoy or Snape...
"It's just . . . fair, isn't it?" he said to Cedric. "We
all know now. . . we're on an even footing, aren't we?"
Cedric was still hooking at him in a slightly suspicious way when Harry
heard a familiar clunking noise behind him. He turned around and
saw Mad-Eye Moody emerging from a nearby class-room.
"Come with me, Potter," he growled. "Diggory, off you go."
Harry stared apprehensively at Moody. Had he overheard them?
"Er - Professor, I'm supposed to be in Herbology -"
"Never mind that, Potter. In my office, please...
Harry followed him, wondering what was going to happen to him now.
What if Moody wanted to know how he'd found out about the dragons?
Would Moody go to Dumbledore and tell on Hagrid, or just turn Harry into
a ferret? Well, it might be easier to get past a dragon if he were
a ferret, Harry thought dully, he'd be smaller, much less easy to see from
a height of fifty feet..
He followed Moody into his office. Moody closed the door be-hind
them and turned to look at Harry, his magical eye fixed upon him as well
as the normal one.
"That was a very decent thing you just did, Potter," Moody said quietly.
Harry didn't know what to say; this wasn't the reaction he had expected
at all.
"Sit down," said Moody, and Harry sat, looking around.
He had visited this office under two of its previous occupants.
In Professor Lockhart's day, the walls had been plastered with beam-ing,
winking pictures of Professor Lockhart himself. When Lupin had lived here,
you were more likely to come across a specimen of some fascinating new
Dark creature he had procured for them to study in class. Now, however,
the office was full of a number of ex-ceptionally odd objects that Harry
supposed Moody had used in the days when he had been an Auror.
On his desk stood what looked hike a large, cracked, glass spin-ning
top; Harry recognized it at once as a Sneakoscope, because he owned one
himself, though it was much smaller than Moody's. In the corner on
a small table stood an object that looked something like an extra-squiggly,
golden television aerial. It was humming slightly. What appeared
to be a mirror hung opposite Harry on the wall, but it was not reflecting
the room. Shadowy figures were mov-ing around inside it, none of
them clearly in focus.
"Like my Dark Detectors, do you?" s aid Moody, who was watching Harry
closely.
"What's that?" Harry asked, pointing at the squiggly golden aerial.
"Secrecy Sensor. Vibrates when it detects concealment and lies..
. no use here, of course, too much interference - students in every direction
lying about why they haven't done their home-work Been humming ever
since I got here. I had to disable my Sneakoscope because it wouldn't
stop whistling. It's extra-sensitive, picks up stuff about a mile
around. Of course, it could be picking up more than kid stuff," he
added in a growl.
"And what's the mirror for?"
"Oh that's my Foe-Glass. See them out there, skulking around?
I'm not really in trouble until I see the whites of their eyes. That's
when I open my trunk."
He let out a short, harsh laugh, and pointed to the large trunk under
the window. It had seven keyholes in a row. Harry wondered
what was in there, until Moody's next question brought him sharply back
to earth.
"So. . . found out about the dragons, have you?"
Harry hesitated. He'd been afraid of this - but he hadn't told
Cedric, and he certainly wasn't going to tell Moody, that Hagrid had broken
the rules.
"It's all right," said Moody, sitting down and stretching out his wooden
leg with a groan. "Cheating's a traditional part of the Tri-wizard Tournament
and always has been."
"I didn't cheat," said Harry sharply. "It was - a sort of accident
that I found out."
Moody grinned. "I wasn't accusing you, laddie. I've been
telling Dumbledore from the start, he can be as high-minded as he likes,
but you can bet old Karkaroff and Maxime won't be. They'll have told
their champions everything they can. They want to win. They
want to beat Dumbledore. They'd like to prove he's only human."
Moody gave another harsh laugh, and his magical eye swiveled around
so fast it made Harry feel queasy to watch it.
"So. . . got any ideas how you're going to get past your dragon yet?"
said Moody.
"No," said Harry.
"Well, I'm not going to tell you," said Moody gruffly. "I don't
show favoritism, me. I'm just going to give you some good, general
advice. And the first bit is - play to your strengths."
"I haven't got any," said Harry, before he could stop himself.
"Excuse me," growled Moody, "you've got strengths if I say you've got them.
Think now. What are you best at?"
Harry tried to concentrate. What was he best at? Well,
that was easy, really --
"Quidditch," he said dully, "and a fat lot of help -"
"That's right," said Moody, staring at him very hard, his magical eye
barely moving at all. "You're a damn good flier from what I've heard."
"Yeah, but.. ." Harry stared at him. "I'm not allowed a broom,
I've only got my wand..."
"My second piece of general advice," said Moody loudly, inter-rupting
him, "is to use a nice, simple spell that will enable you to get what you
need."
Harry looked at him blankly. What did he need?
"Come on, boy. . ." whispered Moody. "Put them together... it's
not that difficult..."
And it clicked. He was best at flying. He needed to pass
the dragon in the air. For that, he needed his Firebolt. And
for his Fire-bolt, he needed -
"Hermione," Harry whispered, when he had sped into greenhouse three
minutes later, uttering a hurried apology to Professor Sprout as he passed
her. "Hermione - I need you to help me."
"What d'you think I've been trying to do, Harry?" she whis-pered
back, her eyes round with anxiety over the top of the quiver-ing Flutterby
Bush she was pruning.
"Hermione, I need to learn how to do a Summoning Charm properly by
tomorrow afternoon."
And so they practiced. They didn't have lunch, but headed for
a free classroom, where Harry tried with all his might to make vari-ous
objects fly across the room toward him. He was still having problems.
The books and quills kept losing heart halfway across the room and dropping
hike stones to the floor.
"Concentrate, Harry, concentrate. . . ."
"What d'you think I'm trying to do?" said Harry angrily.
"A great big dragon keeps popping up in my head for some reason...Okay, try
again. . . ."
He wanted to skip Divination to keep practicing, but Hermione refused
point-blank to skive off Arithmancy, and there was no point in staying
without her. He therefore had to endure over an hour of Professor
Trelawney, who spent half the lesson telling everyone that the position
of Mars with relation to Saturn at that moment meant that people born in
July were in great danger of sudden, violent deaths.
"Well, that's good," said Harry loudly, his temper getting the better
of him, "just as long as it's not drawn-out. I don't want to suffer."
Ron looked for a moment as though he was going to laugh; he certainly
caught Harry's eye for the first time in days, but Harry was still feeling
too resentful toward Ron to care. He spent the rest of the lesson
trying to attract small objects toward him under the table with his wand.
He managed to make a fly zoom straight into his hand, though he wasn't
entirely sure that was his prowess at Summoning Charms - perhaps the fly
was just stupid.
He forced down some dinner after Divination, then returned to the empty
classroom with Hermione, using the Invisibility Cloak to avoid the teachers.
They kept practicing until past midnight. They would have stayed
longer, but Peeves turned up and, pre-tending to think that Harry wanted
things thrown at him, started chucking chairs across the room. Harry
and Hermione left in a hurry before the noise attracted Filch, and went
back to the Gryffindor common room, which was now mercifully empty.
At two o'clock in the morning, Harry stood near the fireplace, surrounded
by heaps of objects: books, quills, several upturned chairs, an old
set of Gobstones, and Neville's toad, Trevor. Only in the last hour
had Harry really got the hang of the Summoning Charm.
"That's better, Harry, that's loads better," Hermione said, look-ing
exhausted but very pleased.
"Well, now we know what to do next time I can't manage a spell," Harry
said, throwing a rune dictionary back to Hermione, so he could try again,
"threaten me with a dragon. Right..." He raised his wand once
more. "Accio Dictionary!"
The heavy book soared out of Hermione's hand, flew across the room,
and Harry caught it.
"Harry, I really think you've got it!" said Hermione delightedly.
"Just as long as it works tomorrow," Harry said. "The Firebolt's going
to be much farther away than the stuff in here, it's going to be in the
castle, and I'm going to be out there on the grounds. . . ."
"That doesn't matter," said Hermione firmly." Just as long as you're
concentrating really, really hard on it, it'll come. Harry, we'd
better get some sleep.. . you're going to need it."
Harry had been focusing so hard on learning the Summoning Charm that
evening that some of his blind panic had heft him. It re-turned in
full measure, however, on the following morning. The at-mosphere
in the school was one of great tension and excitement. Lessons were
to stop at midday, giving all the students time to get down to the dragons'
enclosure - though of course, they didn't yet know what they would find
there.
Harry felt oddly separate from everyone around him, whether they were
wishing him good luck or hissing "We'll have a box of tis-sues ready, Potter"
as he passed. It was a state of nervousness so ad-vanced that he
wondered whether he mightn't just lose his head when they tried to lead
him out to his dragon, and start trying to curse everyone in sight.
Time was behaving in a more peculiar fash-ion than ever, rushing past in
great dollops, so that one moment he seemed to be sitting down in his first
lesson, History of Magic, and the next, walking into lunch.. . and then
(where had the morning gone? the last of the dragon-free hours?),
Professor McGonagall was hurrying over to him in the Great Hall.
Lots of people were watching.
"Potter, the champions have to come down onto the grounds now... .
You have to get ready for your first task."
"Okay," said Harry, standing up, his fork falling onto his plate with
a clatter.
"Good luck, Harry," Hermione whispered. "You'll be fine!"
"Yeah," said Harry in a voice that was most unlike his own.
He heft the Great Hall with Professor McGonagall. She didn't
seem herself either; in fact, she looked nearly as anxious as Her-mione.
As she walked him down the stone steps and out into the cold November afternoon,
she put her hand on his shoulder.
"Now, don't panic," she said, "just keep a cool head. . . . We've got
wizards standing by to control the situation if it gets out of hand. .
. . The main thing is just to do your best, and nobody will think any the
worse of you. . . . Are you all right?"
"Yes," Harry heard himself say. "Yes, I'm fine."
She was leading him toward the place where the dragons were, around
the edge of the forest, but when they approached the clump of trees behind
which the enclosure would be clearly visible, Harry saw that a tent had
been erected, its entrance facing them, screen-ing the dragons from view.
"You're to go in here with the other champions," said Professor McGonagall,
in a rather shaky sort of voice, "and wait for your turn, Potter. Mr. Bagman
is in there. . . he'll be telling you the - the procedure. . . . Good luck."
"Thanks," said Harry, in a flat, distant voice. She left him
at the entrance of the tent. Harry went inside.
Fleur Delacour was sitting in a corner on a how wooden stool.
She didn't look nearly as composed as usual, but rather pale and clammy.
Viktor Krum looked even surlier than usual, which Harry supposed was his
way of showing nerves. Cedric was pacing up and down. When Harry
entered, Cedric gave him a small smile, which Harry returned, feeling the
muscles in his face working rather hard, as though they had forgotten how
to do it.
"Harry! Good-o!" said Bagman happily, looking around at him.
"Come in, come in, make yourself at home!"
Bagman looked somehow like a slightly overblown cartoon fig-ure, standing
amid all the pale-faced champions. He was wearing his old Wasp robes
again.
"Well, now we're all here - time to fill you in!" said Bagman brightly.
"When the audience has assembled, I'm going to be offering each of you
this bag" - he held up a small sack of purple silk and shook it at them
- "from which you will each select a small mmodel of the thing you are about
to face! There are different - er - varieties, you see. And
I have to tell you something else too.. . ah, yes... your task is to collect
the golden egg!"
Harry glanced around. Cedric had nodded once, to show that he
understood Bagman's words, and then started pacing around the tent again;
he looked slightly green. Fleur Delacour and Krum hadn't reacted
at all. Perhaps they thought they might be sick if they opened their
mouths; that was certainly how Harry felt. But they, at least, had
volunteered for this. .
And in no time at all, hundreds upon hundreds of pairs of feet could
be heard passing the tent, their owners talking excitedly, laughing, joking.
. . . Harry felt as separate from the crowd as though they were a different
species. And then - it seemed like about a second later to Harry
- Bagman was opening the neck of the purple silk sack.
"Ladies first," he said, offering it to Fleur Delacour.
She put a shaking hand inside the bag and drew out a tiny, per-fect
model of a dragon - a Welsh Green. It had the number two around its
neck And Harry knew, by the fact that Fleur showed no sign of surprise,
but rather a determined resignation, that he had been right: Madame Maxime
had told her what was coming.
The same held true for Krum. He pulled out the scarlet Chinese
Fireball. It had a number three around its neck. He didn't
even blink, just sat back down and stared at the ground.
Cedric put his hand into the bag, and out came the blueish-gray Swedish
Short-Snout, the number one tied around its neck. Know-ing what was
left, Harry put his hand into the silk bag and pulled out the Hungarian
Horntail, and the number four. It stretched its wings as he looked
down at it, and bared its minuscule fangs.
"Well, there you are!" said Bagman. "You have each pulled out
the dragon you will face, and the numbers refer to the order in which you
are to take on the dragons, do you see? Now, I'm going to have to leave
you in a moment, because I'm commentating. Mr. Diggory, you're first,
just go out into the enclosure when you hear a whistle, all right?
Now. . . Harry. . . could I have a quick word? Outside?"
"Er. . . yes," said Harry blankly, and he got up and went out of the
tent with Bagman, who walked him a short distance away, into the trees,
and then turned to him with a fatherly expression on his face.
"Feeling all right, Harry? Anything I can get you?"
"What?" said Harry. "I - no, nothing."
"Got a plan?" said Bagman, lowering his voice conspiratorially.
"Because I don't mind sharing a few pointers, if you'd like them, you know.
I mean," Bagman continued, lowering his voice still fur-ther, "you're the
underdog here, Harry. . . . Anything I can do to help. . ."
"No," said Harry so quickly he knew he had sounded rude, "no - I -
I know what I'm going to do, thanks."
"Nobody would know, Harry," said Bagman, winking at him.
"No, I'm fine," said Harry, wondering why he kept telling peo-ple this,
and wondering whether he had ever been less fine. "I've got a plan
worked out, I -"
A whistle had blown somewhere.
"Good lord, I've got to run!" said Bagman in alarm, and he hur-ried
off.
Harry walked back to the tent and saw Cedric emerging from it, greener
than ever. Harry tried to wish him luck as he walked past, but all that
came out of his mouth was a sort of hoarse grunt.
Harry went back inside to Fleur and Krum. Seconds hater, they heard
the roar of the crowd, which meant Cedric had entered the enclosure and
was now face-to-face with the living counterpart of his model.
It was worse than Harry could ever have imagined, sitting there and
listening. The crowd screamed. . . yelled.. . gasped like a sin-gle
many-headed entity, as Cedric did whatever he was doing to get past the
Swedish Short-Snout. Krum was still staring at the ground.
Fleur had now taken to retracing Cedric's steps, around and around the
tent. And Bagman's commentary made everything much, much worse.. . . Horrible
pictures formed in Harry's mind as he heard: "Oooh, narrow miss there,
very narrow". . . "He's tak-ing risks, this one!". . . "Clever move - pity
it didn't work!"
And then, after about fifteen minutes, Harry heard the deafen-ing roar
that could mean only one thing: Cedric had gotten past his dragon and captured
the golden egg.
"Very good indeed!" Bagman was shouting. "And now the marks
from the judges!"
But he didn't shout out the marks; Harry supposed the judges were holding
them up and showing them to the crowd.
"One down, three to go!" Bagman yelled as the whistle blew again.
"Miss Delacour, if you please!"
Fleur was trembling from head to foot; Harry felt more warmly toward
her than he had done so far as she heft the tent with her head held high
and her hand clutching her wand. He and Krum were left alone, at
opposite sides of the tent, avoiding each other's gaze.
The same process started again. . . ."Oh I'm not sure that was wise!"
they could hear Bagman shouting gleefully. "Oh. . . nearly!
Careful now. . . good lord, I thought she'd had it then!"
Ten minutes later, Harry heard the crowd erupt into applause once more.
. . . Fleur must have been successful too. A pause, while Fleur's
marks were being shown. . . more clapping.. . then, for the third time,
the whistle.
"And here comes Mr. Krum!" cried Bagman, and Krum slouched out,
leaving Harry quite alone.
He felt much more aware of his body than usual; very aware of the way
his heart was pumping fast, and his fingers tingling with fear. . . yet
at the same time, he seemed to be outside himself, see-ing the walls of
the tent, and hearing the crowd, as though from far away.
"Very daring!" Bagman was yelling, and Harry heard the Chi-nese
Fireball emit a horrible, roaring shriek, while the crowd drew its collective
breath. "That's some nerve he's showing - and - yes, he's got the
egg!"
Applause shattered the wintery air like breaking glass; Krum had finished
- it would be Harry's turn any moment.
He stood up, noticing dimly that his legs seemed to be made of marshmallow.
He waited. And then he heard the whistle blow. He walked out
through the entrance of the tent, the panic rising into a crescendo inside
him. And now he was walking past the trees, through a gap in the
enclosure fence.
He saw everything in front of him as though it was a very highly colored
dream. There were hundreds and hundreds of faces staring down at
him from stands that had been magicked there since he'd last stood on this
spot. And there was the Horntail, at the other end of the enclosure,
crouched low over her clutch of eggs, her wings half-furled, her evil,
yellow eyes upon him, a monstrous, scaly, black lizard, thrashing her spiked
tail, heaving yard-long gouge marks in the hard ground. The crowd
was making a great deal of noise, but whether friendly or not, Harry didn't
know or care. It was time to do what he had to do. . . to focus his
mind, entirely and absolutely, upon the thing that was his only chance.
He raised his wand.
"Accio Firebolt!" he shouted.
Harry waited, every fiber of him hoping, praying. . . . If it hadn't
worked. . . if it wasn't coming. . . He seemed to be looking at everything
around him through some sort of shimmering, trans-parent barrier, like
a heat haze, which made the enclosure and the hundreds of faces around
him swim strangely....
And then he heard it, speeding through the air behind him; he turned
and saw his Firebolt hurtling toward him around the edge of the woods,
soaring into the enclosure, and stopping dead in midair beside him, waiting
for him to mount. The crowd was mak-ing even more noise. . . . Bagman was
shouting something. . . but Harry's ears were not working properly anymore.
. . listening wasn't important....
He swung his leg over the broom and kicked off from the ground.
And a second later, something miraculous happened....
As he soared upward, as the wind rushed through his hair, as the crowd's
faces became mere flesh-colored pinpnicks below, and the Horntail shrank
to the size of a dog, he realized that he had heft not only the ground
behind, but also his fear. . . . He was back where he belonged....
This was just another Quidditch match, that was all. . . just another
Quidditch match, and that Horntail was just another ugly opposing team.
He looked down at the clutch of eggs and spotted the gold one, gleaming
against its cement-colored fellows, residing safely be-tween the dragon's
front legs. "Okay," Harry told himself, "diver-sionary tactics. .
. let's go. . ."
He dived. The Horntail's head followed him; he knew what it was
going to do and pulled out of the dive just in time; a jet of fire had
been released exactly where he would have been had he not swerved away.
. . but Harry didn't care.. . that was no more than dodging a Bludger.
"Great Scott, he can fly!" yelled Bagman as the crowd shrieked
and gasped. "Are you watching this, Mr. Krum?"
Harry soared higher in a circle; the Horntail was still following
his progress; its head revolving on its long neck - if he kept this up,
it would be nicely dizzy - but better not push it too long, or it would
be breathing fire again -
Harry plummeted just as the Horntail opened its mouth, but this
time he was less lucky - he missed the flames, but the tail came whipping
up to meet him instead, and as he swerved to the left, one of the long
spikes grazed his shoulder, ripping his robes --
He could feel it stinging, he could hear screaming and groans
from the crowd, but the cut didn't seem to be deep. . . . Now he zoomed
around the back of the Horntail, and a possibility occurred to him....
The Horntail didn't seem to want to take off, she was too pro-tective
of her eggs. Though she writhed and twisted, furling and unfurling her
wings and keeping those fearsome yellow eyes on Harry, she was afraid to
move too far from them. . . but he had to persuade her to do it, or he'd
never get near them. . . . The trick was to do it carefully, gradually....
He began to fly, first this way, then the other, not near enough
to make her breathe fire to stave him off, but still posing a sufficient
threat to ensure she kept her eyes on him. Her head swayed this way
and that, watching him out of those vertical pupils, her fangs bared...
He flew higher. The Horntail's head rose with him, her
neck now stretched to its fullest extent, still swaying, hike a snake before
its charmer. . .
Harry rose a few more feet, and she let out a roar of exaspera-tion.
He was like a fly to her, a fly she was longing to swat; her tail thrashed
again, but he was too high to reach now. . . . She shot fire into the air,
which he dodged.. . . Her jaws opened wide....
"Come on," Harry hissed, swerving tantalizingly above her, "come on,
come and get me. . . up you get now. ."
And then she reared, spreading her great, black, leathery wings at
last, as wide as those of a small airplane - and Harry dived. Before
the dragon knew what he had done, or where he had dis-appeared to, he was
speeding toward the ground as fast as he could go, toward the eggs now
unprotected by her clawed front legs - he had taken his hands off his Firebolt
- he had seized the golden egg -
And with a huge spurt of speed, he was off, he was soaring out over
the stands, the heavy egg safely under his uninjured arm, and it was as
though somebody had just turned the volume back up - for the first time,
he became properly aware of the noise of the crowd, which was screaming
and applauding as loudly as the Irish supporters at the World Cup -
"Look at that!" Bagman was yelling. "Will you look at that! Our youngest
champion is quickest to get his egg! Well, this is going to shorten
the odds on Mr. Potter!"
Harry saw the dragon keepers rushing forward to subdue the Horntail,
and, over at the entrance to the enclosure, Professor McGonagalh, Professor
Moody, and Hagrid hurrying to meet him, all of them waving him toward them,
their smiles evident even from this distance. He flew back over the
stands, the noise of the crowd pounding his eardrums, and came in smoothly
to land, his heart lighter than it had been in weeks. . . . He had got
through the first task, he had survived.
"That was excellent, Potter!" cried Professor McGonagall as he
got off the Firebolt - which from her was extravagant praise. He
noticed that her hand shook as she pointed at his shoulder. "You'll
need to see Madam Pomfrey before the judges give out your score. . . .
Over there, she's had to mop up Diggory already. . . ."
"Yeh did it, Harry!" said Hagrid hoarsely. "Yeh did it!
An' agains' the Horntail an' all, an' yeh know Charlie said that was the
wors' - "
"Thanks, Hagrid," said Harry loudly, so that Hagrid wouldn't blunder
on and reveal that he had shown Harry the dragons beforehand.
Professor Moody looked very pleased too; his magical eye was dancing
in its socket.
"Nice and easy does the trick, Potter," he growled.
"Right then, Potter, the first aid tent, please. . ." said Professor
McGonagall.
Harry walked out of the enclosure, still panting, and saw Madam Pomfrey
standing at the mouth of a second tent, looking worried.
"Dragons!" she said, in a disgusted tone, pulling Harry inside.
The tent was divided into cubicles; he could make out Cedric's shadow through
the canvas, but Cedric didn't seem to be badly in-jured; he was sitting
up, at least. Madam Pomfrey examined Harry's shoulder, talking furiously
all the while. "Last year demen-tors, this year dragons, what are
they going to bring into this school next? You're very lucky. . .
this is quite shallow. . . it'll need clean-ing before I heal it up, though...
."
She cleaned the cut with a dab of some purple liquid that smoked and
stung, but then poked his shoulder with her wand, and he felt it heal instantly.
"Now, just sit quietly for a minute - sit! And then you can go
and get your score."
She bustled out of the tent and he heard her go next door and say,
"How does it feel now, Diggory?"
Harry didn't want to sit still: He was too full of adrenaline.
He got to his feet, wanting to see what was going on outside, but be-fore
he'd reached the mouth of the tent, two people had come dart-ing inside
- Hermione, followed closely by Ron.
"Harry, you were brilliant!" Hermione said squeakily. There
were fingernail marks on her face where she had been clutching it in fear.
"You were amazing! You really were!"
But Harry was looking at Ron, who was very white and staring at Harry
as though he were a ghost.
"Harry," he said, very seriously, "whoever put your name in that goblet
- I - I reckon they're trying to do you in!""
It was as though the last few weeks had never happened - as though
Harry were meeting Ron for the first time, right after he'd been made champion.
"Caught on, have you?" said Harry coldly. "Took you long
enough."
Hermione stood nervously between them, looking from one to the other.
Ron opened his mouth uncertainly. Harry knew Ron was about to apologize
and suddenly he found he didn't need to hear it.
"It's okay," he said, before Ron could get the words out. "Forget
it."
"No," said Ron, "I shouldn't've -"
"Forget it, "Harry said.
Ron grinned nervously at him, and Harry grinned back
Hermione burst into tears.
"There's nothing to cry about!" Harry told her, bewildered.
"You two are so stupid!" she shouted, stamping her foot on the ground,
tears splashing down her front. Then, before either of them could
stop her, she had given both of them a hug and dashed away, now positively
howling.
"Barking mad," said Ron, shaking his head. "Harry, c'mon, they'll
be putting up your scores. . . ."
Picking up the golden egg and his Firebolt, feeling more elated than
he would have believed possible an hour ago, Harry ducked out of the tent,
Ron by his side, talking fast.
"You were the best, you know, no competition. Cedric did this
weird thing where he Transfigured a rock on the ground. . . turned it into
a dog. . . he was trying to make the dragon go for the dog instead of him.
Well, it was a pretty cool bit of Transfiguration, and it sort of worked,
because he did get the egg, but he got burned as well - the dragon changed
its mind halfway through and decided it would rather have him than the
Labrador; he only just got away. And that Fleur girl tried this sort of
charm, I think she was trying to put it into a trance - well, that kind
of worked too, it went all sleepy, but then it snored, and this great jet
of flame shot out, and her skirt caught fire - she put it out with a bit
of water out of her wand. And Krum - you won't believe this, but
he didn't even think of flying! He was probably the best after you,
though. Hit it with some sort of spell right in the eye. Only
thing is, it went tram-pling around in agony and squashed half the real
eggs - they took marks off for that, he wasn't supposed to do any damage
to them."
Ron drew breath as he and Harry reached the edge of the enclo-sure.
Now that the Horntail had been taken away, Harry could see where the five
judges were sitting - right at the other end, in raised seats draped in
gold.
"It's marks out of ten from each one," Ron said, and Harry squinting
up the field, saw the first judge - Madame Maxime - raise her wand in the
air. What hooked like a long silver ribbon shot out of it, which
twisted itself into a large figure eight.
"Not bad!" said Ron as the crowd applauded. "I suppose she took
marks off for your shoulder. . .
Mr. Crouch came next. He shot a number nine into the air.
"Looking good!" Ron yelled, thumping Harry on the back.
Next, Dumbledore. He too put up a nine. The crowd was cheer-ing
harder than ever.
Ludo Bagman - ten.
"Ten?" said Harry in disbelief. "But. . . I got hurt. . . . What's
he playing at?"
"Harry, don't complain!" Ron yelled excitedly.
And now Karkaroff raised his wand. He paused for a moment, and then
a number shot out of his wand too - four.
"What?" Ron bellowed furiously. "Four? You lousy, biased scum-bag,
you gave Krum ten!"
But Harry didn't care, he wouldn't have cared if Karkaroff had given
him zero; Ron's indignation on his behalf was worth about a hundred points
to him. He didn't tell Ron this, of course, but his heart felt lighter
than air as he turned to leave the enclosure. And it wasn't just
Ron. . . those weren't only Gryffindors cheering in the crowd. When
it had come to it, when they had seen what he was facing, most of the school
had been on his side as well as Cedric's. . . . He didn't care about the
Slytherins, he could stand whatever they threw at him now.
"You're tied in first place, Harry! You and Krum!" said
Charlie Weasley, hurrying to meet them as they set off back toward the
school. "Listen, I've got to run, I've got to go and send Mum an
owl, I swore I'd tell her what happened - but that was unbeliev-able!
Oh yeah - and they told me to tell you you've got to hang around for a
few more minutes.. . . Bagman wants a word, back in the champions' tent."
Ron said he would wait, so Harry reentered the tent, which somehow
looked quite different now: friendly and welcoming. He thought
back to how he'd felt while dodging the Horntail, and compared it to the
long wait before he'd walked out to face it.... There was no comparison;
the wait had been immeasurably worse.
Fleur, Cedric, and Krum all came in together. One side of Cedric's
face was covered in a thick orange paste, which was pre-sumably mending
his burn. He grinned at Harry when he saw him.
"Good one, Harry."
"And you," said Harry, grinning back.
"Well done, all of you!" said Ludo Bagman, bouncing into the
tent and looking as pleased as though he personally had just got past a
dragon. "Now, just a quick few words. You've got a nice long break
before the second task, which will take place at half past nine on the
morning of February the twenty-fourth - but we're giving you something
to think about in the meantime! If you look down at those golden
eggs you're all holding, you will see that they open. . . see the hinges
there? You need to solve the clue inside the egg - because it will
tell you what the second task is, and enable you to prepare for it!
All clear? Sure? Well, off you go, then!"
Harry left the tent, rejoined Ron, and they started to walk back around
the edge of the forest, talking hard; Harry wanted to hear what the other
champions had done in more detail. Then, as they rounded the clump of trees
behind which Harry had first heard the dragons roar, a witch leapt out
from behind them.
It was Rita Skeeter. She was wearing acid-green robes today;
the Quick-Quotes Quill in her hand blended perfectly against them.
"Congratulations, Harry!" she said, beaming at him. "I
wonder if you could give me a quick word? How you felt facing that
dragon? How you feel now, about the fairness of the scoring?"
"Yeah, you can have a word," said Harry savagely. "Good-bye."
And he set off back to the castle with Ron.
CHAPTER TWENTY-ONE
THE HOUSE-ELF LIBERATION FRONT
Harry, Ron, and Hermione went up to the Owlery that evening to
find Pigwidgeon, so that Harry could send Sirius a letter telling him that
he had managed to get past his dragon unscathed. On the way, Harry
filled Ron in on everything Sirius had told him about Karkaroff. Though
shocked at first to hear that Karkaroff had been a Death Eater, by the
time they en-tered the Owlery Ron was saying that they ought to have suspected
it all along.
"Fits, doesn't it?" he said. "Remember what Malfoy
said on the train, about his dad being friends with Karkaroff? Now
we know where they knew each other. They were probably running around
in masks together at the World Cup.... I'll tell you one thing, though,
Harry, if it was Karkaroff who put your name in the gob-let, he's going
to be feeling really stupid now, isn't he? Didn't work, did it?
You only got a scratch! Come here - I'll do it -"
Pigwidgeon was so overexcited at the idea of a delivery he was flying
around and around Harry's head, hooting incessantly. Ron snatched
Pigwidgeon out of the air and held him still while Harry attached the letter
to his leg.
"There's no way any of the other tasks are going to be that dan-gerous,
how could they be?" Ron went on as he carried Pigwidgeon to the window.
"You know what? I reckon you could win this tour-nament, Harry, I'm serious."
Harry knew that Ron was only saying this to make up for his be-havior
of the last few weeks, but he appreciated it all the same. Hermione,
however, leaned against the Owlery wall, folded her arms, and frowned at
Ron.
"Harry's got a long way to go before he finishes this tourna-ment,"
she said seriously. "If that was the first task, I hate to think
what's coming next."
"Right little ray of sunshine, aren't you?" said Ron. "You
and Professor Trelawney should get together sometime."
He threw Pigwidgeon out of the window. Pigwidgeon plum-meted
twelve feet before managing to pull himself back up again; the letter attached
to his leg was much longer and heavier than usual - Harry hadn't been able
to resist giving Sirius a blow-by-blow account of exactly how he had swerved,
circled, and dodged the Horntail. They watched Pigwidgeon disappear
into the dark-ness, and then Ron said, "Well, we'd better get downstairs
for your surprise party, Harry - Fred and George should have nicked enough
food from the kitchens by now."
Sure enough, when they entered the Gryffindor common room it exploded
with cheers and yells again. There were mountains of cakes and flagons
of pumpkin juice and butterbeer on every surface; Lee Jordan had let off
some Filibuster's Fireworks, so that the air was thick with stars and sparks;
and Dean Thomas, who was very good at drawing, had put up some impressive
new banners, most of which depicted Harry zooming around the Horntail's
head on his Firebolt, though a couple showed Cedric with his head on fire.
Harry helped himself to food; he had almost forgotten what it was like
to feel properly hungry, and sat down with Ron and Hermione. He couldn't
believe how happy he felt; he had Ron back on his side, he'd gotten through
the first task, and he wouldn't have to face the second one for three months.
"Blimey, this is heavy," said Lee Jordan, picking up the golden egg,
which Harry had left on a table, and weighing it in his hands. "Open
it, Harry, go on! Let's just see what's inside it!"
"He's supposed to work out the clue on his own," Hermione said swiftly.
"It's in the tournament rules. . . ."
"I was supposed to work out how to get past the dragon on my own too,"
Harry muttered, so only Hermione could hear him, and she grinned rather
guiltily.
"Yeah, go on, Harry, open it!" several people echoed.
Lee passed Harry the egg, and Harry dug his fingernails into the groove
that ran all the way around it and prised it open.
It was hollow and completely empty - but the moment Harry opened it,
the most horrible noise, a loud and screechy wailing, filled the room.
The nearest thing to it Harry had ever heard was the ghost orchestra at
Nearly Headless Nick's deathday party, who had all been playing the musical
saw.
"Shut it!" Fred bellowed, his hands over his ears.
"What was that?" said Seamus Finnigan, staring at the egg as
Harry slammed it shut again. "Sounded like a banshee ... Maybe you've
got to get past one of those next, Harry!"
"It was someone being tortured!" said Neville, who had gone very white
and spilled sausage rolls all over the floor. "You're going to have
to fight the Cruciatus Curse!"
"Don't be a prat, Neville, that's illegal," said George. "They
wouldn't use the Cruciatus Curse on the champions. I thought it sounded
a bit like Percy singing . .. maybe you've got to attack him while he's
in the shower. Harry."
"Want a jam tart, Hermione?" said Fred.
Hermione looked doubtfully at the plate he was offering her. Fred grinned.
"It's all right," he said. "I haven't done anything to them.
It's the custard creams you've got to watch -"
Neville, who had just bitten into a custard cream, choked and spat
it out. Fred laughed.
"Just my little joke, Neville.. . ."
Hermione took a jam tart. Then she said, "Did you get all this from
the kitchens, Fred?"
"Yep," said Fred, grinning at her. He put on a high-pitched squeak
and imitated a house-elf. "'Anything we can get you, sir, anything
at all!' They're dead helpful... get me a roast ox if I said I was
peckish."
"How do you get in there?" Hermione said in an innocently casual sort
of voice.
"Easy," said Fred, "concealed door behind a painting of a bowl of fruit.
Just tickle the pear, and it giggles and -" He stopped and looked suspiciously
at her. "Why?"
"Nothing," said Hermione quickly.
"Going to try and lead the house-elves out on strike now, are you?"
said George. "Going to give up all the leaflet stuff and try and stir them
up into rebellion?"
Several people chortled. Hermione didn't answer.
"Don't you go upsetting them and telling them they've got to take clothes
and salaries!" said Fred warningly. "You'll put them off their cooking!"
Just then, Neville caused a slight diversion by turning into a large
canary.
"Oh - sorry, Neville!" Fred shouted over all the laughter. "I for-got
- it was the custard
creams we hexed -"
Within a minute, however, Neville had molted, and once his feathers
had fallen off, he reappeared looking entirely normal. He even joined
in laughing.
"Canary Creams!" Fred shouted to the excitable crowd. "George
and I invented them - seven Sickles each, a bargain!"
It was nearly one in the morning when Harry finally went up to the
dormitory with Ron, Neville, Seamus, and Dean. Before he pulled the
curtains of his four-poster shut. Harry set his tiny model of the
Hungarian Horntail on the table next to his bed, where it yawned, curled
up, and closed its eyes. Really, Harry thought, as he pulled the
hangings on his four-poster closed, Hagrid had a point.. . they were all
right, really, dragons. . . .
The start of December brought wind and sleet to Hogwarts. Drafty
though the castle always was in winter. Harry was glad of its fires
and thick walls every time he passed the Durmstrang ship on the lake, which
was pitching in the high winds, its black sails billowing
against the dark skies. He thought the Beauxbatons caravan was
likely to be pretty chilly too. Hagrid, he noticed, was keeping Madame
Maxime's horses well provided with their preferred drink of single-malt
whiskey; the fumes wafting from the trough in the comer of their paddock
was enough to make the entire Care of Magical Creatures class light-headed.
This was unhelpful, as they were still tending the horrible skrewts and
needed their wits about them.
"I'm not sure whether they hibernate or not," Hagrid told the shivering
class in the windy pumpkin patch next lesson. "Thought we'd jus'
try an see if they fancied a kip . . . we'll jus' settle 'em down in these
boxes. . . ."
There were now only ten skrewts left; apparently their desire to kill
one another had not been exercised out of them. Each of them was
now approaching six feet in length. Their thick gray armor; their
powerful, scuttling legs; their fire-blasting ends; their stings and their
suckers, combined to make the skrewts the most repul-sive things Harry
had ever seen. The class looked dispiritedly at the enormous boxes
Hagrid had brought out, all lined with pillows and fluffy blankets.
"We'll jus' lead 'em in here," Hagrid said, "an' put the lids on, and
we'll see what happens."
But the skrewts, it transpired, did not hibernate, and did not ap-preciate
being forced into pillow-lined boxes and nailed in. Hagrid was soon
yelling, "Don panic, now, don' panic!" while the skrewts rampaged around
the pumpkin patch, now strewn with the smol-dering wreckage of the boxes.
Most of the class - Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle in the lead - had fled into
Hagrid's cabin through the back door and barricaded themselves in; Harry,
Ron, and Hermi-one, however, were among those who remained outside trying
to help Hagrid. Together they managed to restrain and tie up nine
of the skrewts, though at the cost of numerous burns and cuts; finally,
only one skrewt was left.
"Don' frighten him, now!" Hagrid shouted as Ron and Harry used
their wands to shoot jets of fiery sparks at the skrewt, which was advancing
menacingly on them, its sting arched, quivering, over its back. "Jus'
try an slip the rope 'round his sting, so he won hurt any o' the others!"
"Yeah, we wouldn't want that!" Ron shouted angrily as he and Harry
backed into the wall of Hagrid's cabin, still holding the skrewt off with
their sparks.
"Well, well, well. . . this does look like fun."
Rita Skeeter was leaning on Hagrid's garden fence, looking in at the
mayhem. She was wearing a thick magenta cloak with a furry purple
collar today, and her crocodile-skin handbag was over her arm.
Hagrid launched himself forward on top of the skrewt that was cornering
Harry and Ron and flattened it; a blast of fire shot out of its end, withering
the pumpkin plants nearby.
"Who're you?" Hagrid asked Rita Skeeter as he slipped a loop
of rope around the skrewt's sting and tightened it.
"Rita Skeeter, Daily Prophet reporter," Rita replied, beaming at him.
Her gold teeth glinted.
"Thought Dumbledore said you weren' allowed inside the school anymore,"
said Hagrid, frowning slightly as he got off the slightly squashed skrewt
and started tugging it over to its fellows.
Rita acted as though she hadn't heard what Hagrid had said.
"What are these fascinating creatures called?" she asked, beam-ing
still more widely.
"Blast-Ended Skrewts," grunted Hagrid.
"Really?" said Rita, apparently full of lively interest.
"I've never heard of them before...where do they come from?"
Harry noticed a dull red flush rising up out of Hagrid's wild black
beard, and his heart sank. Where had Hagrid got the skrewts from?
Hermione, who seemed to be thinking along these lines, said quickly, "They're
very interesting, aren't they? Aren't they. Harry?"
"What? Oh yeah . . . ouch . . . interesting," said Harry as she stepped
on his foot.
"Ah, you're here. Harry!" said Rita Skeeter as she looked
around. "So you like Care of Magical Creatures, do you? One
of your fa-vorite lessons?"
"Yes," said Harry stoutly. Hagrid beamed at him.
"Lovely," said Rita. "Really lovely. Been teaching long?" she
added to Hagrid.
Harry noticed her eyes travel over Dean (who had a nasty cut across
one cheek). Lavender (whose robes were badly singed), Sea-mus (who was
nursing several burnt fingers), and then to the cabin windows, where most
of the class stood, their noses pressed against the glass waiting to see
if the coast was clear.
"This is o'ny me second year," said Hagrid.
"Lovely... I don't suppose you'd like to give an interview, would you?
Share some of your experience of magical creatures? The Prophet does
a zoological column every Wednesday, as I'm sure you know. We could
feature these - er - Bang-Ended Scoots."
"Blast-Ended Skrewts," Hagrid said eagerly. "Er - yeah, why not?"
Harry had a very bad feeling about this, but there was no way of communicating
it to Hagrid without Rita Skeeter seeing, so he had to stand and watch
in silence as Hagrid and Rita Skeeter made arrangements to meet in the
Three Broomsticks for a good long in-terview later that week. Then
the bell rang up at the castle, signal-ing the end of the lesson.
"Well, good-bye, Harry!" Rita Skeeter called merrily to him as he set
off with Ron and Hermione. "Until Friday night, then, Hagrid!"
"She'll twist everything he says," Harry said under his breath.
"Just as long as he didn't import those skrewts illegally or any-thing,"
said Hermione desperately. They looked at one another - it was exactly
the sort of thing Hagrid might do.
"Hagrids been in loads of trouble before, and Dumbledores never sacked
him," said Ron consolingly. "Worst that can happen is Hagrid'll have
to get rid of the skrewts. Sorry . . . did I say worst? I meant
best."
Harry and Hermione laughed, and, feeling slightly more cheer-ful, went
off to lunch.
Harry thoroughly enjoyed double Divination that afternoon; they were
still doing star charts and predictions, but now that he and Ron were friends
once more, the whole thing seemed very funny again. Professor Trelawney,
who had been so pleased with the pair of them when they had been predicting
their own horrific deaths, quickly became irritated as they sniggered through
her explanation of the various ways in which Pluto could disrupt everyday
life.
"I would think," she said, in a mystical whisper that did not con-ceal
her obvious annoyance, "that some of us" - she stared very meaningfully
at Harry- "might be a little less frivolous had they seen what I
have seen during my crystal gazing last night. As I sat here, absorbed
in my needlework, the urge to consult the orb over-powered me. I
arose, I settled myself before it, and I gazed into its crystalline depths
. . . and what do you think I saw gazing back at me?"
"An ugly old bat in outsize specs?" Ron muttered under his breath.
Harry fought hard to keep his face straight.
"Death, my dears."
Parvati and Lavender both put their hands over their mouths, looking
horrified.
"Yes," said Professor Trelawney, nodding impressively, "it comes, ever
closer, it circles overhead like a vulture, ever lower. . . ever lower
over the castle. . . ."
She stared pointedly at Harry, who yawned very widely and obviously.
"It'd be a bit more impressive if she hadn't done it about eighty times
before," Harry said as they finally regained the fresh air of the staircase
beneath Professor Trelawney's room. "But if I'd dropped dead every
time she's told me I'm going to, I'd be a medical miracle."
"You'd be a sort of extra-concentrated ghost," said Ron, chortling,
as they passed the Bloody Baron going in the opposite direction, his wide
eyes staring sinisterly. "At least we didn't get homework.
I hope Hermione got loads off Professor Vector, I love not working when
she is. . . ."
But Hermione wasn't at dinner, nor was she in the library when they
went to look for her afterward. The only person in there was Viktor
Krum. Ron hovered behind the bookshelves for a while, watching Krum,
debating in whispers with Harry whether he should ask for an autograph
- but then Ron realized that six or seven giirls were lurking in the next
row of books, debating exactly the same thing, and he lost his enthusiasm
for the idea.
"Wonder where she's got to?" Ron said as he and Harry went back to
Gryffindor Tower.
"Dunno . . . balderdash."
But the Fat Lady had barely begun to swing forward when the sound of
racing feet behind them announced Hermione's arrival.
"Harry!" she panted, skidding to a halt beside him (the Fat Lady stared
down at her, eyebrows raised). "Harry, you've got to come - you've
got to come, the most amazing thing's happened- please -"
She seized Harry's arm and started to try to drag him back along the
corridor.
"What's the matter?" Harry said.
"I'll show you when we get there - oh come on, quick -"
Harry looked around at Ron; he looked back at Harry, intrigued.
"Okay," Harry said, starting off back down the corridor with Hermione,
Ron hurrying to keep up.
"Oh don't mind me!" the Fat Lady called irritably after them.
"Don't apologize for bothering me! I'll just hang here, wide open,
until you get back, shall I?"
"Yeah, thanks!" Ron shouted over his shoulder.
"Hermione, where are we going?" Harry asked, after she had led
them down through six floors, and started down the marble stair-case
into the entrance hall.
"You'll see, you'll see in a minute!" said Hermione excitedly.
She turned left at the bottom of the staircase and hurried toward the
door through which Cedric Diggory had gone the night after the Goblet of
Fire had regurgitated his and Harry's names. Harry had never been
through here before. He and Ron followed Hermione down a flight of
stone steps, but instead of ending up in a gloomy underground passage like
the one that led to Snape's dun-geon, they found themselves in a broad
stone corridor, brightly lit with torches, and decorated with cheerful
paintings that were mainly of food.
"Oh hang on . . ." said Harry slowly, halfway down the corridor. "Wait
a minute, Hermione. . . ."
"What?" She turned around to look at him, anticipation all over her
face.
"I know what this is about," said Harry.
He nudged Ron and pointed to the painting just behind Hermione.
It showed a gigantic silver fruit bowl.
"Hermione!" said Ron, cottoning on. "You're trying to rope us
into that spew stuff again!"
"No, no, I'm not!" she said hastily. "And it's not spew, Ron -"
"Changed the name, have you?" said Ron, frowning at her.
"What are we now, then, the House-Elf Liberation Front? I'm not barging
into that kitchen and trying to make them stop work, I'm not doing it -"
"I'm not asking you to!" Hermione said impatiently. "I
came down here just now, to talk to them all, and I found - oh come on,
Harry, I want to show you!"
She seized his arm again, pulled him in front of the picture of the
giant fruit bowl, stretched out her forefinger, and tickled the huge green
pear. It began to squirm, chuckling, and suddenly turned into a large
green door handle. Hermione seized it, pulled the door open, and
pushed Harry hard in the back, forcing him inside.
He had one brief glimpse of an enormous, high-ceilinged room, large
as the Great Hall above it, with mounds of glittering brass pots and pans
heaped around the stone walls, and a great brick fire-place at the other
end, when something small hurtled toward him from the middle of the room,
squealing, "Harry Potter, sir! Harry Potter!"
Next second all the wind had been knocked out of him as the squealing
elf hit him hard in the midriff, hugging him so tightly he thought his
ribs would break.
"D-Dobby?" Harry gasped.
"It is Dobby, sir, it is!" squealed the voice from somewhere
around his navel. "Dobby has been hoping and hoping to see Harry
Potter, sir, and Harry Potter has come to see him, sir!"
Dobby let go and stepped back a few paces, beaming up at Harry, his
enormous, green, tennis-ball-shaped eyes brimming with tears of happiness.
He looked almost exactly as Harry remem-bered him; the pencil-shaped nose,
the batlike ears, the long fingers and feet - all except the clothes, which
were very different.
When Dobby had worked for the Malfoys, he had always worn the same
filthy old pillowcase. Now, however, he was wearing the strangest
assortment of garments Harry had ever seen; he had done an even worse job
of dressing himself than the wizards at the World Cup. He was wearing
a tea cozy for a hat, on which he had pinned a number of bright badges;
a tie patterned with horseshoes over a bare chest, a pair of what looked
like children's soccer shorts, and odd socks. One of these, Harry
saw, was the black one Harry had removed from his own foot and tricked
Mr. Malfoy into giving Dobby, thereby setting Dobby free. The other
was covered in pink and orange stripes.
"Dobby, what're you doing here?" Harry said in amazement. "Dobby has
come to work at Hogwarts, sir!" Dobby squealed excitedly. "Professor
Dumbledore gave Dobby and Winky jobs, sir!
"Winky?" said Harry. "She's here too?"
"Yes, sir, yes!" said Dobby, and he seized Harry's hand and pulled
him off into the kitchen between the four long wooden tables that stood
there. Each of these tables, Harry noticed as he passed them, was
positioned exactly beneath the four House tables above, in the Great Hall.
At the moment, they were clear of food, dinner having finished, but he
supposed that an hour ago they had been laden with dishes that were then
sent up through the ceiling to their counterparts above.
At least a hundred little elves were standing around the kitchen, beaming,
bowing, and curtsying as Dobby led Harry past them. They were all
wearing the same uniform: a tea towel stamped with the Hogwarts crest,
and tied, as Winky's had been, like a toga.
Dobby stopped in front of the brick fireplace and pointed.
"Winky, sir!" he said.
Winky was sitting on a stool by the fire. Unlike Dobby, she had
obviously not foraged for clothes. She was wearing a neat little
skirt and blouse with a matching blue hat, which had holes in it for her
large ears. However, while every one of Dobby's strange collection
of garments was so clean and well cared for that it looked brand-new, Winky
was plainly not taking care other clothes at all. There were soup
stains all down her blouse and a burn in her skirt.
"Hello, Winky," said Harry.
Winky's lip quivered. Then she burst into tears, which spilled out
of her great brown eyes and splashed down her front, just as they had done
at the Quidditch World Cup.
"Oh dear," said Hermione. She and Ron had followed Harry and
Dobby to the end of the kitchen. "Winky, don't cry, please don't..."
But Winky cried harder than ever. Dobby, on the other hand, beamed
up at Harry.
"Would Harry Potter like a cup of tea?" he squeaked loudly, over Winky's
sobs.
"Er - yeah, okay," said Harry.
Instantly, about six house-elves came trotting up behind him, bearing
a large silver tray laden with a teapot, cups for Harry, Ron, and Hermione,
a milk jug, and a large plate of biscuits.
"Good service!" Ron said, in an impressed voice. Hermione
frowned at him, but the elves all looked delighted; they bowed very low
and retreated.
"How long have you been here, Dobby?" Harry asked as Dobby handed
around the tea.
"Only a week. Harry Potter, sir!" said Dobby happily. "Dobby
came to see Professor Dumbledore, sir. You see, sir, it is very diffi-cult
for a house-elf who has been dismissed to get a new position, sir, very
difficult indeed -"
At this, Winky howled even harder, her squashed-tomato of a nose dribbling
all down her front, though she made no effort to stem the flow.
"Dobby has traveled the country for two whole years, sir, trying to
find work!" Dobby squeaked. "But Dobby hasn't found work, sir,
because Dobby wants paying now!"
The house-elves all around the kitchen, who had been listening and
watching with interest, all looked away at these words, as though Dobby
had said something rude and embarrassing. Hermione, however, said,
"Good for you, Dobby!"
"Thank you, miss!" said Dobby, grinning toothily at her.
"But most wizards doesn't want a house-elf who wants paying, miss.
'That's not the point of a house-elf,' they says, and they slammed the
door in Dobby's face! Dobby likes work, but he wants to wear clothes
and he wants to be paid. Harry Potter.... Dobby likes be-ing free!"
The Hogwarts house-elves had now started edging away from Dobby, as
though he were carrying something contagious. Winky, however, remained
where she was, though there was a definite in-crease in the volume other
crying.
"And then, Harry Potter, Dobby goes to visit Winky, and finds out Winky
has been freed too, sir!" said Dobby delightedly.
At this, Winky flung herself forward off her stool and lay face-down
on the flagged stone floor, beating her tiny fists upon it and positively
screaming with misery. Hermione hastily dropped down to her knees
beside her and tried to comfort her, but nothing she said made the slightest
difference. Dobby continued with his story, shouting shrilly over
Winky's screeches.
"And then Dobby had the idea. Harry Potter, sir! 'Why doesn't Dobby
and Winky find work together?' Dobby says. 'Where is there
enough work for two house-elves?' says Winky. And Dobby thinks, and it
comes to him, sir! Hogwarts! So Dobby and Winky came to see
Professor Dumbledore, sir, and Professor Dumbledore took us on!"
Dobby beamed very brightly, and happy tears welled in his eyes again.
"And Professor Dumbledore says he will pay Dobby, sir, if Dobby wants
paying! And so Dobby is a free elf, sir, and Dobby gets a Galleon
a week and one day off a month!"
"That's not very much!" Hermione shouted indignantly from the floor,
over Winky's continued screaming and fist-beating.
"Professor Dumbledore offered Dobby ten Galleons a week, and weekends
off," said Dobby, suddenly giving a little shiver, as though the prospect
of so much leisure and riches were frightening, "but Dobby beat him down,
miss. . . . Dobby likes freedom, miss, but he isn't wanting too much, miss,
he likes work better."
"And how much is Professor Dumbledore paying you, Winky?" Hermione
asked kindly.
If she had thought this would cheer up Winky, she was wildly mistaken.
Winky did stop crying, but when she sat up she was glar-ing at Hermione
through her massive brown eyes, her whole face sopping wet and suddenly
furious.
"Winky is a disgraced elf, but Winky is not yet getting paid!" she
squeaked. "Winky is not sunk so low as that! Winky is properly
ashamed of being freed!"
"Ashamed?" said Hermione blankly. "But - Winky, come on!
It's Mr. Crouch who should be ashamed, not you! You didn't do anything
wrong, he was really horrible to you -"
But at these words, Winky clapped her hands over the holes in her hat,
flattening her ears so that she couldn't hear a word, and screeched, "You
is not insulting my master, miss! You is not insult-ing Mr. Crouch!
Mr. Crouch is a good wizard, miss! Mr. Crouch is right to sack bad
Winky!"
"Winky is having trouble adjusting, Harry Potter," squeaked Dobby confidentially.
"Winky forgets she is not bound to Mr. Crouch anymore; she is allowed to
speak her mind now, but she won't do it."
"Can't house-elves speak their minds about their masters, then?" Harry
asked.
"Oh no, sir, no," said Dobby, looking suddenly serious. "'Tis
part of the house-elf's enslavement, sir. We keeps their secrets
and our silence, sir. We upholds the family's honor, and we never
speaks ill of them - though Professor Dumbledore told Dobby he does not
insist upon this. Professor Dumbledore said we is free to - to-"
Dobby looked suddenly nervous and beckoned Harry closer. Harry
bent forward. Dobby whispered, "He said we is free to call him a - a barmy
old codger if we likes, sir!"
Dobby gave a frightened sort of giggle.
"But Dobby is not wanting to, Harry Potter," he said, talking normally
again, and shaking his head so that his ears flapped. "Dobby likes
Professor Dumbledore very much, sir, and is proud to keep his secrets and
our silence for him."
"But you can say what you like about the Malfoys now?" Harry asked
him, grinning.
A slightly fearful look came into Dobby's immense eyes.
"Dobby - Dobby could," he said doubtfully. He squared his small shoulders.
"Dobby could tell Harry Potter that his old mas-ters were - were - bad
Dark wizards'."
Dobby stood for a moment, quivering all over, horror-struck by his
own daring - then he rushed over to the nearest table and be-gan banging
his head on it very hard, squealing, "Bad Dobby! Bad Dobby!"
Harry seized Dobby by the back of his tie and pulled him away from
the table.
"Thank you. Harry Potter, thank you," said Dobby breathlessly, rubbing
his head.
"You just need a bit of practice," Harry said.
"Practice!" squealed Winky furiously. "You is ought to
be ashamed of yourself, Dobby, talking that way about your masters!"
"They isn't my masters anymore, Winky!" said Dobby defiantly.
"Dobby doesn't care what they think anymore!"
"Oh you is a bad elf, Dobby!" moaned Winky, tears leaking down
her face once more. "My poor Mr. Crouch, what is he doing without
Winky? He is needing me, he is needing my help! I is look-ing
after the Crouches all my life, and my mother is doing it before me, and
my grandmother is doing it before her ... oh what is they saying if they
knew Winky was freed? Oh the shame, the shame!" She buried
her face in her skirt again and bawled.
"Winky," said Hermione firmly, "I'm quite sure Mr. Crouch is get-ting
along perfectly well without you. We've seen him, you know -"
"You is seeing my master?" said Winky breathlessly, raising her
tearstained face out of her skirt once more and goggling at Hermione.
"You is seeing him here at Hogwarts?"
"Yes," said Hermione, "he and Mr. Bagman are judges in the Tri-wizard
Tournament."
"Mr. Bagman comes too?" squeaked Winky, and to Harry 's great surprise
(and Ron's and Hermione's too, by the looks on their faces), she looked
angry again. "Mr. Bagman is a bad wizard! A very bad wizard!
My master isn't liking him, oh no, not at all!"
"Bagman - bad?" said Harry.
"Oh yes," Winky said, nodding her head furiously, "My master is telling
Winky some things! But Winky is not saying.. . Winky - Winky keeps
her master's secrets. ..."
She dissolved yet again in tears; they could hear her sobbing into
her skirt, "Poor master, poor master, no Winky to help him no more!"
They couldn't get another sensible word out of Winky. They left
her to her crying and finished their tea, while Dobby chatted hap-pily
about his life as a free elf and his plans for his wages.
"Dobby is going to buy a sweater next, Harry Potter!" he said happily,
pointing at his bare chest,
"Tell you what, Dobby," said Ron, who seemed to have taken a great
liking to the elf, "I'll give you the one my mum knits me this Christmas,
I always get one from her. You don't mind maroon, do you?"
Dobby was delighted.
"We might have to shrink it a bit to fit you," Ron told him, "but it'll
go well with your tea cozy."
As they prepared to take their leave, many of the surrounding elves
pressed in upon them, offering snacks to take back upstairs. Hermione
refused, with a pained look at the way the elves kept bowing and curtsying,
but Harry and Ron loaded their pockets with cream cakes and pies.
"Thanks a lot!" Harry said to the elves, who had all clustered around
the door to say good night. "See you, Dobby!"
"Harry Potter . . . can Dobby come and see you sometimes, sir?"
Dobby asked tentatively.
" 'Course you can," said Harry, and Dobby beamed.
"You know what?" said Ron, once he, Hermione, and Harry had left
the kitchens behind and were climbing the steps into the en-trance hall
again. "All these years I've been really impressed with Fred and
George, nicking food from the kitchens - well, it's not exactly difficult,
is it? They can't wait to give it away!"
"I think this is the best thing that could have happened to those elves,
you know," said Hermione, leading the way back up the mar-ble staircase.
"Dobby coming to work here, I mean. The other elves will see how
happy he is, being free, and slowly it'll dawn on them that they want that
too!"
"Let's hope they don't look too closely at Winky," said Harry.
"Oh she'll cheer up," said Hermione, though she sounded a bit doubtful.
"Once the shock's worn off, and she's got used to Hog-warts, she'll see
how much better off she is without that Crouch man."
"She seems to love him," said Ron thickly (he had just started on a
cream cake).
"Doesn't think much of Bagman, though, does she?" said Harry.
"Wonder what Crouch says at home about him?"
"Probably says he's not a very good Head of Department," said Hermione,
"and let's face it... he's got a point, hasn't he?"
"I'd still rather work for him than old Crouch," said Ron. "At least
Bagman's got a sense of humor."
"Don't let Percy hear you saying that," Hermione said, smiling slightly.
"Yeah, well, Percy wouldn't want to work for anyone with a sense of
humor, would he?" said Ron, now starting on a chocolate eclair. "Percy
wouldn't recognize a joke if it danced naked in front of him wearing Dobby's
tea cozy."
CHAPTER TWENTY-TWO
THE UNEXPECTED TASK
Potter! Weasley! Will you pay attention?"
Professor McGonagall's irritated voice cracked like a whip through
the Transfiguration class on Thursday, and Harry and Ron both jumped and
looked up.
It was the end of the lesson; they had finished their work; the guinea
fowl they had been changing into guinea pigs had been shut away in a large
cage on Professor McGonagall's desk (Neville's still had feathers); they
had copied down their homework from the blackboard ("Describe, with examples,
the ways in which Transform-ing Spells must be adapted when performing
Cross-Species Switches"}. The bell was due to ring at any moment,
and Harry and Ron, who had been having a sword fight with a couple of Fred
and George's fake wands at the back of the class, looked up, Ron holding
a tin parrot and Harry, a rubber haddock.
"Now that Potter and Weasley have been kind enough to act their age,"
said Professor McGonagall, with an angry look at the pair of them as the
head of Harry's haddock drooped and fell silently to the floor - Ron's
parrot's beak had severed it moments before - "I have something to say
to you all.
"The Yule Ball is approaching - a traditional part of the Tri-wizard
Tournament and an opportunity for us to socialize with our foreign guests.
Now, the ball will be open only to fourth years and above - although you
may invite a younger student if you wish -"
Lavender Brown let out a shrill giggle. Parvati Patil nudged
her hard in the ribs, her face working furiously as she too fought not
to giggle. They both looked around at Harry, Professor McGonagall
ignored them, which Harry thought was distinctly unfair, as she had just
told off him and Ron.
"Dress robes will be worn," Professor McGonagall continued, "and the
ball will start at eight o'clock on Christmas Day, finishing at midnight
in the Great Hall. Now then -"
Professor McGonagall stared deliberately around the class.
"The Yule Ball is of course a chance for us all to - er - let our hair
down," she said, in a disapproving voice.
Lavender giggled harder than ever, with her hand pressed hard against
her mouth to stifle the sound. Harry could see what was funny this
time: Professor McGonagall, with her hair in a tight bun, looked
as though she had never let her hair down in any sense.
"But that does NOT mean," Professor McGonagall went on, "that we will
be relaxing the standards of behavior we expect from Hogwarts students.
I will be most seriously displeased if a Gryffin-dor student embarrasses
the school in any way."
The bell rang, and there was the usual scuffle of activity as every-one
packed their bags and swung them onto their shoulders.
Professor McGonagall called above the noise, "Potter - a word, if you
please."
Assuming this had something to do with his headless rubber haddock,
Harry proceeded gloomily to the teacher's desk. Professor McGonagall
waited until the rest of the class had gone, and then said, "Potter, the
champions and their partners -"
"What partners?" said Harry.
Profesor McGonagall looked suspiciously at him, as though she thought
he was trying to be funny.
"Your partners for the Yule Ball, Potter," she said coldly. "Your dance
partners."
Harry's insides seemed to curl up and shrivel.
"Dance partners?" He felt himself going red. "I don't dance,"
he said quickly.
"Oh yes, you do," said Professor McGonagall irritably. "That's
what I'm telling you. Traditionally, the champions and their part-ners
open the ball."
Harry had a sudden mental image of himself in a top hat and tails,
accompanied by a girl in the sort of frilly dress Aunt Petunia always wore
to Uncle Vernon's work parties.
"I'm not dancing," he said.
"It is traditional," said Professor McGonagall firmly. "You are a Hogwarts
champion, and you will do what is expected of you as a representative of
the school. So make sure you get yourself a part-ner, Potter."
"But-I don't-"
"You heard me, Potter," said Professor McGonagall in a very final sort
of way.
A week ago. Harry would have said finding a partner for a dance
would be a cinch compared to taking on a Hungarian Horntail. But
now that he had done the latter, and was facing the prospect of asking
a girl to the ball, he thought he'd rather have another round with the
dragon.
Harry had never known so many people to put their names down to stay
at Hogwarts for Christmas; he always did, of course, because the alternative
was usually going back to Privet Drive, but he had always been very much
in the minority before now. This year, however, everyone in the fourth
year and above seemed to be staying, and they all seemed to Harry to be
obsessed with the com-ing ball - or at least all the girls were, and it
was amazing how many girls Hogwarts suddenly seemed to hold; he had never
quite noticed that before. Girls giggling and whispering in the corridors,
girls shrieking with laughter as boys passed them, girls excitedly comparing
notes on what they were going to wear on Christmas night... .
"Why do they have to move in packs?" Harry asked Ron as a dozen
or so girls walked past them, sniggering and staring at Harry. "How're
you supposed to get one on their own to ask them?"
"Lasso one?" Ron suggested. "Got any idea who you're going
to try?"
Harry didn't answer. He knew perfectly well whom he'd like to ask,
but working up the nerve was something else. . . . Cho was a year older
than he was; she was very pretty; she was a very good Quidditch player,
and she was also very popular.
Ron seemed to know what was going on inside Harry's head.
"Listen, you're not going to have any trouble. You're a cham-pion.
You've just beaten a Hungarian Horntail. I bet they'll be queuing
up to go with you."
In tribute to their recently repaired friendship, Ron had kept the
bitterness in his voice to a bare minimum. Moreover, to Harry's amazement,
he turned out to be quite right.
A curly-haired third-year Hufflepuff girl to whom Harry had never spoken
in his life asked him to go to the ball with her the very next day.
Harry was so taken aback he said no before he'd even stopped to consider
the matter. The girl walked off looking rather hurt, and Harry had
to endure Dean's, Seamus's, and Ron's taunts about her all through History
of Magic. The following day, two more girls asked him, a second year and
(to his horror) a fifth year who looked as though she might knock him out
if he refused.
"She was quite good-looking," said Ron fairly, after he'd stopped laughing.
"She was a foot taller than me," said Harry, still unnerved. "Imagine
what I'd look like trying to dance with her."
Hermione's words about Krum kept coming back to him. "They only like
him because he's famous!" Harry doubted very much if any of the girls
who had asked to be his partner so far would have wanted to go to the ball
with him if he hadn't been a school cham-pion. Then he wondered if
this would bother him if Cho asked him.
On the whole. Harry had to admit that even with the embar-rassing prospect
of opening the ball before him, life had definitely improved since he had
got through the first task. He wasn't attract-ing nearly as much
unpleasantness in the corridors anymore, which he suspected had a lot to
do with Cedric - he had an idea Cedric might have told the Hufflepuffs
to leave Harry alone, in gratitude for Harry's tip-off about the dragons.
There seemed to be fewer Support Cedric Diggory! badges around too.
Draco Malfoy, of course, was still quoting Rita Skeeter's article to him
at every possi-ble opportunity, but he was getting fewer and fewer laughs
out of it - and just to heighten Harry's feeling of well-being, no story
about Hagrid had appeared in the Daily Prophet.
"She didn' seem very int'rested in magical creatures, ter tell yeh
the truth," Hagrid said, when Harry, Ron, and Hermione asked him how his
interview with Rita Skeeter had gone during the last Care of Magical Creatures
lesson of the term. To their very great relief, Hagrid had given
up on direct contact with the skrewts now, and they were merely sheltering
behind his cabin today, sitting at a trestle table and preparing a fresh
selection of food with which to tempt the skrewts.
"She jus' wanted me ter talk about you, Harry," Hagrid contin-ued in
a low voice. "Well, I told her we'd been friends since I went ter
fetch yeh from the Dursleys. 'Never had to tell him off in four years?'
she said. 'Never played you up in lessons, has he?' I told
her no, an she didn' seem happy at all. Yeh'd think she wanted me
to say yeh were horrible, Harry."
" 'Course she did," said Harry, throwing lumps of dragon liver into
a large metal bowl and picking up his knife to cut some more. "She
can't keep writing about what a tragic little hero I am, it'll get boring."
"She wants a new angle, Hagrid," said Ron wisely as he shelled salamander
eggs. "You were supposed to say Harry's a mad delin-quent!"
"But he's not!" said Hagrid, looking genuinely shocked.
"She should've interviewed Snape," said Harry grimly. "He'd give her
the goods on me any day. 'Potter has been crossing lines ever since
he first arrived at this school. . . .'"
"Said that, did he?" said Hagrid, while Ron and Hermione laughed.
"Well, yeh might've bent a few rules. Harry, bu' yeh're all righ' really,
aren' you?"
"Cheers, Hagrid," said Harry, grinning.
"You coming to this ball thing on Christmas Day, Hagrid?" said
Ron.
"Though' I might look in on it, yeah," said Hagrid gruffly. "Should
be a good do, I reckon. You'll be openin the dancin', won yeh, Harry?
Who're you takin'?"
"No one, yet," said Harry, feeling himself going red again. Hag-rid
didn't pursue the subject.
The last week of term became increasingly boisterous as it pro-gressed.
Rumors about the Yule Ball were flying everywhere, though Harry didn't
believe half of them - for instance, that Dumbledore had bought eight hundred
barrels of mulled mead from Madam Rosmerta. It seemed to be fact, however,
that he had booked the Weird Sisters. Exactly who or what the Weird
Sisters were Harry didn't know, never having had access to a wizard's wire-less,
but he deduced from the wild excitement of those who had grown up listening
to the WWN (Wizarding Wireless Network) that they were a very famous musical
group.
Some of the teachers, like little Professor Flitwick, gave up trying
to teach them much when their minds were so clearly elsewhere; he allowed
them to play games in his lesson on Wednesday, and spent most of it talking
to Harry about the perfect Summoning Charm
Harry had used during the first task of the Triwizard Tournament.
Other teachers were not so generous. Nothing would ever deflect Professor
Binns, for example, from plowing on through his notes on goblin rebellions
- as Binns hadn't let his own death stand inn the way of continuing to teach,
they supposed a small thing like Christmas wasn't going to put him off.
It was amazing how he could make even bloody and vicious goblin riots sound
as boring as Percys cauldron-bottom report. Professors McGonagall
and Moody kept them working until the very last second of their classes
too, and Snape, of course, would no sooner let them play games in class
than adopt Harry. Staring nastily around at them all, he informed
them that he would be testing them on poison antidotes during the last
lesson of the term.
"Evil, he is," Ron said bitterly that night in the Gryffindor com-mon
room. "Springing a test on us on the last day. Ruining the last bit of
term with a whole load of studying."
"Mmm . . . you're not exactly straining yourself, though, are you?"
said Hermione, looking at him over the top of her Potions notes.
Ron was busy building a card castle out of his Exploding Snap pack - a
much more interesting pastime than with Muggle cards, because of the chance
that the whole thing would blow up at any second.
"It's Christmas, Hermione," said Harry lazily; he was rereading Flying
with the Cannons for the tenth time in an armchair near the fire.
Hermione looked severely over at him too. "I'd have thought you'd
be doing something constructive, Harry, even if you don't want to learn
your antidotes!"
"Like what?" Harry said as he watched Joey Jenkins of the Can-nons
belt a Bludger toward a Ballycastle Bats Chaser.
"That egg!" Hermione hissed.
"Come on, Hermione, I've got till February the twenty-fourth," Harry
said.
He had put the golden egg upstairs in his trunk and hadn't opened it
since the celebration party after the first task. There were still two
and a half months to go until he needed to know what all the screechy wailing
meant, after all.
"But it might take weeks to work it out!" said Hermione. "You're
going to look a real idiot if everyone else knows what the next task is
and you don't!"
"Leave him alone, Hermione, he's earned a bit of a break," said Ron,
and he placed the last two cards on top of the castle and the whole lot
blew up, singeing his eyebrows.
"Nice look, Ron ... go well with your dress robes, that will."
It was Fred and George. They sat down at the table with Harry,
Ron, and Hermione as Ron felt how much damage had been done.
"Ron, can we borrow Pigwidgeon?" George asked.
"No, he's off delivering a letter," said Ron. "Why?"
"Because George wants to invite him to the ball," said Fred sar-castically.
"Because we want to send a letter, you stupid great prat," said George.
"Who d'you two keep writing to, eh?" said Ron.
"Nose out, Ron, or I'll burn that for you too," said Fred, waving his
wand threateningly. "So . . . you lot got dates for the ball yet?"
"Nope," said Ron.
"Well, you'd better hurry up, mate, or all the good ones will be gone,"
said Fred.
"Who're you going with, then?" said Ron.
"Angelina," said Fred promptly, without a trace of embar-rassment.
"What?" said Ron, taken aback. "You've already asked her?"
"Good point," said Fred. He turned his head and called across the common
room, "Oi! Angelina!"
Angelina, who had been chatting with Alicia Spinnet near the fire,
looked over at him.
"What?" she called back.
"Want to come to the ball with me?"
Angelina gave Fred an appraising sort of look.
"All right, then," she said, and she turned back to Alicia and car-ried
on chatting with a bit of a grin on her face.
"There you go," said Fred to Harry and Ron, "piece of cake."
He got to his feet, yawning, and said, "We'd better use a school owl
then, George, come on. .. ."
They left. Ron stopped feeling his eyebrows and looked across
the smoldering wreck of his card castle at Harry.
"We should get a move on, you know . . . ask someone. He's right.
We don't want to end up with a pair of trolls."
Hermione let out a sputter of indignation.
"A pair of... what, excuse me?"
"Well - you know," said Ron, shrugging. "I'd rather go alone
than with - with Eloise Midgen, say."
"Her acne's loads better lately - and she's really nice!"
"Her nose is off-center," said Ron.
"Oh I see," Hermione said, bristling. "So basically, you're going
to take the best-looking girl who'll have you, even if she's com-pletely
horrible?"
"Er - yeah, that sounds about right," said Ron.
"I'm going to bed," Hermione snapped, and she swept off
to-ward the girls' staircase without another word.
The Hogwarts staff, demonstrating a continued desire to impress the
visitors from Beauxbatons and Durmstrang, seemed deter-mined to show the
castle at its best this Christmas. When the dec-orations went up.
Harry noticed that they were the most stunning he had yet seen inside the
school. Everlasting icicles had been at-tached to the banisters of
the marble staircase; the usual twelve Christmas trees in the Great Hall
were bedecked with everything from luminous holly berries to real, hooting,
golden owls, and the suits of armor had all been bewitched to sing carols
whenever any-one passed them. It was quite something to hear "0 Come,
All Ye Faithful" sung by an empty helmet that only knew half the words.
Several times, Filch the caretaker had to extract Peeves from inside the
armor, where he had taken to hiding, filling in the gaps in the songs with
lyrics of his own invention, all of which were very rude.
And still. Harry hadn't asked Cho to the ball. He and Ron
were getting very nervous now, though as Harry pointed out, Ron would look
much less stupid than he would without a partner;
Harry was supposed to be starting the dancing with the other champions.
"I suppose there's always Moaning Myrtle," he said gloomily, re-ferring
to the ghost who haunted the girls' toilets on the second floor.
"Harry - we've just got to grit our teeth and do it," said Ron on Friday
morning, in a tone that suggested they were planning the storming of an
impregnable fortress. "When we get back to the common room tonight,
we'll both have partners - agreed?"
"Er . . . okay," said Harry.
But every time he glimpsed Cho that day - during break, and then lunchtime,
and once on the way to History of Magic - she was surrounded by friends.
Didn't she ever go anywhere alone? Could he perhaps ambush her as
she was going into a bathroom? But no - she even seemed to go there
with an escort of four or five girls. Yet if he didn't do it soon,
she was bound to have been asked by somebody else.
He found it hard to concentrate on Snape's Potions test, and consequently
forgot to add the key ingredient - a bezoar - meaning that he received
bottom marks. He didn't care, though; he was too busy screwing up
his courage for what he was about to do. When the bell rang, he grabbed
his bag, and hurried to the dun-geon door.
"I'll meet you at dinner," he said to Ron and Hermione, and he dashed
off upstairs.
He'd just have to ask Cho for a private word, that was all. ... He
hurried off through the packed corridors looking for her, and (rather sooner
than he had expected) he found her, emerging from a Defense Against the
Dark Arts lesson.
"Er - Cho? Could I have a word with you?"
Giggling should be made illegal. Harry thought furiously, as all the
girls around Cho started doing it. She didn't, though. She
said, "Okay," and followed him out of earshot other classmates.
Harry turned to look at her and his stomach gave a weird lurch as though
he had missed a step going downstairs.
"Er," he said.
He couldn't ask her. He couldn't. But he had to.
Cho stood there looking puzzled, watching him. The words came out
before Harry had quite got his tongue around them.
"Wangoballwime?"
"Sorry?" said Cho.
"D'you - d'you want to go to the ball with me?" said Harry.
Why did he have to go red now? Why?
"Oh!" s aid Cho, and she went red too. "Oh Harry, I'm really
sorry," and she truly looked it. "I've already said I'll go with
some-one else."
"Oh," said Harry.
It was odd; a moment before his insides had been writhing like snakes,
but suddenly he didn't seem to have any insides at all.
"Oh okay," he said, "no problem."
"I'm really sorry," she said again.
"That's okay," said Harry.
They stood there looking at each other, and then Cho said, "Well-"
"Yeah," said Harry.
"Well, 'bye," said Cho, still very red. She walked away.
Harry called after her, before he could stop himself.
"Who're you going with?"
"Oh - Cedric," she said. "Cedric Diggory."
"Oh right," said Harry.
His insides had come back again. It felt as though they had been
filled with lead in their absence.
Completely forgetting about dinner, he walked slowly back up to Gryffindor
Tower, Cho's voice echoing in his ears with every step he took. "Cedric
- Cedric Diggory." He had been startinng to quite like Cedric - prepared
to overlook the fact that he had once beaten him at Quidditch, and was
handsome, and popular, and nearly everyone's favorite champion. Now
he suddenly realized that Cedric was in fact a useless pretty boy who didn't
have enough brains to fill an eggcup.
"Fairy lights," he said dully to the Fat Lady - the password had been
changed the previous day.
"Yes, indeed, dear!" she trilled, straightening her new tinsel
hair band as she swung forward to admit him.
Entering the common room, Harry looked around, and to his surprise
he saw Ron sitting ashen-faced in a distant corner. Ginny was sitting
with him, talking to him in what seemed to be a low, soothing voice.
"What's up, Ron?" said Harry, joining them.
Ron looked up at Harry, a sort of blind horror in his face.
"Why did I do it?" he said wildly. "I don't know what made me
do it!
"What?" said Harry.
"He - er - just asked Fleur Delacour to go to the ball with him," said
Ginny. She looked as though she was fighting back a smile, but she
kept patting Ron's arm sympathetically.
"You what?' said Harry.
"I don't know what made me do it!" Ron gasped again. "What
was I playing at? There were people - all around - I've gone mad - everyone
watching! I was just walking past her in the en-trance hall - she
was standing there talking to Diggory - and it sort of came over me - and
I asked her!"
Ron moaned and put his face in his hands. He kept talking, though
the words were barely distinguishable.
"She looked at me like I was a sea slug or something. Didn't
even answer. And then - I dunno - I just sort of came to my senses
and ran for it."
"She's part veela," said Harry. "You were right - her grand-mother
was one. It wasn't your fault, I bet you just walked past when she
was turning on the old charm for Diggory and got a blast of it - but she
was wasting her time. He's going with Cho Chang."
Ron looked up.
"I asked her to go with me just now," Harry said dully, "and she told
me."
Ginny had suddenly stopped smiling.
"This is mad," said Ron. "We're the only ones left who haven't
got anyone - well, except Neville. Hey - guess who he asked?
Hermione!"
"What?" said Harry, completely distracted by this startling news.
"Yeah, I know!" said Ron, some of the color coming back into
his face as he started to laugh. "He told me after Potions!
Said she's always been really nice, helping him out with work and stuff-
but she told him she was already going with someone. Ha! As
if! She just didn't want to go with Neville ... I mean, who would?"
"Don't!" said Ginny, annoyed. "Don't laugh -"
Just then Hermione climbed in through the portrait hole.
"Why weren't you two at dinner?" she said, coming over to join
them.
"Because - oh shut up laughing, you two - because they've both just
been turned down by girls they asked to the ball!" said Ginny.
That shut Harry and Ron up.
"Thanks a bunch, Ginny," said Ron sourly.
"All the good-looking ones taken, Ron?" said Hermione loftily.
"Eloise Midgen starting to look quite pretty now, is she? Well, I'm
sure you'll find someone somewhere who'll have you."
But Ron was staring at Hermione as though suddenly seeing her in a
whole new light.
"Hermione, Neville's right - you are a girl. . . ."
"Oh well spotted," she said acidly.
"Well - you can come with one of us!"
"No, I can't," snapped Hermione.
"Oh come on," he said impatiently, "we need partners, we're go-ing
to look really stupid if we haven't got any, everyone else has . . ."
"I can't come with you," said Hermione, now blushing, "because I'm
already going with someone."
"No, you're not!" said Ron. "You just said that to get rid of
Neville!"
"Oh did I?" said Hermione, and her eyes flashed dangerously.
"Just because it's taken you three years to notice, Ron, doesn't mean no
one else has spotted I'm a girl!"
Ron stared at her. Then he grinned again.
"Okay, okay, we know you're a girl," he said. "That do?
Will you come now?"
"I've already told you!" Hermione said very angrily. "I'm
going with someone else!"
And she stormed off toward the girls' dormitories again.
"She's lying," said Ron flatly, watching her go.
"She's not," said Ginny quietly.
"Who is it then?" said Ron sharply.
"I'm not telling you, it's her business," said Ginny.
"Right," said Ron, who looked extremely put out, "this is getting stupid.
Ginny, you can go with Harry, and I'll just -"
"I can't," said Ginny, and she went scarlet too. "I'm going with -
with Neville. He asked me when Hermione said no, and I thought. .
. well. . . I'm not going to be able to go otherwise, I'm not in fourth
year." She looked extremely miserable. "I think I'll go and
have dinner," she said, and she got up and walked off to the portrait hole,
her head bowed.
Ron goggled at Harry.
"What's got into them?" he demanded.
But Harry had just seen Parvati and Lavender come in through the portrait
hole. The time had come for drastic action.
"Wait here," he said to Ron, and he stood up, walked straight up to
Parvati, and said, "Parvati? Will you go to the ball with me?"
Parvati went into a fit of giggles. Harry waited for them to
sub-side, his fingers crossed in the pocket of his robes.
"Yes, all right then," she said finally, blushing furiously.
"Thanks," said Harry, in relief. "Lavender - will you go with
Ron?"
"She's going with Seamus," said Parvati, and the pair of them giggled
harder than ever.
Harry sighed.
"Can't you think of anyone who'd go with Ron?" he said, lower-ing
his voice so that Ron wouldn't hear.
"What about Hermione Granger?" said Parvati.
"She's going with someone else."
Parvati looked astonished.
"Ooooh - who?" she said keenly.
Harry shrugged. "No idea," he said. "So what about Ron?"
"Well. . ." said Parvati slowly, "I suppose my sister might. . . Padma,
you know ... in Ravenclaw. I'll ask her if you like."
"Yeah, that would be great," said Harry. "Let me know, will you?"
And he went back over to Ron, feeling that this ball was a lot more
trouble than it was worth, and hoping very much that Padma Patil's nose
was dead center.
CHAPTER TWENTY-THREE
THE YULE BALL
Despite the very heavy load of homework that the fourth years
had been given for the holidays. Harry was in no mood to work when
term ended, and spent the week leading up to Christmas enjoying himself
as fully as possible along with everyone else. Gryffindor Tower was
hardly less crowded now than during term-time; it seemed to have shrunk
slightly too, as its inhabitants were being so much rowdier than usual.
Fred and George had had a great success with their Canary Creams, and for
the first couple of days of the holidays, people kept bursting into feather
all over the place. Before long, however, all the Gryffindors had
learned to treat food anybody else offered them with extreme caution, in
case it had a Canary Cream concealed in the center, and George con-fided
to Harry that he and Fred were now working on developing something else.
Harry made a mental note never to accept so much as a crisp from Fred and
George in future. He still hadn't forgotten Dudley and the Ton-Tongue
Toffee.
Snow was falling thickly upon the castle and its grounds now.
The pale blue Beauxbatons carriage looked like a large, chilly, frosted
pumpkin next to the iced gingerbread house that was Ha-grid's cabin, while
the Durmstrang ship's portholes were glazed with ice, the rigging white
with frost. The house-elves down in the kitchen were outdoing themselves
with a series of rich, warming stews and savory puddings, and only Fleur
Delacour seemed to be able to find anything to complain about.
"It is too 'eavy, all zis 'Ogwarts food," they heard her saying grumpily
as they left the Great Hall behind her one evening (Ron skulking behind
Harry, keen not to be spotted by Fleur). "I will not fit into my
dress robes!"
"Oooh there's a tragedy," Hermione snapped as Fleur went out into the
entrance hall. "She really thinks a lot of herself, that one, doesn't she?"
"Hermione - who are you going to the ball with?" said Ron.
He kept springing this question on her, hoping to startle her into
a response by asking it when she least expected it. However, Hermione
merely frowned and said, "I'm not telling you, you'll just make fun of
me."
"You're joking, Weasley!" said Malfoy, behind them. "You're not telling
me someone's asked that to the ball? Not the long-molared Mudblood?"
;
Harry and Ron both whipped around, but Hermione said loudly, waving
to somebody over Malfoys shoulder, "Hello, Professor Moody!"
Malfoy went pale and jumped backward, looking wildly around for Moody,
but he was still up at the staff table, finishing his stew.
"Twitchy little ferret, aren't you, Malfoy?" said Hermione scathingly,
and she, Harry, and Ron went up the marble staircase laughing heartily.
"Hermione," said Ron, looking sideways at her, suddenly frown-ing,
"your teeth ..."
"What about them?" she said.
"Well, they're different. . . I've just noticed. . . ."
"Of course they are - did you expect me to keep those fangs Malfoy
gave me?"
"No, I mean, they're different to how they were before he put that
hex on you. . . . They're all... straight and - and normal-sized."
Hermione suddenly smiled very mischievously, and Harry noticed it too:
It was a very different smile from the one he remembered.
"Well. . . when I went up to Madam Pomfrey to get them shrunk, she
held up a mirror and told me to stop her when they were back to how they
normally were," she said. "And I just. . . let her carry on a bit."
She smiled even more widely. "Mum and Dad won't be too pleased. I've
been trying to persuade them to let me shrink them for ages, but they wanted
me to carry on with my braces. You know, they're dentists, they just
don't think teeth and magic should - look! Pigwidgeons back!"
Ron's tiny owl was twittering madly on the top of the icicle-laden
banisters, a scroll of parchment tied to his leg. People passing
him were pointing and laughing, and a group of third-year girls paused
and said, "Oh look at the weeny owl! Isn't he cute?"
Stupid little feathery git!" Ron hissed, hurrying up the stairs
and snatching up Pigwidgeon. "You bring letters to the addressee!
You don't hang around showing off!"
Pigwidgeon hooted happily, his head protruding over Ron's fist. The
third-year girls all looked very shocked.
"Clear off!" Ron snapped at them, waving the fist holding Pig-widgeon,
who hooted more happily than ever as he soared through the air. "Here
- take it, Harry," Ron added in an undertonee as the third-year girls scuttled
away looking scandalized. He pulled Sir-ius's reply off Pigwidgeons
leg. Harry pocketed it, and they hurried back to Gryffindor Tower
to read it.
Everyone in the common room was much too busy in letting off more holiday
steam to observe what anyone else was up to. Ron, Harry, and Hermione
sat apart from everyone else by a dark window that was gradually filling
up with snow, and Harry read out:
Dear Harry,
Congratulations on getting past the Horntail. Whoever put your
name in that goblet shouldn't be feeling too happy right now! I was
going to suggest a Conjunctivitus Curse, as a dragon's eyes are its weakest
point - "That's what Krum did!" Hermione whispered - but your way was better,
I'm impressed.
Don't get complacent, though. Harry. You've only done one task;
whoever put you in for the tournament's got plenty more opportunity if
they're trying to hurt you. Keep your eyes open -particularly when
the person we discussed is around and concentrate on keeping yourself out
of trouble.
Keep in touch, I still want to hear about anything unusual.
Sirius
"He sounds exactly like Moody," said Harry quietly, tucking the letter
away again inside his robes. "'Constant vigilance!' You'd think I
walk around with my eyes shut, banging off the walls. ..."
"But he's right, Harry," said Hermione, "you have still got two tasks
to do. You really ought to have a look at that egg, you know, and start
working out what it means. . . ."
"Hermione, he's got ages!" snapped Ron. "Want a game of
chess, Harry?"
"Yeah, okay," said Harry. Then, spotting the look on Hermione's
face, he said, "Come on, how'm I supposed to concentrate with all this
noise going on? I won't even be able to hear the egg over this lot."
"Oh I suppose not," she sighed, and she sat down to watch their chess
match, which culminated in an exciting checkmate of Ron's, involving a
couple of recklessly brave pawns and a very violent bishop.
Harry awoke very suddenly on Christmas Day. Wondering what had
caused his abrupt return to consciousness, he opened his eyes, and saw
something with very large, round, green eyes staring back at him in the
darkness, so close they were almost nose to nose.
"Dobby!" Harry yelled, scrambling away from the elf so fast he
almost fell out of bed. "Don't do that!"
"Dobby is sorry, sir!" squeaked Dobby anxiously, jumping back-ward
with his long fingers over his mouth. "Dobby is only wanting to wish
Harry Potter 'Merry Christmas' and bring him a present, Sir! Harry
Potter did say Dobby could come and see him sometimes, sir!"
It's okay," said Harry, still breathing rather faster than usual, while
his heart rate returned to normal. "Just - just prod me or something
in future, all right, don't bend over me like that. .."
Harry pulled back the curtains around his four-poster, took his glasses
from his bedside table, and put them on. His yell had awoken Ron,
Seamus, Dean, and Neville. All of them were peering through the gaps
in their own hangings, heavy-eyed and tousle-haired.
"Someone attacking you, Harry?" Seamus asked sleepily.
"No, it's just Dobby," Harry muttered. "Go back to sleep."
"Nah . . . presents!" said Seamus, spotting the large pile at the foot
of his bed. Ron, Dean, and Neville decided that now they were awake they
might as well get down to some present-opening too. Harry turned
back to Dobby, who was now standing nervously next to Harrys bed, still
looking worried that he had upset Harry. There was a Christmas bauble
tied to the loop on top of his tea cozy.
"Can Dobby give Harry Potter his present?" he squeaked tentatively.
"'Course you can," said Harry. "Er. . . I've got something for
you too."
It was a lie; he hadn't bought anything for Dobby at all, but he quickly
opened his trunk and pulled out a particularly knobbly rolled-up pair of
socks. They were his oldest and foulest, mustard yellow, and had
once belonged to Uncle Vernon. The reason they were extra-knobbly
was that Harry had been using them to cush-ion his Sneakoscope for over
a year now. He pulled out the Sneako-scope and handed the socks to Dobby,
saying, "Sorry, I forgot to wrap them..."
But Dobby was utterly delighted.
"Socks are Dobby's favorite, favorite clothes, sir!" he said,
rip-ping off his odd ones and pulling on Uncle Vernon's. "I has seven
now, sir. . . . But sir ..." he said, his eyes widening, having pulled
both socks up to their highest extent, so that they reached to the bottom
of his shorts, "they has made a mistake in the shop, Harry Potter, they
is giving you two the same!"
"Ah, no, Harry, how come you didn't spot that?" said Ron, grin-ning
over from his own bed, which was now strewn with wrapping paper. "Tell
you what, Dobby - here you go - take these two, and you can mix them up
properly. And here's your sweater."
He threw Dobby a pair of violet socks he had just unwrapped, and the
hand-knitted sweater Mrs. Weasley had sent, Dobby looked quite overwhelmed.
"Sir is very kind!" he squeaked, his eyes brimming with tears
again, bowing deeply to Ron. "Dobby knew sir must be a great wizard,
for he is Harry Potter's greatest friend, but Dobby did not know that he
was also as generous of spirit, as noble, as selfless -"
"They're only socks," said Ron, who had gone slightly pink around the
ears, though he looked rather pleased all the same. "Wow, Harry -"
He had just opened Harry's present, a Chudley Cannon hat. "Cool!"
He jammed it onto his head, where it clashed horribly with his hair.
Dobby now handed Harry a small package, which turned out to be - socks.
"Dobby is making them himself, sir!" the elf said happily. "He is buying
the wool out of his wages, sir!"
The left sock was bright red and had a pattern of broomsticks upon
it; the right sock was green with a pattern of Snitches.
"They're . . . they're really . . . well, thanks, Dobby," said Harry,
and he pulled them on, causing Dobby's eyes to leak with happi-ness again.
"Dobby must go now, sir, we is already making Christmas dinner in the
kitchens!" said Dobby, and he hurried out of the dor-mitory, waving
good-bye to Ron and the others as he passed.
Harry's other presents were much more satisfactory than Dobby's odd
socks - with the obvious exception of the Dursleys', which consisted of
a single tissue, an all-time low - Harry sup-posed they too were remember
ing the Ton-Tongue Toffee. Hermione had given Harry a book called
Quidditch Teams of Britain and Ireland; Ron, a bulging bag of Dungbombs;
Sirius, a handy penknife with attachments to unlock any lock and undo any
knot; and Hagrid, a vast box of sweets including all Harrys fa-vorites:
Bertie Bott's Every Flavor Beans, Chocolate Frogs, Drooble's Best Blowing
Gum, and Fizzing Whizbees. There was also, of course, Mrs. Weasley's
usual package, including a new sweater (green, with a picture of a dragon
on it - Harry supposed Charlie had told her all about the Horntail), and
a large quantity of homemade mince pies.
Harry and Ron met up with Hermione in the common room, and they went
down to breakfast together. They spent most of the morning in Gryffindor
Tower, where everyone was enjoying their presents, then returned to the
Great Hall for a magnificent lunch, which included at least a hundred turkeys
and Christmas pud-dings, and large piles of Cribbage's Wizarding Crackers.
They went out onto the grounds in the afternoon; the snow was untouched
except for the deep channels made by the Durmstrang and Beauxbatons students
on their way up to the castle. Hermione chose to watch Harry and
the Weasleys' snowball fight rather than join in, and at five o'clock said
she was going back upstairs to get ready for the ball.
"What, you need three hours?" said Ron, looking at her incred-ulously
and paying for his lapse in concentration when a large snowball, thrown
by George, hit him hard on the side of the head. "Who're you going
with?" he yelled after Hermione, but she just waved and disappeared
up the stone steps into the castle.
There was no Christmas tea today, as the ball included a feast, so
at seven o'clock, when it had become hard to aim properly, the oth-ers
abandoned their snowball fight and trooped back to the com-mon room. The
Fat Lady was sitting in her frame with her friend Violet from downstairs,
both of them extremely tipsy, empty boxes of chocolate liqueurs littering
the bottom other picture.
"Lairy fights, that's the one!" she giggled when they gave the
password, and she swung forward to let them inside.
Harry, Ron, Seamus, Dean, and Neville changed into their dress robes
up in their dormitory, all of them looking very self-conscious, but none
as much as Ron, who surveyed himself in the long mirror in the corner with
an appalled look on his face. There was just no getting around the
fact that his robes looked more like a dress than anything else.
In a desperate attempt to make them look more manly, he used a Severing
Charm on the ruff and cuffs. It worked fairly well; at least he was
now lace-free, although he had-n't done a very neat job, and the edges
still looked depressingly frayed as the boys set off downstairs.
"I still can't work out how you two got the best-looking girls in the
year," muttered Dean.
"Animal magnetism," said Ron gloomily, pulling stray threads out of
his cuffs.
The common room looked strange, full of people wearing dif-ferent colors
instead of the usual mass of black. Parvati was waiting for Harry
at the foot of the stairs. She looked very pretty indeed, in robes
of shocking pink, with her long dark plait braided with gold, and gold
bracelets glimmering at her wrists. Harry was relieved to see that
she wasn't giggling.
"You - er - look nice," he said awkwardly.
"Thanks," she said. "Padma's going to meet you in the entrance hall,"
she added to Ron.
"Right," said Ron, looking around. "Where's Hermione?"
Parvati shrugged. "Shall we go down then, Harry?"
"Okay," said Harry, wishing he could just stay in the common room.
Fred winked at Harry as he passed him on the way out of the portrait hole.
The entrance hall was packed with students too, all milling around
waiting for eight o'clock, when the doors to the Great Hall would be thrown
open. Those people who were meeting partners from different Houses
were edging through the crowd trying to find one another. Parvati
found her sister, Padma, and led her over to Harry and Ron.
"Hi," said Padma, who was looking just as pretty as Parvati in robes
of bright turquoise. She didn't look too enthusiastic about having Ron
as a partner, though; her dark eyes lingered on the frayed neck and sleeves
of his dress robes as she looked him up and down.
"Hi," said Ron, not looking at her, but staring around at the crowd.
"Oh no ..."
He bent his knees slightly to hide behind Harry, because Fleur Delacour
was passing, looking stunning in robes of silver-gray satin, and accompanied
by the Ravenclaw Quidditch captain, Roger Davies. When they had disappeared,
Ron stood straight again and stared over the heads of the crowd.
"Where is Hermione?" he said again.
A group of Slytherins came up the steps from their dungeon common room.
Malfoy was in front; he was wearing dress robes of black velvet with a
high collar, which in Harry's opinion made him look like a vicar.
Pansy Parkinson in very frilly robes of pale pink was clutching Malfoy's
arm. Crabbe and Goyle were both wearing green; they resembled moss-colored
boulders, and neither of them, Harry was pleased to see, had managed to
find a partner.
The oak front doors opened, and everyone turned to look as the Durmstrang
students entered with Professor Karkaroff. Krum was at the front
of the party, accompanied by a pretty girl in blue robes Harry didn't know.
Over their heads he saw that an area of lawn right in front of the castle
had been transformed into a sort of grotto full of fairy lights - meaning
hundreds of actual living fairies were sitting in the rosebushes that had
been conjured there, and fluttering over the statues of what seemed to
be Father Christ-mas and his reindeer.
Then Professor McGonagall's voice called, "Champions over here, please!"
Parvati readjusted her bangles, beaming; she and Harry said, "See you
in a minute" to Ron and Padma and walked forward, the chat-tering crowd
parting to let them through. Professor McGonagall, who was wearing dress
robes of red tartan and had arranged a rather ugly wreath of thistles around
the brim other hat, told them to wait on one side of the doors while everyone
else went inside; they were to enter the Great Hall in procession when
the rest of the students had sat down. Fleur Delacour and Roger Davies
stationed themselves nearest the doors; Davies looked so stunned by his
good fortune in having Fleur for a partner that he could hardly take his
eyes off her. Cedric and Cho were close to Harry too; he looked away
from them so he wouldn't have to talk to them. His eyes fell instead
on the girl next to Krum. His jaw dropped.
It was Hermione.
But she didn't look like Hermione at all. She had done some-thing
with her hair; it was no longer bushy but sleek and shiny, and twisted
up into an elegant knot at the back of her head. She was wearing
robes made of a floaty, periwinkle-blue material, and she was holding herself
differently, somehow - or maybe it was merely the absence of the twenty
or so books she usually had slung over her back. She was also smiling
- rather nervously, it was true - but the reeduction in the size of her
front teeth was more noticeable than ever; Harry couldn't understand how
he hadn't spotted it before.
"Hi, Harry!" she said. "Hi, Parvati!"
Parvati was gazing at Hermione in unflattering disbelief. She
wasn't the only one either; when the doors to the Great Hall opened, Krum's
fan club from the library stalked past, throwing Hermione looks of deepest
loathing. Pansy Parkinson gaped at her as she walked by with Malfoy,
and even he didn't seem to be able to find an insult to throw at her.
Ron, however, walked right past Hermione without looking at her.
Once everyone else was settled in the Hall, Professor McGona-gall told
the champions and their partners to get in line in pairs and to follow
her. They did so, and everyone in the Great Hall ap-plauded as they
entered and started walking up toward a large round table at the top of
the Hall, where the judges were sitting.
The walls of the Hall had all been covered in sparkling silver frost,
with hundreds of garlands of mistletoe and ivy crossing the starry black
ceiling. The House tables had vanished; instead, there were about
a hundred smaller, lantern-lit ones, each seating about a dozen people.
Harry concentrated on not tripping over his feet. Parvati seemed to
be enjoying herself; she was beaming around at everybody, steer-ing Harry
so forcefully that he felt as though he were a show dog she was putting
through its paces. He caught sight of Ron and Padma as he neared
the top table. Ron was watching Hermione pass with narrowed eyes.
Padma was looking sulky.
Dumbledore smiled happily as the champions approached the top table,
but Karkaroff wore an expression remarkably like Ron's as he watched Krum
and Hermione draw nearer. Ludo Bagman, tonight in robes of bright purple
with large yellow stars, was clap-ping as enthusiastically as any of the
students; and Madame Maxime, who had changed her usual uniform of black
satin for a flowing gown of lavender silk, was applauding them politely.
But Mr. Crouch, Harry suddenly realized, was not there. The fifth
seat at the table was occupied by Percy Weasley.
When the champions and their partners reached the table, Percy drew
out the empty chair beside him, staring pointedly at Harry. Harry
took the hint and sat down next to Percy, who was wearing brand-new, navy-blue
dress robes and an expression of such smug-ness that Harry thought it ought
to be fined.
"I've been promoted," Percy said before Harry could even ask, and from
his tone, he might have been announcing his election as supreme ruler of
the universe. "I'm now Mr. Crouch's personal as-sistant, and I'm
here representing him."
"Why didn't he come?" Harry asked. He wasn't looking forward to being
lectured on cauldron bottoms all through dinner.
"I'm afraid to say Mr. Crouch isn't well, not well at all. Hasn't been
right since the World Cup. Hardly surprising - overwork. He's not as young
as he was - though still quite brilliant, of course, the mind remains as
great as it ever was. But the World Cup was a fiasco for the whole
Ministry, and then, Mr. Crouch suffered a huge personal shock with the
misbehavior of that house-elf of his, Blinky, or whatever she was called.
Naturally, he dismissed her im-mediately afterward, but - well, as I say,
he's getting on, he needs looking after, and I think he's found a definite
drop in his home comforts since she left. And then we had the tournament
to arrange, and the aftermath of the Cup to deal with - that revolt-ing
Skeeter woman buzzing around - no, poor man, he's having a well earned,
quiet Christmas. I'm just glad he knew he had some-one he could rely
upon to take his place."
Harry wanted very much to ask whether Mr. Crouch had stopped calling
Percy "Weatherby" yet, but resisted the temptation.
There was no food as yet on the glittering golden plates, but small
menus were lying in front of each of them. Harry picked his up uncertainly
and looked around - there were no waiters. Dum-bledore, however,
looked carefully down at his own menu, then said very clearly to his plate,
"Pork chops!"
And pork chops appeared. Getting the idea, the rest of the table placed
their orders with their plates too. Harry glanced up at Hermione
to see how she felt about this new and more compli-cated method of dining
- surely it meant plenty of extra work for tthe house-elves? - but for once,
Hermione didn't seem to be thinking about S.P.E.W. She was deep in
talk with Viktor Krum and hardly seemed to notice what she was eating.
It now occurred to Harry that he had never actually heard Krum speak
before, but he was certainly talking now, and very enthusias-tically at
that.
"Veil, ve have a castle also, not as big as this, nor as comfortable,
I am thinking," he was telling Hermione. "Ve have just four floors,
and the fires are lit only for magical purposes. But ve have grounds
larger even than these - though in vinter, ve have very little day-light,
so ve are not enjoying them. But in summer ve are flying every day,
over the lakes and the mountains -"
"Now, now, Viktor!" said Karkaroff with a laugh that didn't reach
his cold eyes, "don't go giving away anything else, now, or your charming
friend will know exactly where to find us!"
Dumbledore smiled, his eyes twinkling. "Igor, all this secrecy
., . one would almost think you didn't want visitors."
"Well, Dumbledore," said Karkaroff, displaying his yellowing teeth
to their fullest extent, "we are all protective of our private domains,
are we not? Do we not jealously guard the halls of learn-ing that
have been entrusted to us? Are we not right to be proud that we alone
know our school's secrets, and right to protect them?"
"Oh I would never dream of assuming I know all Hogwarts' se-crets,
Igor," said Dumbledore amicably. "Only this morning, for instance,
I took a wrong turning on the way to the bathroom and found myself in a
beautifully proportioned room I have never seen before, containing a really
rather magnificent collection of cham-ber pots. When I went back
to investigate more closely, I discov-ered that the room had vanished.
But I must keep an eye out for it. Possibly it is only accessible
at five-thirty in the morning. Or it may only appear at the quarter
moon - or when the seeker has an ex-ceptionally full bladder."
Harry snorted into his plate of goulash. Percy frowned, but Harry
could have sworn Dumbledore had given him a very small wink.
Meanwhile Fleur Delacour was criticizing the Hogwarts decora-tions
to Roger Davies.
"Zis is nothing," she said dismissively, looking around at the sparkling
walls of the Great Hall. "At ze Palace of Beauxbatons, we 'ave ice
sculptures all around ze dining chamber at Chreestmas. Zey do not melt,
of course . . . zey are like 'uge statues of diamond, glittering around
ze place. And ze food is seemply superb. And we 'ave choirs
of wood nymphs, 'oo serenade us as we eat. We 'ave none of zis ugly
armor in ze 'alls, and eef a poltergeist ever entaired into Beauxbatons,
'e would be expelled like zat." She slapped her hand onto the table
impatiently.
Roger Davies was watching her talk with a very dazed look on his face,
and he kept missing his mouth with his fork. Harry had the impression
that Davies was too busy staring at Fleur to take in a word she was saying.
"Absolutely right," he said quickly, slapping his own hand down on
the table in imitation of Fleur. "Like that. Yeah."
Harry looked around the Hall. Hagrid was sitting at one of the
other staff tables; he was back in his horrible hairy brown suit and gazing
up at the top table. Harry saw him give a small wave, and looking
around, saw Madame Maxime return it, her opals glitter-ing in the candlelight.
Hermione was now teaching Krum to say her name properly; he kept calling
her "Hermy-own."
"Her-my-oh-nee," she said slowly and clearly.
"Herm-own-ninny."
"Close enough," she said, catching Harry's eye and grinning.
When all the food had been consumed, Dumbledore stood up and asked
the students to do the same. Then, with a wave of his wand, all the
tables zoomed back along the walls leaving the floor clear, and then he
conjured a raised platform into existence along the right wall. A
set of drums, several guitars, a lute, a cello, and some bagpipes were
set upon it.
The "Weird Sisters now trooped up onto the stage to wildly en-thusiastic
applause; they were all extremely hairy and dressed in black robes that
had been artfully ripped and torn. They picked up their instruments, and
Harry, who had been so interested in watch-ing them that he had almost
forgotten what was coming, suddenly realized that the lanterns on all the
other tables had gone out, and that the other champions and their partners
were standing up.
"Come on!" Parvati hissed. "We're supposed to dance!"
Harry tripped over his dress robes as he stood up. The Weird
Sis-ters struck up a slow, mournful tune; Harry walked onto the brightly
lit dance floor, carefully avoiding catching anyone's eye (he could see
Seamus and Dean waving at him and sniggering), and next moment, Parvati
had seized his hands, placed one around her waist, and was holding the
other tightly in hers.
It wasn't as bad as it could have been. Harry thought, revolving slowly
on the spot (Parvati was steering). He kept his eyes fixed over the
heads of the watching people, and very soon many of them too had come onto
the dance floor, so that the champions were no longer the center of attention.
Neville and Ginny were dancing nearby - he could see Ginny wincing frequently
as Neville trod on her feet - and Dumbledore was waltzing with Madame Maxime.
He was so dwarfed by her that the top of his pointed hat barely tickled
her chin; however, she moved very gracefully for a woman so large.
Mad-Eye Moody was doing an extremely ungainly two-step with Professor Sinistra,
who was nervously avoiding his wooden leg.
"Nice socks. Potter," Moody growled as he passed, his magical eye staring
through Harry's robes.
"Oh - yeah, Dobby the house-elf knitted them for me," said Harry, grinning.
"He is so creepy!" Parvati whispered as Moody clunked away.
"I don't think that eye should be allowed."
Harry heard the final, quavering note from the bagpipe with re-lief.
The Weird Sisters stopped playing, applause filled the hall once more,
and Harry let go of Parvati at once.
"Let's sit down, shall we?"
"Oh - but - this is a really good one!" Parvati said as the Weird
Sisters struck up a new song, which was much faster.
"No, I don't like it," Harry lied, and he led her away from the dance
floor, past Fred and Angelina, who were dancing so exhuberantly that people
around them were backing away in fear of injury, and over to the table
where Ron and Padma were sitting.
"How's it going?" Harry asked Ron, sitting down and opening a bottle
of butterbeer.
Ron didn't answer. He was glaring at Hermione and Krum, who were dancing
nearby. Padma was sitting with her arms and legs crossed, one foot jiggling
in time to the music. Every now and then she threw a disgruntled
look at Ron, who was completely ignoring her. Parvati sat down on Harry's
other side, crossed her arms and legs too, and within minutes was asked
to dance by a boy from Beauxbatons.
"You don't mind, do you, Harry?" Parvati said.
"What?" said Harry, who was now watching Cho and Cedric.
"Oh never mind," snapped Parvati, and she went off with the boy from
Beauxbatons. When the song ended, she did not return.
Hermione came over and sat down in Parvati's empty chair. She was a
bit pink in the face from dancing.
"Hi," said Harry. Ron didn't say anything.
"It's hot, isn't it?" said Hermione, fanning herself with her hand.
"Viktors just gone to get some drinks."
Ron gave her a withering look. "Viktor?" he said. "Hasn't he asked
you to call him Vicky yet?"
Hermione looked at him in surprise. "What's up with you?" she said.
"If you don't know," said Ron scathingly, "I'm not going to tell you."
Hermione stared at him, then at Harry, who shrugged.
"Ron, what - ?"
"He's from Durmstrang!" spat Ron. "He's competing against Harry!
Against Hogwarts! You - you're -" Ron was obviously casting around
for words strong enough to describe Hermione's crime, "fraternizing with
the enemy, that's what you're doing!"
Hermione's mouth fell open.
"Don't be so stupid!" she said after a moment. "The enemy! Honestly
- who was the one who was all excited when tthey saw him arrive? Who
was the one who wanted his autograph? Who's got a model of him up
in their dormitory?"
Ron chose to ignore this. "I s'pose he asked you to come with him while
you were both in the library?"
"Yes, he did," said Hermione, the pink patches on her cheeks glowing
more brightly. "So what?"
"What happened - trying to get him to join spew, were you?"
"No, I wasn't! If you really want to know, he - he said he'd
been coming up to the library every day to try and talk to me, but he hadn't
been able to pluck up the courage!"
Hermione said this very quickly, and blushed so deeply that she was
the same color as Parvati's robes.
"Yeah, well - that's his story," said Ron nastily.
"And what's that supposed to mean?"
"Obvious, isn't it? He's Karkaroff's student, isn't he?
He knows who you hang around with. . . . He's just trying to get closer
to Harry - get inside information on him - or get near enough to jinx him
-"
Hermione looked as though Ron had slapped her. When she spoke,
her voice quivered.
"For your information, he hasn't asked me one single thing about Harry,
not one -"
Ron changed tack at the speed of light.
"Then he's hoping you'll help him find out what his egg means! I suppose
you've been putting your heads together during those cozy little library
sessions -"
"I'd never help him work out that egg!" said Hermione, looking outraged.
"Never. How could you say something like that - I want Harry to win
the tournament. Harry knows that, don't you, Harry?"
"You've got a funny way of showing it," sneered Ron.
"This whole tournament's supposed to be about getting to know foreign
wizards and making friends with them!" said Hermione hotly.
"No it isn't!" shouted Ron. "It's about winning!"
People were starting to stare at them.
"Ron," said Harry quietly, "I haven't got a problem with Hermione coming
with Krum -"
But Ron ignored Harry too.
"Why don't you go and find Vicky, he'll be wondering where you are,"
said Ron.
"Don't call him Vicky!"
Hermione jumped to her feet and stormed off across the dance floor,
disappearing into the crowd. Ron watched her go with a mix-ture of
anger and satisfaction on his face.
"Are you going to ask me to dance at all?" Padma asked him.
"No," said Ron, still glaring after Hermione.
"Fine," snapped Padma, and she got up and went to join Parvati and
the Beauxbatons boy, who conjured up one of his friends to join them so
fast that Harry could have sworn he had zoomed him there by a Summoning
Charm.
"Vare is Herm-own-ninny?" said a voice.
Krum had just arrived at their table clutching two butterbeers.
"No idea," said Ron mulishly, looking up at him. "Lost her, have you?"
Krum was looking surly again.
"Veil, if you see her, tell her I haff drinks," he said, and he slouched
off.
"Made friends with Viktor Krum, have you, Ron?"
Percy had bustled over, rubbing his hands together and looking extremely
pompous. "Excellent! That's the whole point, you know - international
magical cooperation!"
To Harry's displeasure, Percy now took Padma's vacated seat.
The top table was now empty; Professor Dumbledore was dancing with Professor
Sprout, Ludo Bagman with Professor McGonagall; Madame Maxime and Hagrid
were cutting a wide path around the dance floor as they waltzed through
the students, and Karkaroff was nowhere to be seen. When the next song
ended, everybody ap-plauded once more, and Harry saw Ludo Bagman kiss Professor
McGonagall's hand and make his way back through the crowds, at which point
Fred and George accosted him.
"What do they think they're doing, annoying senior Ministry members?"
Percy hissed, watching Fred and George suspiciously. "No respect..."
Ludo Bagman shook off Fred and George fairly quickly, how-ever, and,
spotting Harry, waved and came over to their table.
"I hope my brothers weren't bothering you, Mr. Bagman?" said Percy
at once.
"What? Oh not at all, not at all!" said Bagman. "No, they were
just telling me a bit more about those fake wands of theirs. Won-dering
if I could advise them on the marketing. I've promised to put them
in touch with a couple of contacts of mine at Zonko's Joke Shop. ..."
Percy didn't look happy about this at all, and Harry was prepared to
bet he would be rushing to tell Mrs. Weasley about this the mo-ment he
got home. Apparently Fred and George's plans had grown even more ambitious
lately, if they were hoping to sell to the pub-lic. Bagman opened
his mouth to ask Harry something, but Percy diverted him.
"How do you feel the tournament's going, Mr. Bagman? Our department's
quite satisfied - the hitch with the Goblet of Fire" - he glanced at Harry
- "was a little unfortunate, of course, but it seems to have gone very
smoothly since, don't you think?"
"Oh yes," Bagman said cheerfully, "it's all been enormous fun.
How's old Barty doing? Shame he couldn't come."
"Oh I'm sure Mr. Crouch will be up and about in no time," said Percy
importantly, "but in the meantime, I'm more than willing to take up the
slack. Of course, it's not all attending balls" - he laughed airily
- "oh no, I've had to deal with all sorts off things that have cropped up
in his absence - you heard Ali Bashir was caught smuggling a consignment
of flying carpets into the coun-try? And then we've been trying to
persuade the Transylvanians to sign the International Ban on Dueling.
I've got a meeting with their Head of Magical Cooperation in the new year
-"
"Let's go for a walk," Ron muttered to Harry, "get away from Percy.
..."
Pretending they wanted more drinks. Harry and Ron left the table,
edged around the dance floor, and slipped out into the en-trance hall.
The front doors stood open, and the fluttering fairy lights in the rose
garden winked and twinkled as they went down the front steps, where they
found themselves surrounded by bushes; winding, ornamental paths; and large
stone statues. Harry could hear splashing water, which sounded like
a fountain. Here and there, people were sitting on carved benches.
He and Ron set off along one of the winding paths through the rosebushes,
but they had gone only a short way when they heard an unpleasantly familiar
voice.
"... don't see what there is to fuss about, Igor."
"Severus, you cannot pretend this isn't happening!" Karkaroffs
voice sounded anxious and hushed, as though keen not to be over-heard.
"It's been getting clearer and clearer for months. I am be-coming
seriously concerned, I can't deny it _"
"Then flee," said Snapes voice curtly. "Flee - I will make your
excuses. I, however, am remaining at Hogwarts."
Snape and Karkaroff came around the corner. Snape had his wand
out and was blasting rosebushes apart, his expression most ill-natured.
Squeals issued from many of the bushes, and dark shapes emerged from them.
"Ten points from Ravenclaw, Fawcett!" Snape snarled as a girl ran past
him. "And ten points from Hufflepuff too, Stebbins!" as a boy
went rushing after her. "And what are you two doing?" he added, catching
sight of Harry and Ron on the path ahead. Karkaroff, Harry saw, looked
slightly discomposed to see them standing there. His hand went nervously
to his goatee, and he began winding it around his finger.
"We re walking," Ron told Snape shortly. "Not against the law, is it?"
"Keep walking, then!" Snape snarled, and he brushed past them,
his long black cloak billowing out behind him. Karkaroff hurried
away after Snape. Harry and Ron continued down the path.
"What's got Karkaroff all worried?" Ron muttered.
"And since when have he and Snape been on first-name terms?"said Harry
slowly.
They had reached a large stone reindeer now, over which they could
see the sparkling jets of a tall fountain. The shadowy out-lines
of two enormous people were visible on a stone bench, watching the water
in the moonlight. And then Harry heard Hagrid speak.
"Momen' I saw yeh, I knew," he was saying, in an oddly husky voice.
Harry and Ron froze. This didn't sound like the sort of scene
they ought to walk in on, somehow. . . . Harry looked around, back up the
path, and saw Fleur Delacour and Roger Davies stand-ing half-concealed
in a rosebush nearby. He tapped Ron on the shoulder and jerked his
head toward them, meaning that they could easily sneak off that way without
being noticed (Fleur and Davies looked very busy to Harry), but Ron, eyes
widening in hor-ror at the sight of Fleur, shook his head vigorously, and
pulled Harry deeper into the shadows behind the reindeer.
"What did you know, 'Agrid?" said Madame Maxime, a purr in her low
voice.
Harry definitely didn't want to listen to this; he knew Hagrid would
hate to be overheard in a situation like this (he certainly would have)
- if it had been possible he would have put his fin-gers in his ears and
hummed loudly, but that wasn't really an op-tion. Instead he tried
to interest himself in a beetle crawling along the stone reindeer's back,
but the beetle just wasn't interesting enough to block out Hagrid's next
words.
"I jus' knew . . . knew you were like me. . . . Was it yer mother or
yer father?"
"I - I don't know what you mean, 'Agrid. ..."
"It was my mother," said Hagrid quietly. "She was one o' the las' ones
in Britain. 'Course, I can' remember her too well. . . she left, see.
When I was abou' three. She wasn' really the maternal sort.
Well. . . it's not in their natures, is it? Dunno what happened to
her . . . might be dead fer all I know. ..."
Madame Maxime didn't say anything. And Harry, in spite of himself,
took his eyes off the beetle and looked over the top of the reindeer's
antlers, listening. ... He had never heard Hagrid talk about his childhood
before.
"Me dad was broken-hearted when she wen'. Tiny little bloke,
my dad was. By the time I was six I could lift him up an' put him
on top o' the dresser if he annoyed me. Used ter make him laugh.
. . ." Hagrid's deep voice broke. Madame Maxime was lis-tening,
motionless, apparently staring at the silvery fountain. "Dad raised
me . . . but he died, o' course, jus' after I started school. Sorta
had ter make me own way after that. Dumbledore was a real help, mind.
Very kind ter me, he was. . . ."
Hagrid pulled out a large spotted silk handkerchief and blew his nose
heavily.
"So ... anyway . . . enough abou' me. What about you? Which side you
got it on?"
But Madame Maxime had suddenly got to her feet.
"It is chilly," she said - but whatever the weather was doing, it was
nowhere near as cold as her voice. "I think I will go in now."
"Eh?" said Hagrid blankly. "No, don go! I've - I've never met another
one before!"
"Anuzzer what, precisely?" said Madame Maxime, her tone icy.
Harry could have told Hagrid it was best not to answer; he stood there
in the shadows gritting his teeth, hoping against hope he wouldn't - but
it was no good. "Another half-giant, o' course!" said Hagrid.
"'Ow dare you!" shrieked Madame Maxime. Her voice exploded through
the peaceful night air like a foghorn; behind him. Harry heard Fleur
and Roger fall out of their rosebush. "I 'ave nevair been more insulted
in my life! 'Alf-giant? Moi? I 'ave - I 'ave big bones!"
She stormed away; great multicolored swarms of fairies rose into the
air as she passed, angrily pushing aside bushes. Hagrid was still
sitting on the bench, staring after her. It was much too dark to
make out his expression. Then, after about a minute, he stood up
and strode away, not back to the castle, but off out into the dark grounds
in the direction of his cabin.
"C'mon," Harry said, very quietly to Ron. "Let's go. . . ."
But Ron didn't move.
"What's up?" said Harry, looking at him.
Ron looked around at Harry, his expression very serious indeed.
"Did you know?" he whispered. "About Hagrid being half-giant?"
"No," Harry said, shrugging. "So what?"
He knew immediately, from the look Ron was giving him, that he was
once again revealing his ignorance of the wizarding world. Brought
up by the Dursleys, there were many things that wizards took for granted
that were revelations to Harry, but these surprises had become fewer with
each successive year. Now, however, he could tell that most wizards
would not have said "So what?" upon finding out that one of their friends
had a giantess for a mother.
"I'll explain inside," said Ron quietly, "c'mon. . .."
Fleur and Roger Davies had disappeared, probably into a more private
clump of bushes. Harry and Ron returned to the Great Hall.
Parvati and Padma were now sitting at a distant table with a whole crowd
of Beauxbatons boys, and Hermione was once more dancing with Krum.
Harry and Ron sat down at a table far re-moved from the dance floor.
"So?" Harry prompted Ron. "What's the problem with giants?"
"Well, they're . . . they're . . ." Ron struggled for words. ". . .
not very nice," he finished lamely.
"Who cares?" Harry said. "There's nothing wrong with Hagrid!"
"I know there isn't, but. . . blimey, no wonder he keeps it quiet,"
Ron said, shaking his head. "I always thought he'd got in the way
of a bad Engorgement Charm when he was a kid or some-thing. Didn't
like to mention it. ..."
"But what's it matter if his mother was a giantess?" said Harry.
"Well... no one who knows him will care, 'cos they'll know he's not
dangerous," said Ron slowly. "But. . . Harry, they're just vicious,
giants. It's like Hagrid said, it's in their natures, they're like
trolls . . . they just like killing, everyone knows that. There aren't
any left in Britain now, though."
"What happened to them?"
"Well, they were dying out anyway, and then loads got them-selves killed
by Aurors. There're supposed to be giants abroad, though. . . . They hide
out in mountains mostly. . . ."
"I don't know who Maxime thinks she's kidding," Harry said, watching
Madame Maxime sitting alone at the judges' table, looking very somber.
"If Hagrid's half-giant, she definitely is. Big bones . .. the only
thing that's got bigger bones than her is a dinosaur."
Harry and Ron spent the rest of the ball discussing giants in their
corner, neither of them having any inclination to dance. Harry tried
not to watch Cho and Cedric too much; it gave him a strong desire to kick
something.
When the Weird Sisters finished playing at midnight, everyone gave
them a last, loud round of applause and started to wend their way into
the entrance hall. Many people were expressing the wish that the
ball could have gone on longer, but Harry was perfectly happy to be going
to bed; as far as he was concerned, the evening hadn't been much fun.
Out in the entrance hall, Harry and Ron saw Hermione saying good night
to Krum before he went back to the Durmstrang ship. She gave Ron
a very cold look and swept past him up the marble staircase without speaking.
Harry and Ron followed her, but halfway up the staircase Harry heard someone
calling him.
"Hey-Harry!"
It was Cedric Diggory. Harry could see Cho waiting for him in
the entrance hall below.
"Yeah?" said Harry coldly as Cedric ran up the stairs toward
him.
Cedric looked as though he didn't want to say whatever it was in front
of Ron, who shrugged, looking bad-tempered, and continued to climb the
stairs.
"Listen ..." Cedric lowered his voice as Ron disappeared. "I
owe you one for telling me about the dragons. You know that golden
egg? Does yours wail when you open it?"
"Yeah," said Harry.
"Well... take a bath, okay?"
"What?"
"Take a bath, and - er - take the egg with you, and - er - just mull
things over in the hot water. It'll help you think. . . . Trust me."
Harry stared at him.
"Tell you what," Cedric said, "use the prefects' bathroom. Fourth
door to the left of that statue of Boris the Bewildered on the fifth floor.
Password's 'pine fresh.' Gotta go ... want to say good night -"
He grinned at Harry again and hurried back down the stairs to Cho.
Harry walked back to Gryffindor Tower alone. That had been extremely
strange advice. Why would a bath help him to work out what the wailing
egg meant? Was Cedric pulling his leg? Was he trying to make
Harry look like a fool, so Cho would like him even more by comparison?
The Fat Lady and her friend Vi were snoozing in the picture over the
portrait hole. Harry had to yell "Fairy lights!" before he woke them up,
and when he did, they were extremely irritated. He climbed into the
common room and found Ron and Hermione having a blazing row. Standing
ten feet apart, they were bellowing at each other, each scarlet in the
face.
"Well, if you don't like it, you know what the solution is, don't you?"
yelled Hermione; her hair was coming down out of its ele-gant bun now,
and her face was screwed up in anger.
"Oh yeah?" Ron yelled back. "What's that?"
"Next time there's a ball, ask me before someone else does, and not
as a last resort!"
Ron mouthed soundlessly like a goldfish out of water as Hermione turned
on her heel and stormed up the girls' staircase to bed. Ron turned to look
at Harry.
"Well," he sputtered, looking thunderstruck, "well - that just proves
- completely missed the point -"
Harry didn't say anything. He liked being back on speaking terms
with Ron too much to speak his mind right now - but he somehow thought
that Hermione had gotten the point much bet-ter than Ron had.
CHAPTER TWENTY-FOUR
RITA SKEETER'S SCOOP
Everybody got up late on Boxing Day. The Gryffindor common room
was much quieter than it had been lately, many yawns punctuating the lazy
conversations. Hermione's hair was bushy again; she confessed to
Harry that she had used liberal amounts of Sleekeazy's Hair Potion on it
for the ball, "but it's way too much bother to do every day," she said
matter-of-factly, scratching a purring Crookshanks behind the ears.
Ron and Hermione seemed to have reached an unspoken agree-ment not
to discuss their argument. They were being quite friendly to each
other, though oddly formal. Ron and Harry wasted no time in telling
Hermione about the conversation they had overheard be-tween Madame Maxime
and Hagrid, but Hermione didn't seem to find the news that Hagrid was a
half-giant nearly as shocking as Ron did.
"Well, I thought he must be," she said, shrugging. "I knew he couldn't
be pure giant because they're about twenty feet tall. But honestly, all
this hysteria about giants. They can't all be horri-ble. . . . It's the
same sort of prejudice that people have toward werewolves. . . . It's just
bigotry, isn't it?"
Ron looked as though he would have liked to reply scathingly, but perhaps
he didn't want another row, because he contented him-self with shaking
his head disbelievingly while Hermione wasn't looking.
It was time now to think of the homework they had neglected during
the first week of the holidays. Everybody seemed to be feel-ing rather
flat now that Christmas was over - everybody except Harry, that is, who
was starting (once again) to feel slightly nervous.
The trouble was that February the twenty-fourth looked a lot closer
from this side of Christmas, and he still hadn't done any-thing about working
out the clue inside the golden egg. He there-fore started taking the egg
out of his trunk every time he went up to the dormitory, opening it, and
listening intently, hoping that this time it would make some sense. He
strained to think what the sound reminded him of, apart from thirty musical
saws, but he had never heard anything else like it. He closed the egg,
shook it vigor-ously, and opened it again to see if the sound had changed,
but it hadn't. He tried asking the egg questions, shouting over all the
wailing, but nothing happened. He even threw the egg across the room -
though he hadn't really expected that to help.
Harry had not forgotten the hint that Cedric had given him, but his
less-than-friendly feelings toward Cedric just now meant that he was keen
not to take his help if he could avoid it. In any case, it seemed to him
that if Cedric had really wanted to give Harry a hand, he would have been
a lot more explicit. He, Harry, had told Cedric exactly what was coming
in the first task - and Cedric's idea of a fair exchange had been to tell
Harry to take a bath. Well, he didn't need that sort of rubbishy
help - not from someone who kept walking down corridors hand in hand with
Cho, anyway. And so the first day of the new term arrived, and Harry
set off to lessons, weighed down with books, parchment, and quills as usual,
but also with the lurking worry of the egg heavy in his stomach, as though
he were carrying that around with him too.
Snow was still thick upon the grounds, and the greenhouse win-dows
were covered in condensation so thick that they couldn't see out of them
in Herbology. Nobody was looking forward to Care of Magical Creatures
much in this weather, though as Ron said, the skrewts would probably warm
them up nicely, either by chasing them, or blasting off so forcefully that
Hagrid's cabin would catch fire.
When they arrived at Hagrid 's cabin, however, they found an el-derly
witch with closely cropped gray hair and a very prominent chin standing
before his front door.
"Hurry up, now, the bell rang five minutes ago," she barked at them
as they struggled toward her through the snow.
"Who're you?" said Ron, staring at her. "Wheres Hagrid?"
"My name is Professor Grubbly-Plank," she said briskly. "I am your
temporary Care of Magical Creatures teacher."
"Where's Hagrid?" Harry repeated loudly.
"He is indisposed," said Professor Grubbly-Plank shortly.
Soft and unpleasant laughter reached Harrys ears. He turned; Draco
Malfoy and the rest of the Slytherins were joining the class. All
of them looked gleeful, and none of them looked surprised to see Professor
Grubbly-Plank.
"This way, please," said Professor Grubbly-Plank, and she strode off
around the paddock where the Beauxbatons horses were shiver-ing.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione followed her, looking back over their shoulders
at Hagrid's cabin. All the curtains were closed. Was Hagrid
in there, alone and ill?
"What's wrong with Hagrid?" Harry said, hurrying to catch up
with Professor Grubbly-Plank.
"Never you mind," she said as though she thought he was being nosy.
"I do mind, though," said Harry hotly. "What's up with him?"
Professor Grubbly-Plank acted as though she couldn't hear him.
She led them past the paddock where the huge Beauxbatons horses were standing,
huddled against the cold, and toward a tree on the edge of the forest,
where a large and beautiful unicorn was tethered.
Many of the girls "ooooohed!" at the sight of the unicorn.
"Oh it's so beautiful!" whispered Lavender Brown. "How did she
get it? They're supposed to be really hard to catch!"
The unicorn was so brightly white it made the snow all around look
gray. It was pawing the ground nervously with its golden hooves and
throwing back its horned head.
"Boys keep back!" barked Professor Grubbly-Plank, throwing out an arm
and catching Harry hard in the chest. "They prefer the woman's touch,
unicorns. Girls to the front, and approach with care, come on, easy
does it. ..."
She and the girls walked slowly forward toward the unicorn, leaving
the boys standing near the paddock fence, watching. The moment Professor
Grubbly-Plank was out of earshot. Harry turned to Ron.
"What d'you reckons wrong with him? You don't think a skrewt - ?"
"Oh he hasn't been attacked, Potter, if that's what you're think-ing,"
said Malfoy softly. "No, he's just too ashamed to show his big, ugly face."
"What d'you mean?" said Harry sharply.
Malfoy put his hand inside the pocket of his robes and pulled out a
folded page of newsprint.
"There you go," he said. "Hate to break it to you. Potter. ..."
He smirked as Harry snatched the page, unfolded it, and read it, with
Ron, Seamus, Dean, and Neville looking over his shoulder. It was
an article topped with a picture of Hagrid looking extremely shifty.
DUMBLEDORE'S GIANT MISTAKE
Albus Dumbledore, eccentric Headmaster of Hog-warts School of Witchcraft
and Wizardry, has never been afraid to make controversial staff appoint-ments,
writes Rita Skeeter, Special Correspondent. In September of this
year, he hired Alastor "Mad-Eye" Moody, the notoriously jinx-happy ex-Auror,
to teach Defense Against the Dark Arts, a decision that caused many raised
eyebrows at the Ministry of Magic, given Moody's well-known habit of at-tacking
anybody who makes a sudden movement in his presence. Mad-Eye Moody,
however, looks responsible and kindly when set beside the part-human Dumbledore
employs to teach Care of Magical Creatures.
Rubeus Hagrid, who admits to being expelled from Hogwarts in his third
year, has enjoyed the position of gamekeeper at the school ever since,
a job secured for him by Dumbledore. Last year, however, Hagrid used
his mysterious influence over the headmaster to secure the additional post
of Care of Magical Creatures teacher, over the heads of many better-qualified
candidates.
An alarmingly large and ferocious-looking man, Hagrid has been using
his newfound authority to terrify the students in his care with a succession
of horrific creatures. While Dumbledore turns a blind eye, Hagrid has maimed
several pupils during a series of lessons that many admit to being "very
frightening."
'I was attacked by a hippogriff, and my friend Vincent Crabbe got a
bad bite off a flobberworm," says Draco Malfoy, a fourth-year student.
"We all hate Hagrid, but we're just too scared to say anything."
Hagrid has no intention of ceasing his campaign of intimidation, however.
In conversation with a Daily Prophet reporter last month, he admitted breeding
creatures he has dubbed "Blast-Ended Skrewts," highly dangerous crosses
between manti-cores and fire-crabs. The creation of new breeds of
magical creature is, of course, an activity usually closely observed by
the Department for the Regu-lation and Control of Magical Creatures. Hagrid,
however, considers himself to be above such petty restrictions.
"I was just having some fun," he says, before hastily changing the
subject.
As if this were not enough, the Daily Prophet has now unearthed evidence
that Hagrid is not - as he has always pretended - a pure-blood wizard.
He is not, in fact, even pure human. His mother, we can exclusively reveal,
is none other than the giantess Fridwulfa, whose whereabouts are cur-rently
unknown.
Bloodthirsty and brutal, the giants brought themselves to the point
of extinction by warring amongst themselves during the last century. The
handful that remained joined the ranks of He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named, and
were responsible for some of the worst mass Muggle killings of his reign
of terror.
While many of the giants who served He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named were killed
by Aurors work-ing against the Dark Side, Fridwulfa was not among them.
It is possible she escaped to one of the giant communities still existing
in foreign mountain ranges. If his antics during Care of Mag-ical Creatures
lessons are any guide, however, Frid-wulfa's son appears to have inherited
her brutal nature.
In a bizarre twist, Hagrid is reputed to have developed a close friendship
with the boy who brought around You-Know-Who's fall from power - thereby
driving Hagrid's own mother, like the rest of You-Know-Who's supporters,
into hiding. Perhaps Harry Potter is unaware of the un-pleasant truth about
his large friend - but Albus Dumbledore surely has a duty to ensure that
Harry Potter, along with his fellow students, is warned about the dangers
of associating with part-giants.
Harry finished reading and looked up at Ron, whose mouth was hanging
open.
"How did she find out?" he whispered.
But that wasn't what was bothering Harry.
"What d'you mean, 'we all hate Hagrid'?" Harry spat at Malfoy.
"What's this rubbish about him" - he pointed at Crabbe - "get-ting a bad
bite off a flobberworm? They haven't even got teeth!"
Crabbe was sniggering, apparently very pleased with himself.
"Well, I think this should put an end to the oaf's teaching ca-reer,"
said Malfoy, his eyes glinting. "Half-giant. . . and there was me thinking
he'd just swallowed a bottle of Skele-Gro when he was young. ... None of
the mummies and daddies are going to like this at all. ... They'll be worried
he'll eat their kids, ha, ha. ..."
"You-"
"Are you paying attention over there?"
Professor Grubbly-Planks voice carried over to the boys; the girls
were all clustered around the unicorn now, stroking it. Harry was
so angry that the Daily Prophet article shook in his hands as he turned
to stare unseeingly at the unicorn, whose many magical properties Professor
Grubbly-Plank was now enumerating in a loud voice, so that the boys could
hear too.
"I hope she stays, that woman!" said Parvati Patil when the lesson
had ended and they were all heading back to the castle for lunch. "That's
more what I thought Care of Magical Creatures would be like . . . proper
creatures like unicorns, not monsters. . . ."
"What about Hagrid?" Harry said angrily as they went up the steps.
"What about him?" said Parvati in a hard voice. "He can still be gamekeeper,
can't he?"
Parvati had been very cool toward Harry since the ball. He sup-posed
that he ought to have paid her a bit more attention, but she seemed to
have had a good time all the same. She was certainly telling anybody
who would listen that she had made arrangements to meet the boy from Beauxbatons
in Hogsmeade on the next weekend trip.
"That was a really good lesson," said Hermione as they entered the
Great Hall. "I didn't know half the things Professor Grubbly-Plank
told us about uni -"
"Look at this!" Harry snarled, and he shoved the Daily Prophet
article under Hermione's nose.
Hermione's mouth fell open as she read. Her reaction was ex-actly
the same as Ron's.
"How did that horrible Skeeter woman find out? You don't think Hagrid
told her?"
"No," said Harry, leading the way over to the Gryffindor table and
throwing himself into a chair, furious. "He never even told us, did
he? I reckon she was so mad he wouldn't give her loads of hor-rible
stuff about me, she went ferreting around to get him back."
"Maybe she heard him telling Madame Maxime at the ball," said Hermione
quietly.
"We'd have seen her in the garden!" said Ron. "Anyway, she's not supposed
to come into school anymore, Hagrid said Dumbledore banned her. . . ."
"Maybe she's got an Invisibility Cloak," said Harry, ladling chicken
casserole onto his plate and splashing it everywhere in his anger.
"Sort of thing she'd do, isn't it, hide in bushes listening to people."
"Like you and Ron did, you mean," said Hermione.
"We weren't trying to hear him!" said Ron indignantly. "We didn't
have any choice! The stupid prat, talking about his giantess mother
where anyone could have heard him!"
"We've got to go and see him," said Harry. "This evening, after Divination.
Tell him we want him back . . . you do want him back?" he shot at Hermione.
"I - well, I'm not going to pretend it didn't make a nice change, having
a proper Care of Magical Creatures lesson for once - but I do want Hagrid
back, of course I do!" Hermione added hastily, quailing under Harry's
furious stare.
So that evening after dinner, the three of them left the castle once
more and went down through the frozen grounds to Hagrid's cabin.
They knocked, and Fang's booming barks answered.
"Hagrid, it's us!" Harry shouted, pounding on the door. "Open up!"
Hagrid didn't answer. They could hear Fang scratching at the
door, whining, but it didn't open. They hammered on it for ten more
minutes; Ron even went and banged on one of the windows, but there was
no response.
"What's he avoiding us for?" Hermione said when they had finally
given up and were walking back to the school. "He surely doesn't
think we'd care about him being half-giant?"
But it seemed that Hagrid did care. They didn't see a sign of
him all week. He didn't appear at the staff table at mealtimes, they
didn't see him going about his gamekeeper duties on the grounds, and Pro-fessor
Grubbly-Plank continued to take the Care of Magical Crea-tures classes.
Malfoy was gloating at every possible opportunity.
"Missing your half-breed pal?" he kept whispering to Harry whenever
there was a teacher around, so that he was safe from Harry's retaliation.
"Missing the elephant-man?"
There was a Hogsmeade visit halfway through January. Hermi-one
was very surprised that Harry was going to go.
"I just thought you'd want to take advantage of the common room being
quiet," she said. "Really get to work on that egg."
"Oh I - I reckon I've got a pretty good idea what it's about now,"
Harry lied.
"Have you really?" said Hermione, looking impressed. "Well
done!"
Harrys insides gave a guilty squirm, but he ignored them. He
still had five weeks to work out that egg clue, after all, and that was
ages. . . whereas if he went into Hogsmeade, he might run into Hagrid,
and get a chance to persuade him to come back.
He, Ron, and Hermione left the castle together on Saturday and set
off through the cold, wet grounds toward the gates. As they passed
the Durmstrang ship moored in the lake, they saw Viktor Krum emerge onto
the deck, dressed in nothing but swimming trunks. He was very skinny
indeed, but apparently a lot tougher than he looked, because he climbed
up onto the side of the ship, stretched out his arms, and dived, right
into the lake.
"He's mad!" said Harry, staring at Krums dark head as it bobbed
out into the middle of the lake. "It must be freezing, it's January!"
"It's a lot colder where he comes from," said Hermione. "I sup-pose
it feels quite warm to him."
"Yeah, but there's still the giant squid," said Ron. He didn't
sound anxious - if anything, he sounded hopeful. Hermione no-ticed
his tone of voice and frowned.
"He's really nice, you know," she said. "He's not at all like
you'd think, coming from Durmstrang. He likes it much better here,
he told me."
Ron said nothing. He hadn't mentioned Viktor Krum since the ball,
but Harry had found a miniature arm under his bed on Box-ing Day, which
had looked very much as though it had been snapped off a small model figure
wearing Bulgarian Quidditch robes.
Harry kept his eyes skinned for a sign of Hagrid all the way down the
slushy High Street, and suggested a visit to the Three Broomsticks once
he had ascertained that Hagrid was not in any of the shops.
The pub was as crowded as ever, but one quick look around at all the
tables told Harry that Hagrid wasn't there. Heart sinking, he went
up to the bar with Ron and Hermione, ordered three butter-beers from Madam
Rosmerta, and thought gloomily that he might just as well have stayed behind
and listened to the egg wailing after all.
"Doesn't he ever go into the office?" Hermione whispered sud-denly.
"Look!"
She pointed into the mirror behind the bar, and Harry saw Ludo Bagman
reflected there, sitting in a shadowy corner with a bunch of goblins.
Bagman was talking very fast in a low voice to the goblins, all of whom
had their arms crossed and were looking rather menacing.
It was indeed odd. Harry thought, that Bagman was here at the Three
Broomsticks on a weekend when there was no Triwizard event, and therefore
no judging to be done. He watched Bagman in the mirror. He
was looking strained again, quite as strained as he had that night in the
forest before the Dark Mark had appeared. But just then Bagman glanced
over at the bar, saw Harry, and stood up.
"In a moment, in a moment!" Harry heard him say brusquely to
the goblins, and Bagman hurried through the pub toward Harry, his boyish
grin back in place.
"Harry!" he said. "How are you? Been hoping to run into you! Everything
going all right?"
"Fine, thanks," said Harry.
"Wonder if I could have a quick, private word, Harry?" said Bag-man
eagerly. "You couldn't give us a moment, you two, could you?"
"Er - okay," said Ron, and he and Hermione went off to find a table.
Bagman led Harry along the bar to the end furthest from Madam Rosmerta.
"Well, I just thought I'd congratulate you again on your splendid performance
against that Horntail, Harry," said Bagman. "Really superb."
"Thanks," said Harry, but he knew this couldn't be all that Bag-man
wanted to say, because he could have congratulated Harry in front of Ron
and Hermione. Bagman didn't seem in any particular rush to spill
the beans, though. Harry saw him glance into the mirror over the bar at
the goblins, who were all watching him and Harry in silence through their
dark, slanting eyes.
"Absolute nightmare," said Bagman to Harry in an undertone, noticing
Harry watching the goblins too. "Their English isn't too good . .
. it's like being back with all the Bulgarians at the Quid-ditch World
Cup . . . but at least they used sign language another human could recognize.
This lot keep gabbling in Gobblede-gook . . . and I only know one word
of Gobbledegook. Bladvak. It means 'pickax.' I don't
like to use it in case they think I'm threat-ening them."
He gave a short, booming laugh.
"What do they want?" Harry said, noticing how the goblins were still
watching Bagman very closely.
"Er - well. . ." said Bagman, looking suddenly nervous. "They
... er ... they're looking for Barty Crouch."
"Why are they looking for him here?" said Harry. "He's at the
Ministry in London, isn't he?"
"Er ... as a matter of fact, I've no idea where he is," said Bag-man.
"He's sort of... stopped coming to work. Been absent for a couple
of weeks now. Young Percy, his assistant, says he's ill. Ap-parently
he's just been sending instructions in by owl. But would you mind
not mentioning that to anyone. Harry? Because Rita Skeeter's
still poking around everywhere she can, and I'm willing to bet she'd work
up Bartys illness into something sinister. Probably say he's gone
missing like Bertha Jorkins."
"Have you heard anything about Bertha Jorkins?" Harry asked.
"No," said Bagman, looking strained again. "I've got people looking,
of course ..." (About time, thought Harry) "and it's all very strange.
She definitely arrived in Albania, because she met her second cousin there.
And then she left the cousin's house to go south and see an aunt. . . and
she seems to have vanished without trace en route. Blowed if I can
see where she's got to ... she doesn't seem the type to elope, for instance
. . . but still. . . . What are we doing, talking about goblins and Bertha
Jorkins? I really wanted to ask you" - he lowered his voice - "how
are you getting on with your golden egg?"
"Er . . . not bad," Harry said untruthfully.
Bagman seemed to know he wasn't being honest.
"Listen, Harry," he said (still in a very low voice), "I feel very
bad about all this . . . you were thrown into this tournament, you didn't
volunteer for it... and if. . ." (his voice was so quiet now, Harry had
to lean closer to listen) "if I can help at all... a prod in the right
direction . . . I've taken a liking to you . . . the way you got past that
dragon! . . . well, just say the word."
Harry stared up into Bagman's round, rosy face and his wide, baby-blue
eyes.
"We're supposed to work out the clues alone, aren't we?" he said, careful
to keep his voice casual and not sound as though he was ac-cusing the head
of the Department of Magical Games and Sports of breaking the rules.
"Well. . . well, yes," said Bagman impatiently, "but - come on. Harry
- we all want a Hogwarts victory, don't we?""
"Have you offered Cedric help?" Harry said.
The smallest of frowns creased Bagman's smooth face. "No, I haven't,"
he said. "I - well, like I say, I've taken a liking to you. Just
thought I'd offer ..."
"Well, thanks," said Harry, "but I think I'm nearly there with the
egg . . . couple more days should crack it."
He wasn't entirely sure why he was refusing Bagman's help, ex-cept
that Bagman was almost a stranger to him, and accepting his assistance
would feel somehow much more like cheating than ask-ing advice from Ron,
Hermione, or Sirius.
Bagman looked almost affronted, but couldn't say much more as Fred
and George turned up at that point.
"Hello, Mr. Bagman," said Fred brightly. "Can we buy you a drink?"
"Er . . . no," said Bagman, with a last disappointed glance at Harry,
"no, thank you, boys ..."
Fred and George looked quite as disappointed as Bagman, who was surveying
Harry as though he had let him down badly.
"Well, I must dash," he said. "Nice seeing you all. Good luck, Harry."
He hurried out of the pub. The goblins all slid off their chairs
and exited after him. Harry went to rejoin Ron and Hermione.
"What did he want?" Ron said, the moment Harry had sat down.
"He offered to help me with the golden egg," said Harry.
"He shouldn't be doing that!" said Hermione, looking very shocked.
"He's one of the judges! And anyway, you've already worked it out
- haven't you?"
"Er . . . nearly," said Harry.
"Well, I don't think Dumbledore would like it if he knew Bag-man was
trying to persuade you to cheat!" said Hermione, still looking deeply
disapproving. "I hope he's trying to help Cedric as much!"
"He's not, I asked," said Harry.
"Who cares if Diggorys getting help?" said Ron. Harry privately agreed.
"Those goblins didn't look very friendly," said Hermione, sip-ping
her butterbeer. "What were they doing here?"
"Looking for Crouch, according to Bagman," said Harry. "He's still
ill. Hasn't been into work."
"Maybe Percys poisoning him," said Ron. "Probably thinks if Crouch
snuffs it he'll be made head of the Department of Interna-tional Magical
Cooperation."
Hermione gave Ron a don't-joke-about-things-like-that look, and said,
"Funny, goblins looking for Mr. Crouch. . . . They'd nor-mally deal with
the Department for the Regulation and Control of Magical Creatures."
"Crouch can speak loads of different languages, though," said Harry.
"Maybe they need an interpreter."
"Worrying about poor 'ickle goblins, now, are you?" Ron asked
Hermione. "Thinking of starting up S.P.U.G. or something? Soci-ety
for the Protection of Ugly Goblins?"
"Ha, ha, ha," said Hermione sarcastically. "Goblins don't need
protection. Haven't you been listening to what Professor Binns has
been telling us about goblin rebellions?"
"No," said Harry and Ron together.
"Well, the/re quite capable of dealing with wizards," said Hermione,
taking another sip of butterbeer. "They're very clever. They're
not like house-elves, who never stick up for themselves."
"Uh-oh," said Ron, staring at the door.
Rita Skeeter had just entered. She was wearing banana-yellow
robes today; her long nails were painted shocking pink, and she was accompanied
by her paunchy photographer. She bought drinks, and she and the photographer
made their way through the crowds to a table nearby. Harry, Ron,
and Hermione glaring at her as she approached. She was talking fast
and looking very satisfied about something.
"... didn't seem very keen to talk to us, did he, Bozo? Now,
why would that be, do you think? And what's he doing with a pack
of goblins in tow anyway? Showing them the sights . .. what non-sense
... he was always a bad liar. Reckon something's up? Think
we should do a bit of digging? 'Disgraced Ex-Head of Magical Games
and Sports, Ludo Bagman . . .' Snappy start to a sentence, Bozo - we just
need to find a story to fit it -"
"Trying to ruin someone else's life?" said Harry loudly.
A few people looked around. Rita Skeeter's eyes widened behind her
jeweled spectacles as she saw who had spoken.
"Harry!" she said, beaming. "How lovely! Why don't you come and join-
?"
"I wouldn't come near you with a ten-foot broomstick," said Harry furiously.
"What did you do that to Hagrid for, eh?"
Rita Skeeter raised her heavily penciled eyebrows.
"Our readers have a right to the truth, Harry. I am merely doing my-"
"Who cares if he's half-giant?" Harry shouted. "There's
nothing wrong with him!"
The whole pub had gone very quiet. Madam Rosmerta was star-ing over
from behind the bar, apparently oblivious to the fact that the flagon she
was filling with mead was overflowing.
Rita Skeeters smile flickered very slightly, but she hitched it back
almost at once; she snapped open her crocodile-skin handbag, pulled out
her Quick-Quotes Quill, and said, "How about giving me an interview about
the Hagrid you know. Harry? The man be-hind the muscles? Your unlikely
friendship and the reasons behind it. Would you call him a father
substitute?"
Hermione stood up very abruptly, her butterbeer clutched in her hand
as though it were a grenade.
"You horrible woman," she said, through gritted teeth, "you don't care,
do you, anything for a story, and anyone will do, wont they? Even
Ludo Bagman -"
"Sit down, you silly little girl, and don't talk about things you don't
understand," said Rita Skeeter coldly, her eyes hardening as they fell
on Hermione. "I know things about Ludo Bagman that would make your
hair curl... not that it needs it -" she added, eyeing Hermione's bushy
hair.
"Let's go," said Hermione, "c'mon. Harry - Ron . .."
They left; many people were staring at them as they went. Harry
glanced back as they reached the door. Rita Skeeter's Quick-Quotes
Quill was out; it was zooming backward and forward over a piece of parchment
on the table.
"She'll be after you next, Hermione," said Ron in a low and wor-ried
voice as they walked quickly back up the street.
"Let her try!" said Hermione defiantly; she was shaking with rage.
"I'll show her! Silly little girl, am I? Oh, I'll get her back for
this. First Harry, then Hagrid ..."
"You don't want to go upsetting Rita Skeeter," said Ron ner-vously.
"I'm serious, Hermione, she'll dig up something on you -"
"My parents don't read the Daily Prophet. She can't scare me
into hiding!" said Hermione, now striding along so fast that it was
all Harry and Ron could do to keep up with her. The last time Harry
had seen Hermione in a rage like this, she had hit Draco Malfoy around
the face. "And Hagrid isn't hiding anymore! He should never
have let that excuse for a human being upset him! Come on!"
Breaking into a run, she led them all the way back up the road, through
the gates flanked by winged boars, and up through the grounds to Hagrid's
cabin.
The curtains were still drawn, and they could hear Fang barking as
they approached.
"Hagrid!" Hermione shouted, pounding on his front door. "Ha-grid,
that's enough! We know you're in there! Nobody cares if your
mum was a giantess, Hagrid! You can't let that foul Skeeter woman
do this to you! Hagrid, get out here, you're just being -"
The door opened. Hermione said, "About t-!" and then stopped, very
suddenly, because she had found herself face-to-face, not with Hagrid,
but with Albus Dumbledore.
"Good afternoon," he said pleasantly, smiling down at them.
"We-er-we wanted to see Hagrid," said Hermione in a rather small voice.
"Yes, I surmised as much," said Dumbledore, his eyes twinkling.
"Why don't you come in?"
"Oh . . . um ... okay," said Hermione.
She, Ron, and Harry went into the cabin; Fang launched him-self upon
Harry the moment he entered, barking madly and trying to lick his ears.
Harry fended off Fang and looked around.
Hagrid was sitting at his table, where there were two large mugs of
tea. He looked a real mess. His face was blotchy, his eyes
swollen, and he had gone to the other extreme where his hair was con-cerned;
far from trying to make it behave, it now looked like a wig of tangled
wire.
"Hi, Hagrid," said Harry.
Hagrid looked up.
"'Lo," he said in a very hoarse voice.
"More tea, I think," said Dumbledore, closing the door behind Harry,
Ron, and Hermione, drawing out his wand, and twiddling it; a revolving
tea tray appeared in midair along with a plate of cakes. Dumbledore
magicked the tray onto the table, and everybody sat down. There was a slight
pause, and then Dumbledore said, "Did you by any chance hear what Miss
Granger was shouting, Hagrid?"
Hermione went slightly pink, but Dumbledore smiled at her and continued,
"Hermione, Harry, and Ron still seem to want to know you, judging by the
way they were attempting to break down the door."
"Of course we still want to know you!" Harry said, staring at
Hagrid. "You don't think anything that Skeeter cow - sorry, Pro-fessor,"
he added quickly, looking at Dumbledore.
"I have gone temporarily deaf and haven't any idea what you said. Harry,"
said Dumbledore, twiddling his thumbs and staring at the ceiling.
"Er-right," said Harry sheepishly. "I just meant-Hagrid, how
could you think we'd care what that-woman-wrote about you?"
Two fat tears leaked out of Hagrid's beetle-black eyes and fell slowly
into his tangled beard.
"Living proof of what I've been telling you, Hagrid," said Dum-bledore,
still looking carefully up at the ceiling. "I have shown you the
letters from the countless parents who remember you from their own days
here, telling me in no uncertain terms that if I sacked you, they would
have something to say about it -"
"Not all of 'em," said Hagrid hoarsely. "Not all of 'em wan me ter
stay."
"Really, Hagrid, if you are holding out for universal popularity, I'm
afraid you will be in this cabin for a very long time," said Dum-bledore,
now peering sternly over his half-moon spectacles. "Not a week has
passed since I became headmaster of this school when I haven't had at least
one owl complaining about the way I run it. But what should I do?
Barricade myself in my study and refuse to talk to anybody?"
"Yeh - yeh're not half-giant!" said Hagrid croakily.
"Hagrid, look what I've got for relatives!" Harry said furiously.
"Look at the Dursleys!"
"An excellent point," said Professor Dumbledore. "My own brother,
Aberforth, was prosecuted for practicing inappropriate charms on a goat.
It was all over the papers, but did Aberforth hide? No, he did not!
He held his head high and went about his business as usual! Of course,
I'm not entirely sure he can read, so that may not have been bravery. .
.."
"Come back and teach, Hagrid," said Hermione quietly, "please come
back, we really miss you."
Hagrid gulped. More tears leaked out down his cheeks and into
his tangled beard.
Dumbledore stood up. "I refuse to accept your resignation, Hagrid,
and I expect you back at work on Monday," he said. "You will join
me for breakfast at eight-thirty in the Great Hall. No ex-cuses.
Good afternoon to you all."
Dumbledore left the cabin, pausing only to scratch Fangs ears.
When the door had shut behind him, Hagrid began to sob into his dustbin-lid-sized
hands. Hermione kept patting his arm, and at last, Hagrid looked
up, his eyes very red indeed, and said, "Great man, Dumbledore . . . great
man . .."
"Yeah, he is," said Ron. "Can I have one of these cakes, Hagrid?"
"Help yerself," said Hagrid, wiping his eyes on the back of his hand.
"Ar, he's righ', o' course - yeh're all righ' . . .I bin stupid . .. my
ol' dad woulda bin ashamed o' the way I've bin behavin'...." More tears
leaked out, but he wiped them away more forcefully, and said, "Never shown
you a picture of my old dad, have I? Here..."
Hagrid got up, went over to his dresser, opened a drawer, and pulled
out a picture of a short wizard with Hagrid's crinkled black eyes, beaming
as he sat on top of Hagrid's shoulder. Hagrid was a good seven or eight
feet tall, judging by the apple tree beside him, but his face was beardless,
young, round, and smooth - he looked hardly older than eleven.
"Tha was taken jus' after I got inter Hogwarts," Hagrid croaked.
"Dad was dead chuffed ... thought I migh' not be a wizard, see, 'cos me
mum ... well, anyway. 'Course, I never was great shakes at magic,
really... but at least he never saw me expelled. Died, see, in me
second year. . . ."
"Dumbledore was the one who stuck up for me after Dad went. Got
me the gamekeeper job . . . trusts people, he does. Gives 'em second
chances ... tha's what sets him apar' from other heads, see. He'll
accept anyone at Hogwarts, s'long as they've got the talent. Knows people
can turn out okay even if their families weren' ... well... all tha' respectable.
But some don understand that. There's some who'd always hold it against
yeh . . . there's some who'd even pretend they just had big bones rather
than stand up an' say - I am what I am, an' I'm not ashamed. 'Never
be ashamed,' my ol' dad used ter say, 'there's some who'll hold it against
you, but they're not worth botherin' with.' An' he was right. I've
bin an idiot. I'm not botherin' with her no more, I promise yeh that.
Big bones . . . I'll give her big bones."
Harry, Ron, and Hermione looked at one another nervously; Harry would
rather have taken fifty Blast-Ended Skrewts for a walk than admit to Hagrid
that he had overheard him talking to Madame Maxime, but Hagrid was still
talking, apparently unaware that he had said anything odd.
"Yeh know wha, Harry?" he said, looking up from the photo-graph of
his father, his eyes very bright, "when I firs' met you, you reminded me
o' me a bit. Mum an' Dad gone, an' you was feelin' like yeh wouldn'
fit in at Hogwarts, remember? Not sure yeh were really up to it...
an' now look at yeh, Harry! School champion!"
He looked at Harry for a moment and then said, very seriously, "Yeh
know what I'd love. Harry? I'd love yeh ter win, I really would.
It'd show 'em all... yeh don' have ter be pureblood ter do it. Yeh
don have ter be ashamed of what yeh are. It'd show 'em Dumble-dore's
the one who's got it righ', lettin' anyone in as long as they can do magic.
How you doin' with that egg, Harry?"
"Great," said Harry. "Really great."
Hagrid's miserable face broke into a wide, watery smile.
"Tha's my boy. . . you show 'em, Harry, you show 'em. Beat 'em
all."
Lying to Hagrid wasn't quite like lying to anyone else. Harry
went back to the castle later that afternoon with Ron and Her-mione, unable
to banish the image of the happy expression on Hagrid's whiskery face as
he had imagined Harry winning the tour-nament. The incomprehensible
egg weighed more heavily than ever on Harrys conscience that evening, and
by the time he had got into bed, he had made up his mind - it was time
to shelve his pride and see if Cedric's hint was worth anything.
CHAPTER TWENTY-FIVE
THE EGG AND THE EYE
Harry had no idea how long a bath he would need to work out the secret
of the golden egg, he decided to do it at night, when he would be able
to take as much time as he wanted. Reluctant though he was to accept more
favors from Cedric, he also decided to use the prefects' bathroom; far
fewer people were allowed in there, so it was much less likely that he
would be disturbed.
Harry planned his excursion carefully, because he had been caught out
of bed and out-of-bounds by Filch the caretaker in the middle of the night
once before, and had no desire to repeat the experience. The Invisibility
Cloak would, of course, be essential, and as an added precaution, Harry
thought he would take the Marauders Map, which, next to the cloak, was
the most useful aid to rule-breaking Harry owned. The map showed
the whole of Hog-warts, including its many shortcuts and secret passageways
and, most important of all, it revealed the people inside the castle as
minuscule, labeled dots, moving around the corridors, so that Harry would
be forewarned if somebody was approaching the bathroom.
On Thursday night, Harry sneaked up to bed, put on the cloak, crept
back downstairs, and, just as he had done on the night when Hagrid had
shown him the dragons, waited for the portrait hole to open. This
time it was Ron who waited outside to give the Fat Lady the password ("banana
fritters"), "Good luck," Ron muttered, climbing into the room as Harry
crept out past him.
It was awkward moving under the cloak tonight, because Harry had the
heavy egg under one arm and the map held in front of his nose with the
other. However, the moonlit corridors were empty and silent, and by checking
the map at strategic intervals, Harry was able to ensure that he wouldn't
run into anyone he wanted to avoid. When he reached the statue of
Boris the Bewildered, a lost-looking wizard with his gloves on the wrong
hands, he located the right door, leaned close to it, and muttered the
password, "Pine fresh," just as Cedric had told him.
The door creaked open. Harry slipped inside, bolted the door behind
him, and pulled off the Invisibility Cloak, looking around.
His immediate reaction was that it would be worth becoming a prefect
just to be able to use this bathroom. It was softly lit by a splendid
candle-filled chandelier, and everything was made of white marble, including
what looked like an empty, rectangular swimming pool sunk into the middle
of the floor. About a hundred golden taps stood all around the pools
edges, each with a differ-ently colored Jewel set into its handle.
There was also a diving board. Long white linen curtains hung at
the windows; a large pile of fluffy white towels sat in a corner, and there
was a single golden-framed painting on the wall. It featured a blonde
mermaid who
was fast asleep on a rock, her long hair over her face. It fluttered
every time she snored.
Harry moved forward, looking around, his footsteps echoing off the
walls. Magnificent though the bathroom was - and quite keen though
he was to try out a few of those taps - now he was here he couldn't quite
suppress the feeling that Cedric might have been having him on. How on
earth was this supposed to help solve the mystery of the egg? Nevertheless,
he put one of the Huffy towels, the cloak, the map, and the egg at the
side of the swimming-pool-sized bath, then knelt down and turned on a few
of the taps.
He could tell at once that they carried different sorts of bubble bath
mixed with the water, though it wasn't bubble bath as Harry had ever experienced
it. One tap gushed pink and blue bubbles the size of footballs; another
poured ice-white foam so thick that Harry thought it would have supported
his weight if he'd cared to test it; a third sent heavily perfumed purple
clouds hovering over the sur-face of the water. Harry amused himself
for awhile turning the taps on and off, particularly enjoying the effect
of one whose jet bounced off the surface of the water in large arcs.
Then, when the deep pool was full of hot water, foam, and bubbles, which
took a very short time considering its size, Harry turned off all the taps,
pulled off his pajamas, slippers, and dressing gown, and slid into the
water.
It was so deep that his feet barely touched the bottom, and he ac-tually
did a couple of lengths before swimming back to the side and treading water,
staring at the egg. Highly enjoyable though it was to swim in hot
and foamy water with clouds of different-colored steam wafting all around
him, no stroke of brilliance came to him, no sudden burst of understanding.
Harry stretched out his arms, lifted the egg in his wet hands, and
opened it. The wailing, screeching sound filled the bathroom, echoing
and reverberating off the marble walls, but it sounded just as incomprehensible
as ever, if not more so with all the echoes. He snapped it shut again,
worried that the sound would attract Filch, wondering whether that hadn't
been Cedric's plan - and then, making him jump so badly that he dropped
the egg, which clat-tered away across the bathroom floor, someone spoke.
"I'd try putting it in the water, if I were you."
Harry had swallowed a considerable amount of bubbles in shock.
He stood up, sputtering, and saw the ghost of a very glum-looking girl
sitting cross-legged on top of one of the taps. It was Moaning Myrtle,
who was usually to be heard sobbing in the S-bend of a toilet three floors
below.
"Myrtle!" Harry said in outrage, "I'm - I'm not wearing anything!"
The foam was so dense that this hardly mattered, but he had a nasty
feeling that Myrtle had been spying on him from out of one of the taps
ever since he had arrived.
"I closed my eyes when you got in," she said, blinking at him through
her thick spectacles. "You haven't been to see me for ages."
"Yeah . . . well. . ." said Harry, bending his knees slightly, just
to make absolutely sure Myrtle couldn't see anything but his head, "I'm
not supposed to come into your bathroom, am I? It's a girls' one."
"You didn't used to care," said Myrtle miserably. "You used to be in
there all the time."
This was true, though only because Harry, Ron, and Hermione had found
Myrtle's out-of-order toilets a convenient place to brew Polyjuice Potion
in secret - a forbidden potion that had turned him and Ron into living
replicas of Crabbe and Goyle for an hour, so that they could sneak into
the Slytherin common room.
"I got told off for going in there." said Harry, which was half-true;
Percy had once caught him coming out of Myrtles bathroom. "I thought
I'd better not come back after that."
"Oh ... I see ..." said Myrtle, picking at a spot on her chin in a
morose sort of way. "Well... anyway... I'd try the egg in the water.
That's what Cedric Diggory did."
"Have you been spying on him too?" said Harry indignantly.
"What d'you do, sneak up here in the evenings to watch the pre-fects take
baths?"
"Sometimes," said Myrtle, rather slyly, "but I've never come out to
speak to anyone before."
"I'm honored," said Harry darkly. "You keep your eyes shut!"
He made sure Myrtle had her glasses well covered before hoist-ing himself
out of the bath, wrapping the towel firmly around his waist, and going
to retrieve the egg. Once he was back in the water, Myrtle peered
through her fingers and said, "Go on, then . .. open it under the water!"
Harry lowered the egg beneath the foamy surface and opened it... and
this time, it did not wail. A gurgling song was coming out of it,
a song whose words he couldnt distinguish through the water.
"You need to put your head under too," said Myrtle, who seemed to be
thoroughly enjoying bossing him around. "Go on!"
Harry took a great breath and slid under the surface - and now, sitting
on the marble bottom of the bubble-filled bath, he heard a chorus of eerie
voices singing to him from the open egg in his hands:
"Come seek us where our voices sound,
We cannot sing above the ground,
And while you re searching, ponder this:
Wove taken what you'll sorely miss,
An hour long you'll have to look,
And to recover what we took,
But past an hour- the prospect's black,
Too late, it's gone, it wont come back"
Harry let himself float back upward and broke the bubbly sur-face, shaking
his hair out of his eyes.
"Hear it?" said Myrtle.
"Yeah ... 'Come seek us where our voices sound .. .' and if I need
persuading ... hang on, I need to listen again...."
He sank back beneath the water. It took three more underwater
renditions of the egg's song before Harry had it memorized; then he trod
water for a while, thinking hard, while Myrtle sat and watched him.
"I've got to go and look for people who can't use their voices above
the ground. . . ." he said slowly. "Er . . . who could that be?"
"Slow, aren't you?"
He had never seen Moaning Myrtle so cheerful, apart from the day when
a dose of PolyJuice Potion had given Hermione the hairy face and tail of
a cat. Harry stared around the bathroom, thinking ... if the voices
could only be heard underwater, then it made sense for them to belong to
underwater creatures. He ran this theory past Myrtle, who smirked
at him.
"Well, thats what Diggory thought," she said. "He lay there talking
to himself for ages about it. Ages and ages . . . nearly all the
bubbles had gone. ..."
"Underwater ..." Harry said slowly. "Myrtle . . . what lives in the
lake, apart from the giant squid?"
"Oh all sorts," she said. "I sometimes go down there . . . some-times
don't have any choice, if someone flushes my toilet when I'm not expecting
it...."
Trying not to think about Moaning Myrtle zooming down a pipe to the
lake with the contents of a toilet. Harry said, "Well, does anything
in there have a human voice? Hang on -"
Harry's eyes had fallen on the picture of the snoozing mermaid on the
wall.
"Myrtle, there aren't merpeople in there, are there?"
"Oooh, very good," she said, her thick glasses twinkling, "it took
Diggory much longer than that! And that was with her awake too" -
Myrtle jerked her head toward the mermaid with an ex-pression of great
dislike on her glum face - "giggling and showing off and flashing her fins..
.."
"Thats it, isn't it?" said Harry excitedly. "The second
tasks to go and find the merpeople in the lake and ... and ..."
But he suddenly realized what he was saying, and he felt the ex-citement
drain out of him as though someone had just pulled a plug in his stomach.
He wasn't a very good swimmer; he'd never had much practice. Dudley
had had lessons in his youth, but Aunt Petunia and Uncle Vernon, no doubt
hoping that Harry would drown one day, hadn't bothered to give him any.
A couple of lengths of this bath were all very well, but that lake was
very large, and very deep . . . and merpeople would surely live right at
the bottom. . . .
"Myrtle," Harry said slowly, "how am I supposed to breathe?"
At this, Myrtle's eyes filled with sudden tears again.
"Tactless!" she muttered, groping in her robes for a handker-chief.
"What's tactless?" said Harry, bewildered.
"Talking about breathing in front of me!" she said shrilly, and
her voice echoed loudly around the bathroom. "When I can't. . . when
I haven't. . . not for ages ..."
She buried her face in her handkerchief and sniffed loudly. Harry
remembered how touchy Myrtle had always been about be-ing dead, but none
of the other ghosts he knew made such a fuss about it.
"Sorry," he said impatiently. "I didn't mean - I just forgot. . ."
"Oh yes, very easy to forget Myrtle's dead," said Myrtle, gulping,
looking at him out of swollen eyes. "Nobody missed me even when I
was alive. Took them hours and hours to find my body - I know, I
was sitting there waiting for them. Olive Hornby came into the bathroom
- Are you in here again, sulking, Myrtle?'&nnbsp; she said, 'be-cause Professor
Dippet asked me to look for you -' And then she saw my body . . . ooooh,
she didn't forget it until her dying day, I made sure of that... followed
her around and reminded her, I did. I remember at her brother's wedding
-"
But Harry wasn't listening; he was thinking about the merpeople's song
again. "We've taken what you II sorely miss." That sounded
as though they were going to steal something of his, something he had to
get back. What were they going to take?
"--and then, of course, she went to the Ministry of Magic to stop me
stalking her, so I had to come back here and live in my toilet."
"Good," said Harry vaguely. "Well, I'm a lot further on than
I was. . . . Shut your eyes again, will you? I'm getting out."
He retrieved the egg from the bottom of the bath, climbed out, dried
himself, and pulled on his pajamas and dressing gown again.
"Will you come and visit me in my bathroom again sometime?" Moaning
Myrtle asked mournfully as Harry picked up the Invisi-bility Cloak.
"Er . . . I'll try," Harry said, though privately thinking the only
way he'd be visiting Myrtle's bathroom again was if every other toi-let
in the castle got blocked. "See you. Myrtle... thanks for your
help."
"Bye, 'bye," she said gloomily, and as Harry put on the Invisibllity
Cloak he saw her zoom back up the tap.
Out in the dark corridor, Harry examined the Marauders Map to check
that the coast was still clear. Yes, the dots belonging to Filch
and his cat, Mrs. Norris, were safely in their office . .. noth-ing else
seemed to be moving apart from Peeves, though he was bouncing around the
trophy room on the floor above. ... Harry had taken his first step back
toward Gryffindor Tower when some-thing else on the map caught his eye
. . . something distinctly odd.
Peeves was not the only thing that was moving. A single dot was
flitting around a room in the bottom left-hand corner - Snapes office.
But the dot wasn't labeled "Severus Snape" ... it was Bartemius Crouch.
Harry stared at the dot. Mr. Crouch was supposed to be too ill to go
to work or to come to the Yule Ball - so what was he doing, sneaking into
Hogwarts at one o'clock in the morning? Harry watched closely as
the dot moved around and around the room, pausing here and there. ...
Harry hesitated, thinking . . . and then his curiosity got the bet-ter
of him. He turned and set off in the opposite direction toward the
nearest staircase. He was going to see what Crouch was up to.
Harry walked down the stairs as quietly as possible, though the faces
in some of the portraits still turned curiously at the squeak of a floorboard,
the rustle of his pajamas. He crept along the corridor be-low, pushed
aside a tapestry about halfway along, and proceeded down a narrower staircase,
a shortcut that would take him down two floors. He kept glancing
down at the map, wondering ... It just did-n't seem in character, somehow,
for correct, law-abiding Mr. Crouch to be sneaking around somebody else's
office this late at night....
And then, halfway down the staircase, not thinking about what he was
doing, not concentrating on anything but the peculiar be-havior of Mr.
Crouch, Harrys leg suddenly sank right through the trick step Neville always
forgot to jump. He gave an ungainly wob-ble, and the golden egg,
still damp from the bath, slipped from un-der his arm. He lurched forward
to try and catch it, but too late; the egg fell down the long staircase
with a bang as loud as a bass drum on every step - the Invisibility Cloak
slipped - Harry snatched at it, and the Marauder s Map fluttered out of
his hand and slid down six stairs, where, sunk in the step to above his
knee, he couldn't reach it.
The golden egg fell through the tapestry at the bottom of the staircase,
burst open, and began wailing loudly in the corridor be-low. Harry
pulled out his wand and struggled to touch the Ma-rauder s Map, to wipe
it blank, but it was too far away to reach -
Pulling the cloak back over himself Harry straightened up, lis-tening
hard with his eyes screwed up with fear. . . and, almost immediately -
"PEEVES!"
It was the unmistakable hunting cry of Filch the caretaker. Harry
could hear his rapid, shuffling footsteps coming nearer and nearer, his
wheezy voice raised in fury.
"What's this racket? Wake up the whole castle, will you?
I'll have you, Peeves, I'll have you, you'll... and what is this?"
Filch's footsteps halted; there was a clink of metal on metal and the
wailing stopped - Filch had picked up the egg and closed it. Harry
stood very still, one leg still Jammed tightly in the magical step, listening.
Any moment now, Filch was going to pull aside the tapestry, expecting to
see Peeves . . . and there would be no Peeves ... but if he came up the
stairs, he would spot the Ma-rauder's Map . . . and Invisibility Cloak
or not, the map would show "Harry Potter" standing exactly where
he was.
"Egg?" Filch said quietly at the foot of the stairs. "My
sweet!" - Mrs. Norris was obviously with him - "This is a Triwizard clue!
This belongs to a school champion!"
Harry felt sick; his heart was hammering very fast -
"PEEVES!" Filch roared gleefully. "You've been stealing!"
He ripped back the tapestry below, and Harry saw his horrible, pouchy
face and bulging, pale eyes staring up the dark and (to Filch) deserted
staircase.
"Hiding, are you?" he said softly. "I'm coming to get you,
Peeves. . . . You've gone and stolen a Triwizard clue, Peeves... . Dumbledore'll
have you out of here for this, you filthy, pilfering poltergeist. ..."
Filch started to climb the stairs, his scrawny, dust-colored cat at
his heels. Mrs. Morris's lamp-like eyes, so very like her masters,
were fixed directly upon Harry. He had had occasion before now to
wonder whether the Invisibility Cloak worked on cats. . . . Sick with apprehension,
he watched Filch drawing nearer and nearer in his old flannel dressing
gown - he tried desperately to pull his trapped leg free, but it merely
sank a few more inches - any sec-ond now, Filch was going to spot the map
or walk right into him -
"Filch? Whats going on?"
Filch stopped a few steps below Harry and turned. At the foot
of the stairs stood the only person who could make Harry's situation worse:
Snape. He was wearing a long gray nightshirt and he looked livid.
"Its Peeves, Professor," Filch whispered malevolently. "He threw
this egg down the stairs."
Snape climbed up the stairs quickly and stopped beside Filch.
Harry gritted his teeth, convinced his loudly thumping heart would give
him away at any second. . . .
"Peeves?" said Snape softly, staring at the egg in Filch's hands.
"But Peeves couldn't get into my office. . . ."
"This egg was in your office. Professor?"
"Of course not," Snape snapped. "I heard banging and wailing
-"
"Yes, Professor, that was the egg -"
"- I was coming to investigate -"
"- Peeves threw it. Professor -"
"- and when I passed my office, I saw that the torches were lit and
a cupboard door was ajar! Somebody has been searching it!"
But Peeves couldn't -"
"I know he couldn't, Filch!" Snape snapped again. "I seal my office
with a spell none but a wizard could break!" Snape looked up the
stairs, straight through Harry, and then down into the corridor be-low.
"I want you to come and help me search for the intruder, Filch."
"I - yes, Professor - but -"
Filch looked yearningly up the stairs, right through Harry, who could
see that he was very reluctant to forgo the chance of corner-ing Peeves.
Go, Harry pleaded with him silently, go with Snape . . . go. . . Mrs. Norris
was peering around Filch's legs.... Harry had the distinct impression that
she could smell him.. . . Why had he filled that bath with so much perfumed
foam?
"The thing is, Professor," said Filch plaintively, "the headmaster
will have to listen to me this time. Peeves has been stealing from
a student, it might be my chance to get him thrown out of the castle once
and for all -"
"Filch, I don't give a damn about that wretched poltergeist; it's my
office that's -"
Clunk. Clunk. Clunk.
Snape stopped talking very abruptly. He and Filch both looked
down at the foot of the stairs. Harry saw Mad-Eye Moody limp into
sight through the narrow gap between their heads. Moody was wearing his
old traveling cloak over his nightshirt and leaning on his staff as usual.
"Pajama party, is it?" he growled up the stairs.
"Professor Snape and I heard noises, Professor," said Filch at once.
"Peeves the Poltergeist, throwing things around as usual - and then Professor
Snape discovered that someone had broken into his off -"
"Shut up!" Snape hissed to Filch.
Moody took a step closer to the foot of the stairs. Harry saw
Moodys magical eye travel over Snape, and then, unmistakably, onto himself.
Harrys heart gave a horrible jolt. Moody could see through Invisi-bility
Cloaks... he alone could see the full strangeness of the scene:
Snape in his nightshirt, Filch clutching the egg, and he, Harry, trapped
in the stairs behind them. Moody's lopsided gash of a mouth opened
in surprise. For a few seconds, he and Harry stared straight into
each other's eyes. Then Moody closed his mouth and turned his blue
eye upon Snape again.
"Did I hear that correctly, Snape?" he asked slowly. "Someone broke
into your office?"
"It is unimportant," said Snape coldly. "On the contrary," growled
Moody, "it is very important. Who'd want to break into your office?"
"A student, I daresay," said Snape. Harry could see a vein flick-ering
horribly on Snape's greasy temple. "It has happened before.
Potion ingredients have gone missing from my private store cup-board ...
students attempting illicit mixtures, no doubt...."
"Reckon they were after potion ingredients, eh?" said Moody.
"Not hiding anything else in your office, are you?"
Harry saw the edge of Snapes sallow face turn a nasty brick color,
the vein in his temple pulsing more rapidly.
"You know I'm hiding nothing, Moody," he said in a soft and dangerous
voice, "as you've searched my office pretty thoroughly yourself."
Moodys face twisted into a smile. "Auror's privilege, Snape. Dumbledore
told me to keep an eye -"
"Dumbledore happens to trust me," said Snape through clenched teeth.
"I refuse to believe that he gave you orders to search my office!"
"Course Dumbledore trusts you," growled Moody. "Hes a trusting
man, isn't he? Believes in second chances. But me - I say there are
spots that don't come off, Snape. Spots that never come off, d'you
know what I mean?"
Snape suddenly did something very strange. He seized his left
forearm convulsively with his right hand, as though something on it had
hurt him.
Moody laughed. "Get back to bed, Snape."
"You don't have the authority to send me anywhere!" Snape hissed,
letting go of his arm as though angry with himself. "I have as much
right to prowl this school after dark as you do!"
"Prowl away," said Moody, but his voice was full of menace. "I
look forward to meeting you in a dark corridor some time.... You've dropped
something, by the way. ..."
With a stab of horror. Harry saw Moody point at the Marauders Map,
still lying on the staircase six steps below him. As Snape and Filch
both turned to look at it, Harry threw caution to the winds; he raised
his arms under the cloak and waved furiously at Moody to attract his attention,
mouthing "It's mine! Mine!"
Snape had reached out for it, a horrible expression of dawning comprehension
on his face -
"Accio Parchment!"
The map flew up into the air, slipped through Snapes out-stretched
fingers, and soared down the stairs into Moodys hand.
"My mistake," Moody said calmly. "It's mine - must've dropped
it earlier -"
But Snape's black eyes were darting from the egg in Filch's arms to
the map in Moodys hand, and Harry could tell he was putting two and two
together, as only Snape could. . . .
"Potter," he said quietly.
"What's that?" said Moody calmly, folding up the map and pocketing
it.
"Potter!" Snape snarled, and he actually turned his head and stared
right at the place where Harry was, as though he could sud-denly see him.
"That egg is Potters egg. That piece of parchment belongs to Potter.
I have seen it before, I recognize it! Potter is here! Potter,
in his Invisibility Cloak!"
Snape stretched out his hands like a blind man and began to move up
the stairs; Harry could have sworn his over-large nostrils were dilating,
trying to sniff Harry out - trapped. Harry leaned backward, trying to avoid
Snapes fingertips, but any moment now-
"There's nothing there, Snape!" barked Moody, "but I'll be happy to
tell the headmaster how quickly your mind jumped to Harry Potter!"
"Meaning what?" Snape turned again to look at Moody, his hands
still outstretched, inches from Harry's chest.
"Meaning that Dumbledore's very interested to know who's got it in
for that boy!" said Moody, limping nearer still to the foot of the stairs.
"And so am I, Snape . . . very interested...." The torch-light flickered
across his mangled face, so that the scars, and the chunk missing from
his nose, looked deeper and darker than ever.
Snape was looking down at Moody, and Harry couldn't see the expression
on his face. For a moment, nobody moved or said any-thing. Then Snape
slowly lowered his hands.
"I merely thought," said Snape, in a voice of forced calm, "that if
Potter was wandering around after hours again ... it's an unfortu-nate
habit of his ... he should be stopped. For - for his own safety."
"Ah, I see," said Moody softly. "Got Potter's best interests at heart,
have you?"
There was a pause. Snape and Moody were still staring at each
other, Mrs. Norris gave a loud meow, still peering around Filch's legs,
looking for the source of Harry's bubble-bath smell.
"I think I will go back to bed," Snape said curtly.
"Best idea you've had all night," said Moody. "Now, Filch, if
you'll just give me that egg-"
"No!" said Filch, clutching the egg as though it were his first-born
son. "Professor Moody, this is evidence of Peeves' treachery!"
"It's the property of the champion he stole it from," said Moody.
Hand it over, now."
Snape swept downstairs and passed Moody without another word.
Filch made a chirruping noise to Mrs. Norris, who stared blankly at Harry
for a few more seconds before turning and following her master. Still
breathing very fast. Harry heard Snape walking away down the corridor;
Filch handed Moody the egg and disappeared from view too, muttering to
Mrs. Norris. "Never mind. my sweet.. . we'll see Dumbledore in the morning
... tell him what Peeves was up to...."
A door slammed. Harry was left staring down at Moody, who placed
his staff on the bottommost stair and started to climb laboriously toward
him, a dull clunk on every other step.
"Close shave. Potter," he muttered.
"Yeah ... I - er ... thanks," said Harry weakly.
"What is this thing?" said Moody, drawing the Marauder's Map
out of his pocket and unfolding it.
"Map of Hogwarts," said Harry, hoping Moody was going to pull him out
of the staircase soon; his leg was really hurting him.
"Merlins beard," Moody whispered, staring at the map, his mag-ical
eye going haywire. "This . .. this is some map. Potter!"
"Yeah, its . . . quite useful," Harry said. His eyes were starting
to water from the pain. "Er - Professor Moody, d'you think you could help
me - ?"
"What? Oh! Yes . . . yes, of course . .."
Moody took hold of Harrys arms and pulled; Harrys leg came free of
the trick step, and he climbed onto the one above it. Moody was still
gazing at the map.
"Potter ..." he said slowly, "you didn't happen, by any chance, to
see who broke into Snapes office, did you? On this map, I mean?"
"Er . . . yeah, I did . . ." Harry admitted. "It was Mr. Crouch."
Moodys magical eye whizzed over the entire surface of the map.
He looked suddenly alarmed.
"Crouch?" he said. "You're - you're sure. Potter?"
"Positive," said Harry.
"Well, he's not here anymore," said Moody, his eye still whizzing over
the map. "Crouch . .. that's very - very interesting... ."
He said nothing for almost a minute, still staring at the map.
Harry could tell that this news meant something to Moody and very much
wanted to know what it was. He wondered whether he dared ask.
Moody scared him slightly. . . yet Moody had just helped him avoid an awful
lot of trouble. . . .
"Er ... Professor Moody . . . why d'you reckon Mr. Crouch wanted to
look around Snapes office?"
Moodys magical eye left the map and fixed, quivering, upon Harry.
It was a penetrating glare, and Harry had the impression that Moody was
sizing him up, wondering whether to answer or not, or how much to tell
him.
"Put it this way. Potter," Moody muttered finally, "they say old Mad-Eye's
obsessed with catching Dark wizards . . . but I'm noth-ing - nothing -
compared to Barty Crouch."
He continued to stare at the map. Harry was burning to know more.
"Professor Moody?" he said again. "D'you think... could this
have anything to do with . . . maybe Mr. Crouch thinks there's something
going on. ..."
"Like what?" said Moody sharply.
Harry wondered how much he dare say. He didn't want Moody to
guess that he had a source of information outside Hogwarts; that might
lead to tricky questions about Sirius.
"I don't know," Harry muttered, "odd stuffs been happening lately,
hasn't it? It's been in the Daily Prophet... the Dark Mark at the
World Cup, and the Death Eaters and everything...."
Both of Moody's mismatched eyes widened.
"You're a sharp boy. Potter," he said. His magical eye roved
back to the Marauder's Map. "Crouch could be thinking along those
lines," he said slowly. "Very possible. . . there have been some
funny rumors flying around lately - helped along by Rita Skeeter, of course.
It's making a lot of people nervous, I reckon." A grim smile twisted
his lopsided mouth. "Oh if there's one thing I hate," he muttered,
more to himself than to Harry, and his magical eye was fixed on the left-hand
corner of the map, "its a Death Eater who walked free. ..."
Harry stared at him. Could Moody possibly mean what Harry thought he
meant?
"And now I want to ask you a question. Potter," said Moody in a more
businesslike tone.
Harrys heart sank; he had thought this was coming. Moody was
going to ask where he had got this map, which was a very dubious magical
object - and the story of how it had fallen into his hands incriminated
not only him, but his own father, Fred and George Weasley, and Professor
Lupin, their last Defense Against the Dark Arts teacher. Moody waved
the map in front of Harry, who braced himself-
"Can I borrow this?"
"Oh!" said Harry.
He was very fond of his map, but on the other hand, he was ex-tremely
relieved that Moody wasn't asking where he'd got it, and there was no doubt
that he owed Moody a favor.
"Yeah, okay."
"Good boy," growled Moody. "I can make good use of this . .. this might
be exactly what I've been looking for. . . . Right, bed, Potter, come on,
now. ..."
They climbed to the top of the stairs together, Moody still ex-amining
the map as though it was a treasure the like of which he had never seen
before. They walked in silence to the door of Moody's office, where
he stopped and looked up at Harry.
"You ever thought of a career as an Auror, Potter?"
"No," said Harry, taken aback.
"You want to consider it," said Moody, nodding and looking at Harry
thoughtfully. "Yes, indeed ... and incidentally ... I'm guessing you werent
Just taking that egg for a walk tonight?"
"Er - no," said Harry, grinning. "I've been working out the clue."
Moody winked at him, his magical eye going haywire again. "Nothing
like a nighttime stroll to give you ideas, Potter. . .. See you in the
morning...."
He went back into his office, staring down at the Marauders Map again,
and closed the door behind him.
Harry walked slowly back to Gryffindor Tower, lost in thought about
Snape, and Crouch, and what it all meant.... Why was Crouch pretending
to be ill, if he could manage to get to Hogwarts when he wanted to?
What did he think Snape was concealing in his office?
And Moody thought he. Harry, ought to be an Auror! Interest-ing
idea.. . but somehow. Harry thought, as he got quietly into his four-poster
ten minutes later, the egg and the cloak now safely back in his trunk,
he thought he'd like to check how scarred the rest of them were before
he chose it as a career.
CHAPTER TWENTY-SIX
THE SECOND TASK
You said you'd already worked out that egg clue!" said Hermione indignantly.
"Keep your voice down!" said Harry crossly. "I just need
to - sort of fine-tune it, all right?"
He, Ron, and Hermione were sitting at the very back of the Charms class
with a table to themselves. They were supposed to be practicing the
opposite of the Summoning Charm today - the Banishing Charm. Owing
to the potential for nasty accidents when objects kept flying across the
room. Professor Flitwick had given each student a stack of cushions
on which to practice, the theory being that these wouldn't hurt anyone
if they went off target. It was a good theory, but it wasn't working
very well. Neville's aim was so poor that he kept accidentally sending
much heavier things flying across the room - Professor Flitwick, for instance.
"Just forget the egg for a minute, all right?" Harry hissed as
Pro-fessor Flitwick went whizzing resignedly past them, landing on top
of a large cabinet. "I'm trying to tell you about Snape and Moody.
..."
This class was an ideal cover for a private conversation, as every-one
was having far too much fun to pay them any attention. Harry had
been recounting his adventures of the previous night in whis-pered installments
for the last half hour.
"Snape said Moodys searched his office as well?" Ron whispered,
his eyes alight with interest as he Banished a cushion with a sweep of
his wand (it soared into the air and knocked Parvati's hat off).
"What. . . d'you reckon Moody's here to keep an eye on Snape as well as
Karkaroff?"
"Well, I dunno if that's what Dumbledore asked him to do, but he's
definitely doing it," said Harry, waving his wand without pay-ing much
attention, so that his cushion did an odd sort of belly flop off the desk.
"Moody said Dumbledore only lets Snape stay here because he's giving him
a second chance or something. ..."
"What?" said Ron, his eyes widening, his next cushion spinning high
into the air, ricocheting off the chandelier, and dropping heavily onto
Flitwick's desk. "Harry... maybe Moody thinks Snape put your name
in the Goblet of Fire!"
"Oh Ron," said Hermione, shaking her head sceptically, "we thought
Snape was trying to kill Harry before, and it turned out he was saving
Harry's life, remember?"
She Banished a cushion and it flew across the room and landed in the
box they were all supposed to be aiming at. Harry looked at Hermione,
thinking... it was true that Snape had saved his life once, but the odd
thing was, Snape definitely loathed him, just as he'd loathed Harry s father
when they had been at school together. Snape loved taking points
from Harry, and had certainly never missed an opportunity to give him punishments,
or even to suggest that he should be suspended from the school.
"I don't care what Moody says," Hermione went on. "Dumble-dore's
not stupid. He was right to trust Hagrid and Professor Lupin, even
though loads of people wouldn't have given them jobs, so why shouldn't
he be right about Snape, even if Snape is a bit -"
"- evil," said Ron promptly. "Come on, Hermione, why are all
these Dark wizard catchers searching his office, then?"
"Why has Mr. Crouch been pretending to be ill?" said Hermi-one, ignoring
Ron. "Its a bit funny, isn't it, that he cant manage to come to the
Yule Ball, but he can get up here in the middle of the night when he wants
to?"
"You just don't like Crouch because of that elf, Winky," said Ron,
sending a cushion soaring into the window.
"You just want to think Snapes up to something," said Her-mione, sending
her cushion zooming neatly into the box.
"I just want to know what Snape did with his first chance, if he's
on his second one," said Harry grimly, and his cushion, to his very great
surprise, flew straight across the room and landed neatly on top of Hermione's.
Obedient to Sirius's wish of hearing about anything odd at Hog-warts,
Harry sent him a letter by brown owl that night, explaining all about Mr.
Crouch breaking into Snape s office, and Moody and Snape's conversation.
Then Harry turned his attention in earnest to the most urgent problem facing
him: how to survive underwater for an hour on the twenty-fourth of February.
Ron quite liked the idea of using the Summoning Charm again - Harry
had explained about Aqua-Lungs, and Ron couldn't see why Harry shouldn't
Summon one from the nearest Muggle town. Hermione squashed this plan
by pointing out that, in the un-likely event that Harry managed to learn
how to operate an Aqua-Lung within the set limit of an hour, he was sure
to be disqualified for breaking the International Code of Wizarding Secrecy
- it was too much to hope that no Muggles woould spot an Aqua-Lung zooming
across the countryside to Hogwarts.
"Of course, the ideal solution would be for you to Transfigure yourself
into a submarine or something," Hermione said. "If only we'd done
human Transfiguration already! But I don't think we start that until
sixth year, and it can go badly wrong if you don't know what you're doing...."
"Yeah, I don't fancy walking around with a periscope sticking out of
my head," said Harry. "I s'pose I could always attack some-one in
front of Moody; he might do it for me...."
"I don't think he'd let you choose what you wanted to be turned into,
though," said Hermione seriously. "No, I think your best chance is
some sort of charm."
So Harry, thinking that he would soon have had enough of the library
to last him a lifetime, buried himself once more among the dusty volumes,
looking for any spell that might enable a hu-man to survive without oxygen.
However, though he, Ron, and Hermione searched through their lunchtimes,
evenings, and whole weekends - though Harry asked Professor McGonagall
for a note of permission to use the Restricted Section, and even asked
the ir-ritable, vulture-like librarian. Madam Pince, for help - they
found nothing whatsoever that would enable Harry to spend an hour underwater
and live to tell the tale.
Familiar flutterings of panic were starting to disturb Harry now, and
he was finding it difficult to concentrate in class again. The lake,
which Harry had always taken for granted as just another fea-ture of the
grounds, drew his eyes whenever he was near a class-room window, a great,
iron-gray mass of chilly water, whose dark and icy depths were starting
to seem as distant as the moon.
Just as it had before he faced the Horntail, time was slipping away
as though somebody had bewitched the clocks to go extra-fast. There
was a week to go before February the twenty-fourth (there was still time)
. . . there were five days to go (he was bound to find something soon)
.. . three days to go (please let me find something... please). . .
With two days left. Harry started to go off food again.
The only good thing about breakfast on Monday was the return of the brown
owl he had sent to Sirius. He pulled off the parchment, unrolled
it, and saw the shortest letter Sirius had ever written to him.
Send date of next Hogsmeade weekend by return owl.
Harry turned the parchment over and looked at the back, hop-ing to see
something else, but it was blank.
"Weekend after next," whispered Hermione, who had read the note over
Harrys shoulder. "Here - take my quill and send this owl back straight
away."
Harry scribbled the dates down on the back of Sirius's letter, tied
it onto the brown owl's leg, and watched it take flight again. What
had he expected? Advice on how to survive underwater? He had
been so intent on telling Sirius all about Snape and Moody he had completely
forgotten to mention the eggs clue.
"What's he want to know about the next Hogsmeade weekend for?" said
Ron.
"Dunno," said Harry dully. The momentary happiness that had flared
inside him at the sight of the owl had died. "Come on ...Care of
Magical Creatures."
Whether Hagrid was trying to make up for the Blast-Ended Skrewts, or
because there were now only two skrewts left, or be-cause he was trying
to prove he could do anything that Professor Grubbly-Plank could.
Harry didnt know, but Hagrid had been continuing her lessons on unicorns
ever since he'd returned to work. It turned out that Hagrid knew
quite as much about uni-corns as he did about monsters, though it was clear
that he found their lack of poisonous fangs disappointing.
Today he had managed to capture two unicorn foals. Unlike full-grown
unicorns, they were pure gold. Parvati and Lavender went into transports
of delight at the sight of them, and even Pansy Parkinson had to work hard
to conceal how much she liked them.
"Easier ter spot than the adults," Hagrid told the class. "They
turn silver when they're abou' two years old, an' they grow horns at aroun
four. Don' go pure white till they're full grown, 'round about seven.
They're a bit more trustin when they're babies .. . don mind boys so much....
C'mon, move in a bit, yeh can pat 'em if yeh want. . . give 'em a few o'
these sugar lumps. . . .
"You okay. Harry?" Hagrid muttered, moving aside slightly, while
most of the others swarmed around the baby unicorns.
"Yeah," said Harry. "Jus' nervous, eh?" said Hagrid.
"Bit," said Harry.
"Harry," said Hagrid, clapping a massive hand on his shoulder, so that
Harry's knees buckled under its weight, "I'd've bin worried before I saw
yeh take on tha Horntail, but I know now yeh can do anythin' yeh set yer
mind ter. I'm not worried at all. Yeh're goin ter be fine.
Got yer clue worked out, haven' yeh?"
Harry nodded, but even as he did so, an insane urge to confess that
he didn't have any idea how to survive at the bottom of the lake for an
hour came over him. He looked up at Hagrid - per-haps he had to go
into the lake sometimes, to deal with the crea-tures in it? He looked
after everything else on the grounds, after all-
"Yeh're goin' ter win," Hagrid growled, patting Harrys shoulder again,
so that Harry actually felt himself sink a couple of inches into the soft
ground. "I know it. I can feel it. Yeh're goin' ter win,
Harry n
Harry just couldn't bring himself to wipe the happy, confident smile
off Hagrid's face. Pretending he was interested in the young unicorns,
he forced a smile in return, and moved forward to pat them with the others.
By the evening before the second task. Harry felt as though he
were trapped in a nightmare. He was fully aware that even if, by
some miracle, he managed to find a suitable spell, he'd have a real job
mastering it overnight. How could he have let this happen?
Why hadn't he got to work on the egg's clue sooner? Why had he ever
let his mind wander in class - what if a teacher had once mentioned how
to breathe underwater?
He sat with Hermione and Ron in the library as the sun set out-side,
tearing feverishly through page after page of spells, hidden from one another
by the massive piles of books on the desk in front of each of them.
Harry s heart gave a huge leap every time he saw the word "water" on a
page, but more often than not it was merely "Take two pints of water, half
a pound of shredded mandrake leaves, and a newt..."
"I don't reckon it can be done," said Rons voice flatly from the other
side of the table. "There's nothing. Nothing. Closest was that
thing to dry up puddles and ponds, that Drought Charm, but that was nowhere
near powerful enough to drain the lake."
"There must be something," Hermione muttered, moving a candle closer
to her. Her eyes were so tired she was poring over the tiny print
of Olde and Forgotten Bewitchments and Charmes with her nose about an inch
from the page. "They'd never have set a task that was undoable."
"They have," said Ron. "Harry, just go down to the lake tomor-row,
right, stick your head in, yell at the merpeople to give back whatever
they've nicked, and see if they chuck it out. Best you can do, mate."
"There's a way of doing it!" Hermione said crossly. "There
Just has to be!"
She seemed to be taking the library's lack of useful information on
the subject as a personal insult; it had never failed her before.
"I know what I should have done," said Harry, resting, face-down, on
Saucy Tricks for Tricky Sorts. "I should've learned to be an Animagus
like Sirius."
An Animagus was a wizard who could transform into an animal.
"Yeah, you could've turned into a goldfish any time you wanted!"
said Ron.
"Or a frog," yawned Harry. He was exhausted. "It takes
years to become an Animagus, and then you have to register yourself and
everything," said Hermione vaguely, now squinting down the index of Weird
Wizarding Dilemmas and Their Solutions. "Professor McGonagall told
us, remember... you've got to register yourself with the Improper Use of
Magic Office ...what animal you become, and your markings, so you can't
abuse it..."
"Hermione, I was joking," said Harry wearily. "I know I haven't got
a chance of turning into a frog by tomorrow morning...."
"Oh this is no use," Hermione said, snapping shut Weird Wiz-arding
Dilemmas. "Who on earth wants to make their nose hair grow into ringlets?"
"I wouldn't mind," said Fred Weasleys voice. "Be a talking point, wouldn't
it?"
Harry, Ron, and Hermione looked up. Fred and George had just
emerged from behind some bookshelves.
"What're you two doing here?" Ron asked.
"Looking for you," said George. "McGonagall wants you, Ron. And
you, Hermione."
"Why?" said Hermione, looking surprised.
"Dunno ... she was looking a bit grim, though," said Fred.
"We're supposed to take you down to her office," said George.
Ron and Hermione stared at Harry, who felt his stomach drop.
Was Professor McGonagall about to tell Ron and Hermione off? Perhaps
she'd noticed how much they were helping him, when he ought to be working
out how to do the task alone?
"We'll meet you back in the common room," Hermione told Harry as she
got up to go with Ron - both of them looked very anxious. "Bring
as many of these books as you can, okay?"
"Right," said Harry uneasily.
By eight o'clock. Madam Pince had extinguished all the lamps and came
to chivvy Harry out of the library. Staggering under the weight of
as many books as he could carry, Harry returned to the Gryffindor common
room, pulled a table into a corner, and con-tinued to search. There
was nothing in Madcap Magic for Wacky Warlocks. . . nothing in A Guide
to Medieval Sorcery . . . not one mention of underwater exploits in An
Anthology of Eighteenth-Century Charms, or in Dreadful Denizens of the
Deep, or Powers You Never Knew You Had and What to Do with Them Now Youve
Wised Up.
Crookshanks crawled into Harrys lap and curled up, purring deeply.
The common room emptied slowly around Harry. People kept wishing
him luck for the next morning in cheery, confident voices like Hagrid s,
all of them apparently convinced that he was about to pull off another
stunning performance like the one he had managed in the first task.
Harry couldn't answer them, he just nod-ded, feeling as though there were
a golfball stuck in his throat. By ten to midnight, he was alone in the
room with Crookshanks. He had searched all the remaining books, and
Ron and Hermione had not come back.
It's over, he told himself. You can't do it. You'll just
have to go down to the lake in the morning and tell the judges....
He imagined himself explaining that he couldn't do the task.
He pictured Bagman's look of round-eyed surprise, Karkaroffs satis-fied,
yellow-toothed smile. He could almost hear Fleur Delacour saying
"I knew it. . . 'e is too young, 'e is only a little boy." He saw
Malfoy flashing his POTTER STINKS badge at the front of the crowd, saw
Hagrid s crestfallen, disbelieving face. . . .
Forgetting that Crookshanks was on his lap. Harry stood up very
suddenly; Crookshanks hissed angrily as he landed on the floor, gave Harry
a disgusted look, and stalked away with his bottlebrush tail in the air,
but Harry was already hurrying up the spi-ral staircase to his dormitory.
... He would grab the Invisibility Cloak and go back to the library, he'd
stay there all night if he had to. ...
"Lumos," Harry whispered fifteen minutes later as he opened the library
door.
Wand tip alight, he crept along the bookshelves, pulling down more
books - books of hexes and charms, books on merpeople and water monsters,
books on famous witches and wizards, on magical inventions, on anything
at all that might include one pass-ing reference to underwater survival.
He carried them over to a table, then set to work, searching them by the
narrow beam of his wand, occasionally checking his watch. . . .
One in the morning. . . two in the morning . . . the only way he could
keep going was to tell himself, over and over again, next book. . . in
the next one. . . the next one. . .
The mermaid in the painting in the prefects' bathroom was laugh-ing.
Harry was bobbing like a cork in bubbly water next to her rock, while she
held his Firebolt over his head.
"Come and get it!" she giggled maliciously. "Come on, jump!"
"I can't," Harry panted, snatching at the Firebolt, and struggling
not to sink. "Give it to me!"
But she just poked him painfully in the side with the end of the broomstick,
laughing at him.
"That hurts - get off- ouch -"
"Harry Potter must wake up, sir!"
"Stop poking me -"
"Dobby must poke Harry Potter, sir, he must wake up!"
Harry opened his eyes. He was still in the library; the Invisibil-ity
Cloak had slipped off his head as he'd slept, and the side of his face
was stuck to the pages of Where There's a Wand, There's a Way. He
sat up, straightening his glasses, blinking in the bright daylight.
"Harry Potter needs to hurry!" squeaked Dobby. "The second
task starts in ten minutes, and Harry Potter -"
"Ten minutes?" Harry croaked. "Ten - ten minutes?"
He looked down at his watch. Dobby was right. It was twenty
past nine. A large, dead weight seemed to fall through Harry's chest
into his stomach.
"Hurry, Harry Potter!" squeaked Dobby, plucking at Harry's sleeve.
"You is supposed to be down by the lake with the other champions, sir!"
"It's too late, Dobby," Harry said hopelessly. "I'm not doing
the task, I don't know how-"
"Harry Potter will do the task!" squeaked the elf. "Dobby
knew Harry had not found the right book, so Dobby did it for him!"
"What?" said Harry. "But you don't know what the second task
is -"
"Dobby knows, sir! Harry Potter has to go into the lake and find
his Wheezy -"
"Find my what?"
"- and take his Wheezy back from the merpeople!"
"What's a Wheezy?"
"Your Wheezy, sir, your Wheezy-Wheezy who is giving Dobby his sweater!"
Dobby plucked at the shrunken maroon sweater he was now wearing over
his shorts.
"What?" Harry gasped. "They've got. . . they've got Ron?"
"The thing Harry Potter will miss most, sir!" squeaked Dobby.
"'But past an hour-'"
"- 'the prospect's black,'" Harry recited, staring, horror-struck,
at the elf. " 'Too late, it's gone, it won't come back.' Dobby -
what've I got to do?"
"You has to eat this, sir!" s queaked the elf, and he put his hand
in the pocket of his shorts and drew out a ball of what looked like slimy,
grayish-green rat tails. "Right before you go into the lake, sir
- gillyweed!"
"What's it do?" said Harry, staring at the gillyweed.
"It will make Harry Potter breathe underwater, sir!"
"Dobby," said Harry frantically, "listen - are you sure about this?"
He couldn't quite forget that the last time Dobby had tried to "help"
him, he had ended up with no bones in his right arm.
"Dobby is quite sure, sir!" said the elf earnestly. "Dobby
hears things, sir, he is a house-elf, he goes all over the castle as he
lights the fires and mops the floors. Dobby heard Professor McGonagall
and Professor Moody in the staffroom, talking about the next task. . .
. Dobby cannot let Harry Potter lose his Wheezy!"
Harrys doubts vanished. Jumping to his feet he pulled off the
Invisibility Cloak, stuffed it into his bag, grabbed the gillyweed, and
put it into his pocket, then tore out of the library with Dobby at his
heels.
"Dobby is supposed to be in the kitchens, sir!" Dobby squealed
as they burst into the corridor. "Dobby will be missed - good luck,
Harry Potter, sir, good luck!"
"See you later, Dobby!" Harry shouted, and he sprinted along
the corridor and down the stairs, three at a time.
The entrance hall contained a few last-minute stragglers, all leaving
the Great Hall after breakfast and heading through the double oak doors
to watch the second task. They stared as Harry flashed past, sending
Colin and Dennis Creevey flying as he leapt down the stone steps and out
onto the bright, chilly grounds.
As he pounded down the lawn he saw that the seats that had en-circled
the dragons' enclosure in November were now ranged along the opposite bank,
rising in stands that were packed to the bursting point and reflected in
the lake below. The excited babble of the crowd echoed strangely
across the water as Harry ran flat-out around the other side of the lake
toward the judges, who were sit-ting at another gold-draped table at the
water's edge. Cedric, Fleur, and Krum were beside the judges' table,
watching Harry sprint to-ward them.
"I'm . .. here ..." Harry panted, skidding to a halt in the mud and
accidentally splattering Fleurs robes.
"Where have you been?" said a bossy, disapproving voice. "The
task's about to start!"
Harry looked around. Percy Weasley was sitting at the judges' table
- Mr. Crouch had failed to turn up again.
"Now, now, Percy!" said Ludo Bagman, who was looking in-tensely
relieved to see Harry. "Let him catch his breath!"
Dumbledore smiled at Harry, but Karkaroff and Madame Maxime didn't
look at all pleased to see him. ... It was obvious from the looks on their
faces that they had thought he wasn't going to turn up.
Harry bent over, hands on his knees, gasping for breath; he had a stitch
in his side that felt as though he had a knife between his ribs, but there
was no time to get rid of it; Ludo Bagman was now moving among the champions,
spacing them along the bank at in-tervals of ten feet. Harry was
on the very end of the line, next to Krum, who was wearing swimming trunks
and was holding his wand ready.
"All right. Harry?" Bagman whispered as he moved Harry a few
feet farther away from Krum. "Know what you're going to do?"
"Yeah," Harry panted, massaging his ribs.
Bagman gave Harry's shoulder a quick squeeze and returned to the judges'
table; he pointed his wand at his throat as he had done at the World Cup,
said, "Sonorus!" and his voice boomed out across the dark water toward
the stands.
"Well, all our champions are ready for the second task, which will
start on my whistle. They have precisely an hour to recover what has been
taken from them. On the count of three, then. One . . . two . . .
three!"
The whistle echoed shrilly in the cold, still air; the stands erupted
with cheers and applause; without looking to see what the other champions
were doing, Harry pulled off his shoes and socks, pulled the handful of
gillyweed out of his pocket, stuffed it into his mouth, and waded out into
the lake.
It was so cold he felt the skin on his legs searing as though this
were fire, not icy water. His sodden robes weighed him down as he walked
in deeper; now the water was over his knees, and his rapidly numbing feet
were slipping over silt and flat, slimy stones. He was chewing the
gillyweed as hard and fast as he could; it felt unpleas-antly slimy and
rubbery, like octopus tentacles. Waist-deep in the freezing water
he stopped, swallowed, and waited for something to happen.
He could hear laughter in the crowd and knew he must look stu-pid,
walking into the lake without showing any sign of magical power.
The part of him that was still dry was covered in goose pim-ples; half
immersed in the icy water, a cruel breeze lifting his hair, Harry started
to shiver violently. He avoided looking at the stands; the laughter
was becoming louder, and there were catcalls and jeer-ing from the Slytherins.
...
Then, quite suddenly, Harry felt as though an invisible pillow had
been pressed over his mouth and nose. He tried to draw breath, but it made
his head spin; his lungs were empty, and he suddenly felt a piercing pain
on either side of his neck -
Harry clapped his hands around his throat and felt two large slits
just below his ears, flapping in the cold air. . . . He had gills.
With-out pausing to think, he did the only thing that made sense - he flung
himself forward into the water.
The first gulp of icy lake water felt like the breath of life.
His head had stopped spinning; he took another great gulp of water and
felt it pass smoothly through his gills, sending oxygen back to his brain.
He stretched out his hands in front of him and stared at them. They
looked green and ghostly under the water, and they had become webbed.
He twisted around and looked at his bare feet - they had become elongated
and the toes were webbed too:
It looked as though he had sprouted flippers.
The water didn't feel icy anymore either ... on the contrary, he felt
pleasantly cool and very light. . . . Harry struck out once more, marveling
at how far and fast his flipper-like feet propelled him through the vater,
and noticing how clearly he could see, and how he no longer seemed to need
to blink. He had soon swum so far into the lake that he could no
longer see the bottom. He flipped over and dived into its depths.
Silence pressed upon his ears as he soared over a strange, dark, foggy
landscape. He could only see ten feet around him, so that as he sped
throuugh the water new scenes seemed to loom suddenly out of the incoming
darkness: forests of rippling, tangled black weed, wide plains of
mud littered with dull, glimmering stones. He swam deeper and deeper,
out toward the middle of the lake, his eyes wide, staring through the eerily
gray-lit water around him to the shadow beyond, where the water became
opaque.
Small fish flickered past him like silver darts. Once or twice
he thought he saw something larger moving ahead of him, but when he got
nearer, he discovered it to be nothing but a large, blackened log, or a
dense clump of weed. There was no sign of any of the other champions,
merpeople, Ron - nor, thankfully, the giant squid.
Light green weed stretched ahead of him as far as he could see, two
feet deep, like a meadow of very overgrown grass. Harry was staring
unblinkingly ahead of him, trying to discern shapes through the gloom .
. . and then, without warning, something grabbed hold of his ankle.
Harry twisted his body around and saw a grindylow, a small, horned
water demon, poking out of the weed, its long fingers clutched tightly
around Harry's leg, its pointed fangs bared - Harry stuck his webbed hand
quickly inside his robes and fumbled for his wand. By the time he
had grasped it, two more grindylows had risen out of the weed, had seized
handfuls of Harry's robes, and were attempting to drag him down.
"Relashio!" Harry shouted, except that no sound came out. ...
A large bubble issued from his mouth, and his wand, instead of send-ing
sparks at the grindylows, pelted them with what seemed to be a jet of boiling
water, for where it struck them, angry red patches appeared on their green
skin. Harry pulled his ankle out of the grindylows grip and swam,
as fast as he could, occasionally sending more jets of hot water over his
shoulder at random; every now and then he felt one of the grindylows snatch
at his foot again, and he kicked out, hard; finally, he felt his foot connect
with a horned skull, and looking back, saw the dazed grindylow floating
away, cross-eyed, while its fellows shook their fists at Harry and sank
back into the weed.
Harry slowed down a little, slipped his wand back inside his robes,
and looked around, listening again. He turned full circle in the
water, the silence pressing harder than ever against his eardrums.
He knew he must be even deeper in the lake now, but nothing was moving
but the rippling weed.
"How are you getting on?"
Harry thought he was having a heart attack. He whipped around
and saw Moaning Myrtle floating hazily in front of him, gazing at him through
her thick, pearly glasses.
"Myrtle!" Harry tried to shout - but once again, nothing came out of
his mouth but a very large bubble. Moaning Myrtle actually giggled.
"You want to try over there!" she said, pointing. "I won't come
with you. ... I don't like them much, they always chase me when I get too
close. ..."
Harry gave her the thumbs-up to show his thanks and set off once more,
careful to swim a bit higher over the weed to avoid any more grindylows
that might be lurking there.
He swam on for what felt like at least twenty minutes. He was
passing over vast expanses of black mud now, which swirled murk-ily as
he disturbed the water. Then, at long last, he heard a snatch of
haunting mersong.
"An hour long you'll have to look,
And to recover what we took..."
Harry swam faster and soon saw a large rock emerge out of the muddy water ahead. It had paintings of merpeople on it; they were carrying spears and chasing what looked like the giant squid. Harry swam on past the rock, following the mersong.
". . . your time's half gone, so tarry not
Lest what you seek stays here to rot. ..."
A cluster of crude stone dwellings stained with algae loomed suddenly
out of the gloom on all sides. Here and there at the dark windows,
Harry saw faces . . . faces that bore no resemblance at all to the painting
of the mermaid in the prefects' bathroom. . . .
The merpeople had grayish skin and long, wild, dark green hair.
Their eyes were yellow, as were their broken teeth, and they wore thick
ropes of pebbles around their necks. They leered at Harry as he swam past;
one or two of them emerged from their caves to watch him better, their
powerful, silver fish tails beating the water, spears clutched in their
hands.
Harry sped on, staring around, and soon the dwellings became more numerous;
there were gardens of weed around some of them, and he even saw a pet grindylow
tied to a stake outside one door. Merpeople were emerging on all
sides now, watching him eagerly, pointing at his webbed hands and gills,
talking behind their hands to one another. Harry sped around a corner
and a very strange sight met his eyes.
A whole crowd of merpeople was floating in front of the houses that
lined what looked like a mer-version of a village square. A choir
of merpeople was singing in the middle, calling the cham-pions toward them,
and behind them rose a crude sort of statue; a gigantic merperson hewn
from a boulder. Four people were bound tightly to the tail of the
stone merperson.
Ron was tied between Hermione and Cho Chang. There was also a
girl who looked no older than eight, whose clouds of silvery hair made
Harry feel sure that she was Fleur Delacour's sister. All four of
them appeared to be in a very deep sleep. Their heads were lolling
onto their shoulders, and fine streams of bubbles kept issu-ing from their
mouths.
Harry sped toward the hostages, half expecting the merpeople to lower
their spears and charge at him, but they did nothing. The ropes of
weed tying the hostages to the statue were thick, slimy, and very strong.
For a fleeting second he thought of the knife Sirius had bought him for
Christmas - locked in his trunk in the castle a quarter of a mile away,
no use to him whatsoever.
He looked around. Many of the merpeople surrounding them were
carrying spears. He swam swiftly toward a seven-foot-tall merman
with a long green beard and a choker of shark fangs and tried to mime a
request to borrow the spear. The merman laughed and shook his head.
"We do not help," he said in a harsh, croaky voice.
"Come ON!" Harry said fiercely (but only bubbles issued from
his mouth), and he tried to pull the spear away from the merman, but the
merman yanked it back, still shaking his head and laughing.
Harry swirled around, staring about. Something sharp . . . any-thing
. . .
There were rocks littering the lake bottom. He dived and snatched
up a particularly jagged one and returned to the statue. He began
to hack at the ropes binding Ron, and after several min-utes' hard work,
they broke apart. Ron floated, unconscious, a few inches above the
lake bottom, drifting a little in the ebb of the water.
Harry looked around. There was no sign of any of the other champions.
What were they playing at? Why didn't they hurry up? He turned
back to Hermione, raised the jagged rock, and began to hack at her bindings
too -
At once, several pairs of strong gray hands seized him. Half a dozen
mermen were pulling him away from Hermione, shaking their green-haired
heads, and laughing.
"You take your own hostage," one of them said to him. "Leave
the others ..."
"No way!" said Harry furiously - but only two large bubbles came out.
Your task is to retrieve your own friend . . . leave the others ..."
She's my friend too!" Harry yelled, gesturing toward Hermione, an enormous
silver bubble emerging soundlessly from his lips. "And I don't want
them to die either!"
Cho's head was on Hermiones shoulder; the small silver-haired girl
was ghostly green and pale. Harry struggled to fight off the mermen,
but they laughed harder than ever, holding him back. Harry looked wildly
around. Where were the other champions? Would he have time
to take Ron to the surface and come back down for Hermione and the others?
Would he be able to find them again? He looked down at his watch
to see how much time was left - it had stopped working.
But then the merpeople around him pointed excitedly over his head.
Harry looked up and saw Cedric swimming toward them. There was an
enormous bubble around his head, which made his features look oddly wide
and stretched.
"Got lost!" he mouthed, looking panic-stricken. "Fleur and Krum're
coming now!"
Feeling enormously relieved, Harry watched Cedric pull a knife out
of his pocket and cut Cho free. He pulled her upward and out of sight.
Harry looked around, waiting. Where were Fleur and Krum?
Time was getting short, and according to the song, the hostages would be
lost after an hour. . . .
The merpeople started screeching animatedly. Those holding Harry
loosened their grip, staring behind them. Harry turned and saw something
monstrous cutting through the water toward them: a human body in
swimming trunks with the head of a shark. ... It was Krum. He appeared
to have transfigured himself- but badly.
The shark-man swam straight to Hermione and began snapping and biting
at her ropes; the trouble was that Krum's new teeth were positioned very
awkwardly for biting anything smaller than a dol-phin, and Harry was quite
sure that if Krum wasn't careful, he was going to rip Hermione in half.
Darting forward. Harry hit Krum hard on the shoulder and held up the jagged
stone. Krum seized it and began to cut Hermione free. Within
seconds, he had done it; he grabbed Hermione around the waist, and without
a backward glance, began to rise rapidly with her toward the surface.
Now what? Harry thought desperately. If he could be sure that
Fleur was coming. . . . But still no sign. There was nothing to be
done except. . .
He snatched up the stone, which Krum had dropped, but the mermen now
closed in around Ron and the little girl, shaking their heads at him. Harry
pulled out his wand.
"Get out of the way!"
Only bubbles flew out of his mouth, but he had the distinct impression
that the mermen had understood him, because they suddenly stopped laughing.
Their yellowish eyes were fixed upon Harry's wand, and they looked scared.
There might be a lot more of them than there were of him, but Harry could
tell, by the looks on their faces, that they knew no more magic than the
giant squid did.
"You've got until three!" Harry shouted; a great stream of bub-bles
burst from him, but he held up three fingers to make sure they got the
message. "One . . ." (he put down a finger) "two . . ." (he put down
a second one) -
They scattered. Harry darted forward and began to hack at the ropes
binding the small girl to the statue, and at last she was free. He
seized the little girl around the waist, grabbed the neck of Rons robes,
and kicked off from the bottom.
It was very slow work. He could no longer use his webbed hands
to propel himself forward; he worked his flippers furiously, but Ron and
Fleur's sister were like potato-filled sacks dragging him back down. ...
He fixed his eyes skyward, though he knew he must still be very deep, the
water above him was so dark, . . .
Merpeople were rising with him. He could see them swirling around
him with ease, watching him struggle through the wa-ter. .. . Would they
pull him back down to the depths when the time was up? Did they perhaps
eat humans? Harry's legs were seiz-ing up with the effort to keep
swimming; his shoulders were aching horribly with the effort of dragging
Ron and the girl...
He was drawing breath with extreme difficulty. He could feel
pain on the sides of his neck again ... he was becoming very aware of how
wet the water was in his mouth .. . yet the darkness was definitely thinning
now... he could see daylight above him.. ..
He kicked hard with his flippers and discovered that they were nothing
more than feet...water was flooding through his mouth into his lungs ...
he was starting to feel dizzy, but he knew light and air were only ten
feet above him ... he had to get there ... he had to ...
Harry kicked his legs so hard and fast it felt as though his mus-cles
were screaming in protest; his very brain felt waterlogged, he couldn't
breathe, he needed oxygen, he had to keep going, he could not stop -
And then he felt his head break the surface of the lake; wonder-ful,
cold, clear air was making his wet face sting; he gulped it down, feeling
as though he had never breathed properly before, and, pant-ing, pulled
Ron and the little girl up with him. All around him, wild, green-haired
heads were emerging out of the water with him, but they were smiling at
him.
The crowd in the stands was making a great deal of noise; shout-ing
and screaming, they all seemed to be on their feet; Harry had the impression
they thought that Ron and the little girl might be dead, but they were
wrong . . . both of them had opened their eyes; the girl looked scared
and confused, but Ron merely expelled a great spout of water, blinked in
the bright light, turned to Harry, and said, "Wet, this, isn't it?"
Then he spotted Fleur's sister. "What did you bring her for?"
"Fleur didn't turn up, I couldn't leave her," Harry panted.
"Harry, you prat," said Ron, "you didn't take that song thing se-riously,
did you? Dumbledore wouldn't have let any of us drown!"
"The song said -"
"It was only to make sure you got back inside the time limit!"
said Ron. "I hope you didn't waste time down there acting the hero!"
Harry felt both stupid and annoyed. It was all very well for
Ron; he'd been asleep, he hadn't felt how eerie it was down in the lake,
surrounded by spear-carrying merpeople who'd looked more than capable of
murder.
"C'mon," Harry said shortly, "help me with her, I don't think she can
swim very well."
They pulled Fleur's sister through the water, back toward the bank
where the judges stood watching, twenty merpeople accompanying them like
a guard of honor, singing their horrible screechy songs.
Harry could see Madam Pomfrey fussing over Hermione, Krum, Cedric,
and Cho, all of whom were wrapped in thick blankets.
Dumbledore and Ludo Bagman stood beaming at Harry and Ron from the
bank as they swam nearer, but Percy, who looked very white and somehow
much younger than usual, came splashing out to meet them. Meanwhile
Madame Maxime was trying to restrain Fleur Delacour, who was quite hysterical,
fighting tooth and nail to return to the water.
"Gabrielle! Gabrielle! Is she alive? Is she 'urt?"
"She's fine!" Harry tried to tell her, but he was so exhausted he could
hardly talk, let alone shout.
Percy seized Ron and was dragging him back to the bank ("Gerroff, Percy,
I'm all right!"); Dumbledore and Bagman were pulling Harry upright; Fleur
had broken free of Madame Maxime and was hugging her sister.
"It was ze grindylows . . . zey attacked me ... oh Gabrielle, I thought...
I thought.. ."
"Come here, you," said Madam Pomfrey. She seized Harry and pulled
him over to Hermione and the others, wrapped him so tightly in a blanket
that he felt as though he were in a straitjacket, and forced a measure
of very hot potion down his throat. Steam gushed out of his ears.
"Harry, well done!" Hermione cried. "You did it, you found out
how all by yourself!"
"Well -" said Harry. He would have told her about Dobby, but he had
just noticed Karkaroff watching him. He was the only judge who had
not left the table; the only judge not showing signs of pleasure and relief
that Harry, Ron, and Fleur's sister had got back safely. "Yeah, that's
right," said Harry, raising his voice slightly so that Karkaroff could
hear him.
"You haff a water beetle in your hair, Herm-own-ninny," said Krum.
Harry had the impression that Krum was drawing her at-tention back onto
himself; perhaps to remind her that he had just rescued her from the lake,
but Hermione brushed away the beetle impatiently and said, "You're well
outside the time limit, though, Harry. . . . Did it take you ages to find
us?"
"No ... I found you okay...."
Harry's feeling of stupidity was growing. Now he was out of the water,
it seemed perfectly clear that Dumbledores safety precau-tions wouldn't
have permitted the death of a hostage just because their champion hadn't
turned up. Why hadn't he just grabbed Ron and gone? He would
have been first back.... Cedric and Krum hadn't wasted time worrying about
anyone else; they hadn't taken the mersong seriously. ...
Dumbledore was crouching at the water's edge, deep in conver-sation
with what seemed to be the chief merperson, a particularly wild and ferocious-looking
female. He was making the same sort of screechy noises that the merpeople
made when they were above wa-ter; clearly, Dumbledore could speak Mermish.
Finally he straight-ened up, turned to his fellow judges, and said, "A
conference before we give the marks, I think."
The judges went into a huddle. Madam Pomfrey had gone to rescue
Ron from Percy's clutches; she led him over to Harry and the others, gave
him a blanket and some Pepperup Potion, then went to fetch Fleur and her
sister. Fleur had many cuts on her face and arms and her robes were
torn, but she didn't seem to care, nor would she allow Madam Pomfrey to
clean them.
"Look after Gabrielle," she told her, and then she turned to Harry.
"You saved 'er," she said breathlessly. "Even though she was not
your 'ostage."
"Yeah," said Harry, who was now heartily wishing he'd left all three
girls tied to the statue.
Fleur bent down, kissed Harry twice on each cheek (he felt his face
burn and wouldn't have been surprised if steam was coming out of his ears
again), then said to Ron, "And you too-you 'elped -"
"Yeah," said Ron, looking extremely hopeful, "yeah, a bit -"
Fleur swooped down on him too and kissed him. Hermione looked simply
furious, but just then, Ludo Bagman's magically magnified voice boomed
out beside them, making them all jump, and causing the crowd in the stands
to go very quiet.
"Ladies and gentlemen, we have reached our decision. Merchieftainess
Murcus has told us exactly what happened at the bottom of the lake, and
we have therefore decided to award marks out of fifty for each of the champions,
as follows. . . .
"Fleur Delacour, though she demonstrated excellent use of the Bubble-Head
Charm, was attacked by grindylows as she ap-proached her goal, and failed
to retrieve her hostage. We award her twenty-five points."
Applause from the stands.
"I deserved zero," said Fleur throatily, shaking her magnificent head.
"Cedric Diggory, who also used the Bubble-Head Charm, was first to
return with his hostage, though he returned one minute outside the time
limit of an hour." Enormous cheers from the Huf-flepuffs in the crowd;
Harry saw Cho give Cedric a glowing look. "We therefore award him
forty-seven points."
Harrys heart sank. If Cedric had been outside the time limit, he most
certainly had been.
"Viktor Krum used an incomplete form of Transfiguration, which was
nevertheless effective, and was second to return with his hostage.
We award him forty points."
Karkaroff clapped particularly hard, looking very superior.
"Harry Potter used gillyweed to great effect," Bagman contin-ued.
"He returned last, and well outside the time limit of an hour. However,
the Merchieftainess informs us that Mr. Potter was first to reach the hostages,
and that the delay in his return was due to his determination to return
all hostages to safety, not merely his own."
Ron and Hermione both gave Harry half-exasperated, half-commiserating
looks.
"Most of the judges," and here, Bagman gave Karkaroff a very nasty
look, "feel that this shows moral fiber and merits full marks. However
. . . Mr. Potter's score is forty-five points."
Harry's stomach leapt - he was now tying for first place with Cedric.
Ron and Hermione, caught by surprise, stared at Harry, then laughed and
started applauding hard with the rest of the crowd.
"There you go. Harry!" Ron shouted over the noise. "You weren't
being thick after all - you were showing moral fiber!"
Fleur was clapping very hard too, but Krum didn't look happy at all.
He attempted to engage Hermione in conversation again, but she was too
busy cheering Harry to listen.
"The third and final task will take place at dusk on the twenty-fourth
of June," continued Bagman. "The champions will be noti-fied of what is
coming precisely one month beforehand. Thank you all for your support of
the champions."
It was over. Harry thought dazedly, as Madam Pomfrey began herding
the champions and hostages back to the castle to get into dry clothes ...
it was over, he had got through ... he didn't have to worry about anything
now until June the twenty-fourth. . ..
Next time he was in Hogsmeade, Harry decided as he walked back up the
stone steps into the castle, he was going to buy Dobby a pair of socks
for every day of the year.
CHAPTER TWENTY-SEVEN
PADFOOT RETURNS
One of the best things about the aftermath of the second task was that
everybody was very keen to hear details of what had happened down in the
lake, which meant that Ron was getting to share Harry's limelight for once.
Harry noticed that Ron's ver-sion of events changed subtly with every retelling.
At first, he gave what seemed to be the truth; it tallied with Hermione's
story, any-way - Dumbledore had put all the hostages into a bewitched sleep
in Professor McGonagall's office, first assuring them that they would be
quite safe, and would awake when they were back above the water.
One week later, however, Ron was telling a thrilling tale of kidnap in
which he struggled single-handedly against fifty heav-ily armed merpeople
who had to beat him into submission before tying him up.
"But I had my wand hidden up my sleeve," he assured Padma Patil, who
seemed to be a lot keener on Ron now that he was get-ting so much attention
and was making a point of talking to him every time they passed in the
corridors. "I could've taken those mer-idiots any time I wanted."
"What were you going to do, snore at them?" said Hermione waspishly.
People had been teasing her so much about being the thing that Viktor Krum
would most miss that she was in a rather tetchy mood.
Ron's ears went red, and thereafter, he reverted to the bewitched sleep
version of events.
As they entered March the weather became drier, but cruel winds skinned
their hands and faces every time they went out onto the grounds.
There were delays in the post because the owls kept being blown off course.
The brown owl that Harry had sent to Sir-ius with the dates of the Hogsmeade
weekend turned up at break-fast on Friday morning with half its feathers
sticking up the wrong way; Harry had no sooner torn off Sirius's reply
than it took flight, clearly afraid it was going to be sent outside again.
Sirius's letter was almost as short as the previous one.
Be at stile at end of road out of Hogsmeade (past Dervish and
Banges) at two o'clock on Saturday afternoon. Bring as much
food as you can.
"He hasn't come back to Hogsmeade?" said Ron incredulously.
"It looks like it, doesn't it?" said Hermione.
"I can't believe him," said Harry tensely, "if he's caught. . ."
"Made it so far, though, hasn't he?" said Ron. "And it's not like the
place is swarming with dementors anymore."
Harry folded up the letter, thinking. If he was honest with him-self,
he really wanted to see Sirius again. He therefore approached the final
lesson of the afternoon - double Potions - feeling con-siderably more cheerful
than he usually did when descending the steps to the dungeons.
Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle were standing in a huddle outside the classroom
door with Pansy Parkinson's gang of Slytherin girls. All of them
were looking at something Harry couldn't see and snig-gering heartily.
Pansys pug-like face peered excitedly around Goyle's broad back as Harry,
Ron, and Hermione approached.
"There they are, there they are!" she giggled, and the knot of
Slytherins broke apart. Harry saw that Pansy had a magazine in her hands
- Witch Weekly. The moving picture on the front showed a curly-haired
witch who was smiling toothily and pointing at a large sponge cake with
her wand.
"You might find something to interest you in there, Granger!" Pansy
said loudly, and she threw the magazine at Hermione, who caught it, looking
startled. At that moment, the dungeon door opened, and Snape beckoned
them all inside.
Hermione, Harry, and Ron headed for a table at the back of the dungeon
as usual. Once Snape had turned his back on them to write up the ingredients
of todays potion on the blackboard, Hermione hastily rifled through the
magazine under the desk. At last, in the center pages, Hermione found
what they were looking for. Harry and Ron leaned in closer.
A color photograph of Harry headed a short piece entitled:
Harry Potter's Secret Heartache
A boy like no other, perhaps - yet a boy suffering all the usual pangs
of adolescence, writes Rita Skeeter. Deprived of love since the tragic
demise
of his parents, fourteen-year-old Harry Potter thought he had found
solace in his steady girlfriend at Hogwarts, Muggle-born Hermione Granger.
Little did he know that he would shortly be suffer-ing yet another emotional
blow in a life already lit-tered with personal loss.
Miss Granger, a plain but ambitious girl, seems to have a taste for
famous wizards that Harry alone cannot satisfy. Since the arrival
at Hogwarts of Vik-tor Krum, Bulgarian Seeker and hero of the last World
Quidditch Cup, Miss Granger has been toy-ing with both boys' affections.
Krum, who is openly smitten with the devious Miss Granger, has already
invited her to visit him in Bulgaria over the summer holidays, and insists
that he has "never felt this way about any other girl."
However, it might not be Miss Granger's doubt-ful natural charms that
have captured these unfor-tunate boys' interest.
"She's really ugly," says Pansy Parkinson, a pretty and vivacious fourth-year
student, "but she'd be well up to making a Love Potion, she's quite brainy.
I think that's how she's doing it."
Love Potions are, of course, banned at Hog-warts, and no doubt Albus
Dumbledore will want to investigate these claims. In the meantime,
Harry Potters well-wishers must hope that, next time, he bestows his heart
on a worthier candidate.
"I told you!" Ron hissed at Hermione as she stared down at the
article. "I told you not to annoy Rita Skeeter! She's made
you out to be some sort of- of scarlet woman!"
Hermione stopped looking astonished and snorted with laughter. "Scarlet
woman?" she repeated, shaking with suppressed giggles as she looked around
at Ron.
"It's what my mum calls them," Ron muttered, his ears going red.
"If that's the best Rita can do, she's losing her touch," said Her-mione,
still giggling, as she threw Witch Weekly onto the empty chair beside her.
"What a pile of old rubbish."
She looked over at the Slytherins, who were all watching her and Harry
closely across the room to see if they had been upset by the article.
Hermione gave them a sarcastic smile and a wave, and she, Harry, and Ron
started unpacking the ingredients they would need for their Wit-Sharpening
Potion.
"There's something funny, though," said Hermione ten minutes later,
holding her pestle suspended over a bowl of scarab beetles. "How
could Rita Skeeter have known . . . ?"
"Known what?" said Ron quickly. "You haven't been mixing up Love Potions,
have you?"
"Don't be stupid," Hermione snapped, starting to pound up her beetles
again. "No, it's just. . . how did she know Viktor asked me to visit him
over the summer?"
Hermione blushed scarlet as she said this and determinedly avoided
Ron's eyes.
"What?" said Ron, dropping his pestle with a loud clunk.
"He asked me right after he'd pulled me out of the lake,"
Hermione muttered. "After he'd got rid of his shark's head.
Madam Pomfrey gave us both blankets and then he sort of pulled me away
from the judges so they wouldn't hear, and he said, if I wasn't doing anything
over the summer, would I like to -"
"And what did you say?" said Ron, who had picked up his pestle
and was grinding it on the desk, a good six inches from his bowl, because
he was looking at Hermione.
"And he did say he'd never felt the same way about anyone else," Hermione
went on, going so red now that Harry could almost feel the heat coming
from her, "but how could Rita Skeeter have heard him? She wasn't
there ... or was she? Maybe she has got an Invisi-bility Cloak; maybe
she sneaked onto the grounds to watch the sec-ond task. ..."
"And what did you say?" Ron repeated, pounding his pestle down so hard
that it dented the desk.
"Well, I was too busy seeing whether you and Harry were okay to-"
"Fascinating though your social life undoubtedly is. Miss Granger,"
said an icy voice right behind them, and all three of them jumped, "I must
ask you not to discuss it in my class. Ten points from Gryffindor."
Snape had glided over to their desk while they were talking. The whole
class was now looking around at them; Malfoy took the op-portunity to flash
POTTER STINKS across the dungeon at Harry.
"Ah . . . reading magazines under the table as well?" Snape added,
snatching up the copy of Witch Weekly. "A further ten points from
Gryffindor ... oh but of course ..." Snapes black eyes glit-tered as they
fell on Rita Skeeter's article. "Potter has to keep up with his press
cuttings. . . ."
The dungeon rang with the Slytherins' laughter, and an un-pleasant
smile curled Snape's thin mouth. To Harry's fury, he began to read
the article aloud.
"'Harry Potter's Secret Heartache. . . dear, dear. Potter, what's
ail-ing you now? 'A boy like no other, perhaps. . .'"
Harry could feel his face burning. Snape was pausing at the end
of every sentence to allow the Slytherins a hearty laugh. The article
sounded ten times worse when read by Snape. Even Hermione was blushing
scarlet now.
"'. . . Harry Potter's well-wishers must hope that, next time, he be-stows
his heart upon a worthier candidate.' How very touching," sneered
Snape, rolling up the magazine to continued gales of laughter from the
Slytherins. "Well, I think I had better separate the three of you,
so you can keep your minds on your potions rather than on your tangled
love lives. Weasley, you stay here. Miss Granger, over there, beside Miss
Parkinson. Potter - that table in front of my desk. Move. Now."
Furious, Harry threw his ingredients and his bag into his caul-dron
and dragged it up to the front of the dungeon to the empty table.
Snape followed, sat down at his desk and watched Harry un-load his cauldron.
Determined not to look at Snape, Harry re-sumed the mashing of his scarab
beetles, imagining each one to have Snape's face.
"All this press attention seems to have inflated your already over-large
head. Potter," said Snape quietly, once the rest of the class had settled
down again.
Harry didn't answer. He knew Snape was trying to provoke him; he had
done this before. No doubt he was hoping for an excuse to take a
round fifty points from Gryffindor before the end of the class.
"You might be laboring under the delusion that the entire wiz-arding
world is impressed with you," Snape went on, so quietly that no one else
could hear him (Harry continued to pound his scarab beetles, even though
he had already reduced them to a very fine powder), "but I don't care how
many times your picture ap-pears in the papers. To me. Potter, you
are nothing but a nasty lit-tle boy who considers rules to be beneath him."
Harry tipped the powdered beetles into his cauldron and started cutting
up his ginger roots. His hands were shaking slightly out of anger,
but he kept his eyes down, as though he couldn't hear what Snape was saying
to him.
"So I give you fair warning, Potter," Snape continued in a sorter and
more dangerous voice, "pint-sized celebrity or not - if I catch you breaking
into my office one more time -"
"I haven't been anywhere near your office!" said Harry angrily,
forgetting his feigned deafness.
"Don't lie to me," Snape hissed, his fathomless black eyes boring into
Harrys. "Boomslang skin. Gillyweed. Both come from my private
stores, and I know who stole them."
Harry stared back at Snape, determined not to blink or to look guilty.
In truth, he hadn't stolen either of these things from Snape. Hermione
had taken the boomslang skin back in their second year - they had needed
it for the Polyjuice Potion - and while Snape had suspected Harry at the
time, he had never been able to prove it. Dobby, of course, had stolen
the gillyweed.
"I don't know what you're talking about," Harry lied coldly.
"You were out of bed on the night my office was broken into!"
Snape hissed. "I know it. Potter! Now, Mad-Eye Moody might
have joined your fan club, but I will not tolerate your behavior!
One more nighttime stroll into my office, Potter, and you will pay!"
"Right," said Harry coolly, turning back to his ginger roots.
"I'll bear that in mind if I ever get the urge to go in there."
Snape's eyes flashed. He plunged a hand into the inside of his black
robes. For one wild moment. Harry thought Snape was about to pull out his
wand and curse him - then he saw that Snape had drawn out a small crystal
bottle of a completely clear po-tion. Harry stared at it.
"Do you know what this is. Potter?" Snape said, his eyes glitter-ing
dangerously again.
"No," said Harry, with complete honesty this time.
"It is Veritaserum - a Truth Potion so powerful that three drops would
have you spilling your innermost secrets for this entire class to hear,"
said Snape viciously. "Now, the use of this potion is con-trolled
by very strict Ministry guidelines. But unless you watch your step,
you might just find that my hand slips" - he shook the crystal bottle slightly
- "right over your evening pumpkin juice.&nbbsp; And then. Potter . . .
then we'll find out whether you've been in my office or not."
Harry said nothing. He turned back to his ginger roots once more,
picked up his knife, and started slicing them again. He didn't like
the sound of that Truth Potion at all, nor would he put it past Snape to
slip him some. He repressed a shudder at the thought of what might
come spilling out of his mouth if Snape did it... quite apart from landing
a whole lot of people in trouble - Hermione and Dobby for a start - there
were all the other things he was concealing . . . like the fact that he
was in contact with Sirius . . . and - his insides squirmed at the thought
- how he felt about Cho. ... He tipped his gginger roots into the cauldron
too, and wondered whether he ought to take a leaf out of Moody s book and
start drinking only from a private hip flask.
There was a knock on the dungeon door.
"Enter," said Snape in his usual voice.
The class looked around as the door opened. Professor Karkaroff came
in. Everyone watched him as he walked up toward Snape's desk. He
was twisting his finger around his goatee and looking agitated.
"We need to talk," said Karkaroff abruptly when he had reached Snape.
He seemed so determined that nobody should hear what he was saying that
he was barely opening his lips; it was as though he were a rather poor
ventriloquist. Harry kept his eyes on his ginger roots, listening
hard.
"I'll talk to you after my lesson, Karkaroff," Snape muttered, but
Karkaroff interrupted him.
"I want to talk now, while you can't slip off, Severus. You've
been avoiding me."
"After the lesson," Snape snapped.
Under the pretext of holding up a measuring cup to see if he'd poured
out enough armadillo bile, Harry sneaked a sidelong glance at the pair
of them. Karkaroff looked extremely worried, and Snape looked angry.
Karkaroff hovered behind Snape's desk for the rest of the double period.
He seemed intent on preventing Snape from slipping away at the end of class.
Keen to hear what Karkaroff wanted to say, Harry deliberately knocked over
his bottle of armadillo bile with two minutes to go to the bell, which
gave him an excuse to duck down behind his cauldron and mop up while the
rest of the class moved noisily toward the door.
"What's so urgent?" he heard Snape hiss at Karkaroff.
"This," said Karkaroff, and Harry, peering around the edge of his cauldron,
saw Karkaroff pull up the left-hand sleeve of his robe and show Snape something
on his inner forearm.
"Well?" said Karkaroff, still making every effort not to move his lips.
"Do you see? It's never been this clear, never since - "
"Put it away!" snarled Snape, his black eyes sweeping the class-room.
"But you must have noticed -" Karkaroff began in an agitated voice.
"We can talk later, Karkaroff!" spat Snape. "Potter!
What are you doing?"
"Clearing up my armadillo bile, Professor," said Harry inno-cently,
straightening up and showing Snape the sodden rag he was holding.
Karkaroff turned on his heel and strode out of the dungeon. He
looked both worried and angry. Not wanting to remain alone with an
exceptionally angry Snape, Harry threw his books and ingredi-ents back
into his bag and left at top speed to tell Ron and Hermione what he had
just witnessed.
They left the castle at noon the next day to find a weak silver sun
shining down upon the grounds. The weather was milder than it had
been all year, and by the time they arrived in Hogsmeade, all three of
them had taken off their cloaks and thrown them over their shoulders. The
food Sirius had told them to bring was in Harry's bag; they had sneaked
a dozen chicken legs, a loaf of bread, and a flask of pumpkin juice from
the lunch table.
They went into Gladrags Wizardwear to buy a present for Dobby, where
they had fun selecting the most lurid socks they could find, including
a pair patterned with flashing gold and silver stars, and another that
screamed loudly when they became too smelly. Then, at half past one, they
made their way up the High Street, past Dervish and Banges, and out toward
the edge of the village.
Harry had never been in this direction before. The winding lane
was leading them out into the wild countryside around Hogsmeade.
The cottages were fewer here, and their gardens larger; they were walking
toward the foot of the mountain in whose shadow Hogsmeade lay. Then they
turned a corner and saw a stile at the end of the lane. Waiting for
them, its front paws on the topmost bar, was a very large, shaggy black
dog, which was carrying some newspapers in its mouth and looking very familiar.
. . .
"Hello, Sirius," said Harry when they had reached him.
The black dog sniffed Harry's bag eagerly, wagged its tail once, then
turned and began to trot away from them across the scrubby patch of ground
that rose to meet the rocky foot of the mountain. Harry, Ron, and
Hermione climbed over the stile and followed.
Sirius led them to the very foot of the mountain, where the ground
was covered with boulders and rocks. It was easy for him, with his
four paws, but Harry, Ron, and Hermione were soon out of breath.
They followed Sirius higher, up onto the mountain itself. For nearly
half an hour they climbed a steep, winding, and stony path, following Sirius's
wagging tail, sweating in the sun, the shoul-der straps of Harry's bag
cutting into his shoulders.
Then, at last, Sirius slipped out of sight, and when they reached the
place where he had vanished, they saw a narrow fissure in the rock.
They squeezed into it and found themselves in a cool, dimly lit cave.
Tethered at the end of it, one end of his rope around a large rock, was
Buckbeak the hippogriff. Half gray horse, half giant ea-gle, Buckbeak's
fierce orange eye flashed at the sight of them. All three of them
bowed low to him, and after regarding them imperi-ously for a moment, Buckbeak
bent his scaly front knees and al-lowed Hermione to rush forward and stroke
his feathery neck. Harry, however, was looking at the black dog,
which had just turned into his godfather.
Sirius was wearing ragged gray robes; the same ones he had been wearing
when he had left Azkaban. His black hair was longer than it had been
when he had appeared in the fire, and it was untidy and matted once more.
He looked very thin.
"Chicken!" he said hoarsely after removing the old Daily Prophets from
his mouth and throwing them down onto the cave floor.
Harry pulled open his bag and handed over the bundle of chicken legs
and bread.
"Thanks," said Sirius, opening it, grabbing a drumstick, sitting down
on the cave floor, and tearing off a large chunk with his teeth. "I've
been living off rats mostly. Can't steal too much food from Hogsmeade;
I'd draw attention to myself."
He grinned up at Harry, but Harry returned the grin only reluctantly.
"What're you doing here, Sirius?" he said.
"Fulfilling my duty as godfather," said Sirius, gnawing on the chicken
bone in a very doglike way. "Don't worry about it, I'm pre-tending
to be a lovable stray."
He was still grinning, but seeing the anxiety in Harrys face, said
more seriously, "I want to be on the spot. Your last letter . . .
well, let's just say things are getting fishier. I've been stealing
the paper every time someone throws one out, and by the looks of things,
I'm not the only one who's getting worried."
He nodded at the yellowing Daily Prophets on the cave floor, and Ron
picked them up and unfolded them. Harry, however, contin-ued to stare at
Sirius.
"What if they catch you? What if you're seen?"
"You three and Dumbledore are the only ones around here who know I'm
an Animagus," said Sirius, shrugging, and continuing to devour the chicken
leg.
Ron nudged Harry and passed him the Daily Prophets. There were
two: The first bore the headline Mystery Illness ofBartemius Crouch,
the second, Ministry Witch Still Missing-Minister of Magic Now Personally
Involved.
Harry scanned the story about Crouch. Phrases jumped out at him:
hasn't been seen in public since November. . . house appears deserted.
. . St. Mungo's Hospital for Magical Maladies and Injuries decline comment.
. . Ministry refuses to confirm rumors of critical illness. . . .
"They're making it sound like he's dying," said Harry slowly.
"But he can't be that ill if he managed to get up here. . . ."
"My brothers Crouch's personal assistant," Ron informed Sirius.
"He says Crouch is suffering from overwork."
"Mind you, he did look ill, last time I saw him up close," said Harry
slowly, still reading the story. "The night my name came out of the goblet.
..."
"Getting his comeuppance for sacking Winky, isn't he?" said
Hermione, an edge to her voice. She was stroking Buckbeak, who was
crunching up Sirius's chicken bones. "I bet he wishes he hadn't done
it now - bet he feels the difference now she's not there to look after
him."
"Hermione's obsessed with house-elfs," Ron muttered to Sirius, casting
Hermione a dark look. Sirius, however, looked interested.
"Crouch sacked his house-elf?"
"Yeah, at the Quidditch World Cup," said Harry, and he launched into
the story of the Dark Mark's appearance, and Winky being found with Harrys
wand clutched in her hand, and Mr. Crouch's fury. When Harry had
finished, Sirius was on his feet again and had started pacing up and down
the cave.
"Let me get this straight," he said after a while, brandishing a fresh
chicken leg. "You first saw the elfin the Top Box. She was sav-ing Crouch
a seat, right?"
"Right," said Harry, Ron, and Hermione together.
"But Crouch didn't turn up for the match?"
"No," said Harry. "I think he said he'd been too busy."
Sirius paced all around the cave in silence. Then he said, "Harry,
did you check your pockets for your wand after you'd left the Top Box?"
"Erm . . ." Harry thought hard. "No," he said finally.
"I didn't need to use it before we got in the forest. And then I
put my hand in my pocket, and all that was in there were my Omnioculars."
He stared at Sirius. "Are you saying whoever conjured the Mark stole
my wand in the Top Box?"
"It's possible," said Sirius.
"Winky didn't steal that wand!" Hermione insisted.
"The elf wasn't the only one in that box," said Sirius, his brow furrowed
as he continued to pace. "Who else was sitting behind you?"
"Loads of people," said Harry. "Some Bulgarian ministers .. .
Cornelius Fudge ... the Malfoys ..."
"The Malfoys!" said Ron suddenly, so loudly that his voice echoed
all around the cave, and Buckbeak tossed his head ner-vously. "I
bet it was Lucius Malfoy!"
"Anyone else?" said Sirius.
"No one," said Harry.
"Yes, there was, there was Ludo Bagman," Hermione reminded him.
"Oh yeah . . ."
"I don't know anything about Bagman except that he used to be Beater
for the Wimbourne Wasps," said Sirius, still pacing. "What's he like?"
"He's okay," said Harry. "He keeps offering to help me with the Triwizard
Tournament."
"Does he, now?" said Sirius, frowning more deeply. "I wonder
why he'd do that?"
"Says he's taken a liking to me," said Harry.
"Hmm," said Sirius, looking thoughtful.
"We saw him in the forest just before the Dark Mark appeared," Hermione
told Sirius. "Remember?" she said to Harry and Ron.
"Yeah, but he didn't stay in the forest, did he?" said Ron.
"The moment we told him about the riot, he went off to the campsite."
"How d'you know?" Hermione shot back. "How d'you know where
he Disapparated to?"
"Come off it," said Ron incredulously. "Are you saying you reckon
Ludo Bagman conjured the Dark Mark?"
"It's more likely he did it than Winky," said Hermione stubbornly.
"Told you," said Ron, looking meaningfully at Sirius, "told you she's
obsessed with house -"
But Sirius held up a hand to silence Ron.
"When the Dark Mark had been conjured, and the elf had been discovered
holding Harry's wand, what did Crouch do?"
"Went to look in the bushes," said Harry, "but there wasn't any-one
else there."
"Of course," Sirius muttered, pacing up and down, "of course, he'd
want to pin it on anyone but his own elf... and then he sacked her?"
"Yes," said Hermione in a heated voice, "he sacked her, just be-cause
she hadn't stayed in her tent and let herself get trampled -"
"Hermione, will you give it a rest with the elf!" said Ron.
Sirius shook his head and said, "She's got the measure of Crouch
better than you have, Ron. If you want to know what a mans like,
take a good look at how he treats his inferiors, not his equals."
He ran a hand over his unshaven face, evidently thinking hard.
"All these absences of Barty Crouch's ... he goes to the trouble of
making sure his house-elf saves him a seat at the Quidditch World Cup,
but doesn't bother to turn up and watch. He works very hard to reinstate
the Triwizard Tournament, and then stops coming to that too. . . . It's
not like Crouch. If he's ever taken a day off work because of illness
before this, I'll eat Buckbeak."
"D'you know Crouch, then?" said Harry.
Sirius's face darkened. He suddenly looked as menacing as he
had the night when Harry first met him, the night when Harry still believed
Sirius to be a murderer.
"Oh I know Crouch all right," he said quietly. "He was the one
who gave the order for me to be sent to Azkaban - without a trial."
"What?" said Ron and Hermione together.
"You're kidding!" said Harry.
"No, I'm not," said Sirius, taking another great bite of chicken.
"Crouch used to be Head of the Department of Magical Law En-forcement,
didn't you know?"
Harry, Ron, and Hermione shook their heads.
"He was tipped for the next Minister of Magic," said Sirius. "He's
a great wizard, Barty Crouch, powerfully magical - and power-hungry.
Oh never a Voldemort supporter," he said, reading the look on Harrys face.
"No, Barty Crouch was always very out-spoken against the Dark Side.
But then a lot of people who were against the Dark Side . . . well, you
wouldn't understand . . . you're too young. ..."
"That's what my dad said at the World Cup," said Ron, with a trace
of irritation in his voice. "Try us, why don't you?"
A grin flashed across Sirius's thin face.
"All right, I'll try you. . . ." He walked once up the cave, back again,
and then said, "Imagine that Voldemort's powerful now. You don't
know who his supporters are, you don't know who's working for him and who
isn't; you know he can control people so that they do terrible things without
being able to stop themselves. You're scared for yourself, and your
family, and your friends. Every week, news comes of more deaths,
more disappearances, more tortur-ing . . . the Ministry of Magic's in disarray,
they don't know what to do, they're trying to keep everything hidden from
the Muggles, but meanwhile, Muggles are dying too. Terror everywhere
. . . panic . . . confusion . . . that's how it used to be.
"Well, times like that bring out the best in some people and the worst
in others. Crouch's principles might've been good in the be-ginning - I
wouldn't know. He rose quickly through the Ministry, and he started
ordering very harsh measures against Voldemorts supporters. The Aurors
were given new powers - powers to kill rather than capture, for instance.
And I wasn't the only one who was handed straight to the dementors without
trial. Crouch fought violence with violence, and authorized the use of
the Unforgivable Curses against suspects. I would say he became as
ruthless and cruel as many on the Dark Side. He had his supporters,
mind you - plenty of people thought he was going about things the right
way, and there were a lot of witches and wizards clamoring for him to take
over as Minister of Magic. When Voldemort disappeared, it looked like only
a matter of time until Crouch got the top job. But then something rather
unfortunate happened. ..." Sirius smiled grimly. "Crouch's
own son was caught with a group of Death Eaters who'd managed to talk their
way out of Azkaban. Appar-ently they were trying to find Voldemort and
return him to power."
"Crouch's son was caught?" gasped Hermione.
"Yep," said Sirius, throwing his chicken bone to Buckbeak, flinging
himself back down on the ground beside the loaf of bread, and tearing it
in half. "Nasty little shock for old Barty, I'd imagine. Should
have spent a bit more time at home with his family, shouldn't he?
Ought to have left the office early once in a while . . . gotten to know
his own son."
He began to wolf down large pieces of bread.
"Was his son a Death Eater?" said Harry.
"No idea," said Sirius, still stuffing down bread. "I was in
Azka-ban myself when he was brought in. This is mostly stuff I've
found out since I got out. The boy was definitely caught in the company
of people I'd bet my life were Death Eaters - but he might have been in
the wrong place at the wrong time, just like the house-elf."
"Did Crouch try and get his son off?" Hermione whispered.
Sirius let out a laugh that was much more like a bark.
"Crouch let his son off? I thought you had the measure of him,
Hermione! Anything that threatened to tarnish his reputation had
to go; he had dedicated his whole life to becoming Minister of Magic.
You saw him dismiss a devoted house-elf because she asso-ciated him with
the Dark Mark again - doesn't that tell you what he's like? Crouch's
fatherly affection stretched just far enough to give his son a trial, and
by all accounts, it wasn't much more than an excuse for Crouch to show
how much he hated the boy . . . then he sent him straight to Azkaban."
"He gave his own son to the dementors?" asked Harry quietly.
"That's right," said Sirius, and he didn't look remotely amused now.
"I saw the dementors bringing him in, watched them through the bars in
my cell door. He can't have been more than nineteen. They took
him into a cell near mine. He was screaming for his mother by nightfall.
He went quiet after a few days, though . . .they all went quiet in the
end. . . except when they shrieked in their sleep. ..."
For a moment, the deadened look in Sirius's eyes became more pronounced
than ever, as though shutters had closed behind them.
"So he's still in Azkaban?" Harry said.
"No," said Sirius dully. "No, he's not in there anymore.
He died about a year after they brought him in."
"He died?"
"He wasn't the only one," said Sirius bitterly. "Most go mad
in there, and plenty stop eating in the end. They lose the will to
live. You could always tell when a death was coming, because the
de-mentors could sense it, they got excited. That boy looked pretty
sickly when he arrived. Crouch being an important Ministry mem-ber,
he and his wife were allowed a deathbed visit. That was the last
time I saw Barty Crouch, half carrying his wife past my cell. She
died herself, apparently, shortly afterward. Grief. Wasted
away just like the boy. Crouch never came for his sons body.
The dementors buried him outside the fortress; I watched them do it."
Sirius threw aside the bread he had just lifted to his mouth and instead
picked up the flask of pumpkin juice and drained it.
"So old Crouch lost it all, just when he thought he had it made," he
continued, wiping his mouth with the back of his hand. "One moment,
a hero, poised to become Minister of Magic...next, his son dead, his wife
dead, the family name dishonored, and, so I've heard since I escaped, a
big drop in popularity. Once the boy had died, people started feeling
a bit more sympathetic toward the son and started asking how a nice young
lad from a good family had gone so badly astray. The conclusion was
that his father never cared much for him. So Cornelius Fudge got
the top job, and Crouch was shunted sideways into the Department of International
Magi-cal Cooperation."
There was a long silence. Harry was thinking of the way Crouch's
eyes had bulged as he'd looked down at his disobedient house-elf back in
the wood at the Quidditch World Cup. This, then, must have been why Crouch
had overreacted to Winky being found beneath the Dark Mark. It had
brought back memories of his son, and the old scandal, and his fall from
grace at the Ministry.
"Moody says Crouch is obsessed with catching Dark wizards," Harry told
Sirius.
"Yeah, I've heard it's become a bit of a mania with him," said Sir-ius,
nodding. "If you ask me, he still thinks he can bring back the old
popularity by catching one more Death Eater."
"And he sneaked up here to search Snape's office!" s aid Ron tri-umphantly,
looking at Hermione.
"Yes, and that doesn't make sense at all," said Sirius.
"Yeah, it does!" said Ron excitedly, but Sirius shook his head.
"Listen, if Crouch wants to investigate Snape, why hasn't he been coming
to judge the tournament? It would be an ideal excuse to make regular
visits to Hogwarts and keep an eye on him."
"So you think Snape could be up to something, then?" asked Harry,
but Hermione broke in.
"Look, I don't care what you say, Dumbledore trusts Snape -"
"Oh give it a rest, Hermione," said Ron impatiently. "I know
Dumbledores brilliant and everything, but that doesn't mean a really clever
Dark wizard couldn't fool him -"
"Why did Snape save Harry's life in the first year, then? Why
didn't he just let him die?"
"I dunno - maybe he thought Dumbledore would kick him out-"
"What d'you think, Sirius?" Harry said loudly, and Ron and Hermione
stopped bickering to listen.
"I think they've both got a point," said Sirius, looking thought-fully
at Ron and Hermione. "Ever since I found out Snape was teach-ing here,
I've wondered why Dumbledore hired him. Snape's always been fascinated
by the Dark Arts, he was famous for it at school. Slimy, oily, greasy-haired
kid, he was," Sirius added, and Harry and Ron grinned at each other.
"Snape knew more curses when he ar-rived at school than half the kids in
seventh year, and he was part of a gang of Slytherins who nearly all turned
out to be Death Eaters."
Sirius held up his fingers and began ticking off names.
"Rosier and Wilkes - they were both killed by Aurors the year before
Voldemort fell. The Lestranges - they're a married couple - they're in
Azkaban. Avery - from what I've heard he wormed his way out of trouble
by saying he'd been acting under the Imperius Curse - he's still at large.
But as far as I know, Snape was never even accused of being a Death Eater
- not that that means much. Plenty of them were never caught.
And Snape s certainly clever and cunning enough to keep himself out of
trouble."
"Snape knows Karkaroff pretty well, but he wants to keep that quiet,"
said Ron.
"Yeah, you should've seen Snape's face when Karkaroff turned up in
Potions yesterday!" said Harry quickly. "Karkaroff wanted to
talk to Snape, he says Snape's been avoiding him. Karkaroff looked
really worried. He showed Snape something on his arm, but I couldn't
see what it was."
He showed Snape something on his arm?" said Sirius, looking frankly
bewildered. He ran his fingers distractedly through his filthy hair,
then shrugged again. "Well, I've no idea what that's about. . . but
if Karkaroff s genuinely worried, and he's going to Snape for answers ..."
Sirius stared at the cave wall, then made a grimace of frustration.
"There's still the fact that Dumbledore trusts Snape, and I know Dumbledore
trusts where a lot of other people wouldn't, but I just can't see him letting
Snape teach at Hogwarts if he'd ever worked for Voldemort."
"Why are Moody and Crouch so keen to get into Snapes office then?"
said Ron stubbornly.
"Well," said Sirius slowly, "I wouldn't put it past Mad-Eye to have
searched every single teacher's office when he got to Hog-warts.
He takes his Defense Against the Dark Arts seriously, Moody. I'm
not sure he trusts anyone at all, and after the things he's seen, it's
not surprising. I'll say this for Moody, though, he never killed
if he could help it. Always brought people in alive where pos-sible.
He was tough, but he never descended to the level of the Death Eaters.
Crouch, though . . . he's a different matter ... is he really ill?
If he is, why did he make the effort to drag himself up to Snape's office?
And if he's not. . . what's he up to? What was he doing at the World
Cup that was so important he didn't turn up in the Top Box? What's
he been doing while he should have been judging the tournament?"
Sirius lapsed into silence, still staring at the cave wall. Buckbeak
was ferreting around on the rocky floor, looking for bones he might have
overlooked. Finally, Sirius looked up at Ron.
"You say your brother s Crouch's personal assistant? Any chance
you could ask him if he's seen Crouch lately?"
"I can try," said Ron doubtfully. "Better not make it sound like I
reckon Crouch is up to anything dodgy, though. Percy loves Crouch."
"And you might try and find out whether they've got any leads on Bertha
Jorkins while you're at it," said Sirius, gesturing to the second copy
of the Daily Prophet.
"Bagman told me they hadn't," said Harry.
"Yes, he's quoted in the article in there," said Sirius, nodding at
the paper. "Blustering on about how bad Bertha's memory is. Well,
maybe she's changed since I knew her, but the Bertha I knew wasn't forgetful
at all - quite the reverse. She was a bit dim, but she had an excellent
memory for gossip. It used to get her into a lot of trou-ble; she
never knew when to keep her mouth shut. I can see her being a bit
of a liability at the Ministry of Magic . . . maybe that's why Bagman didn't
bother to look for her for so long. ..."
Sirius heaved an enormous sigh and rubbed his shadowed eyes.
"What's the time?"
Harry checked his watch, then remembered it hadn't been work-ing since
it had spent over an hour in the lake.
"It's half past three," said Hermione.
"You'd better get back to school," Sirius said, getting to his feet.
"Now listen . . ." He looked particularly hard at Harry. "I
don't want you lot sneaking out of school to see me, all right? Just
send notes to me here. I still want to hear about anything odd.
But you're not to go leaving Hogwarts without permission; it would be an
ideal opportunity for someone to attack you."
"No one's tried to attack me so far, except a dragon and a couple of
grindylows," Harry said, but Sirius scowled at him.
"I don't care . . . I'll breathe freely again when this tournament's
over, and that's not until June. And don't forget, if you're talking
about me among yourselves, call me Snuffles, okay?"
He handed Harry the empty napkin and flask and went to pat Buckbeak
good-bye. "I'll walk to the edge of the village with you," said Sirius,
"see if I can scrounge another paper."
He transformed into the great black dog before they left the cave,
and they walked back down the mountainside with him, across the boulder-strewn
ground, and back to the stile. Here he allowed each of them to pat him
on the head, before turning and setting off at a run around the outskirts
of the village. Harry, Ron, and Hermione made their way back into
Hogsmeade and up to-ward Hogwarts.
"Wonder if Percy knows all that stuff about Crouch?" Ron said
as they walked up the drive to the castle. "But maybe he doesn't
care . . . It'd probably just make him admire Crouch even more. Yeah,
Percy loves rules. He'd just say Crouch was refusing to break them
for his own son."
"Percy would never throw any of his family to the dementors," said
Hermione severely.
"I don't know," said Ron. "If he thought we were standing in
the way of his career .. . Percy's really ambitious, you know. ..."
They walked up the stone steps into the entrance hall, where the delicious
smells of dinner wafted toward them from the Great Hall.
"Poor old Snuffles," said Ron, breathing deeply. "He must really
like you. Harry. . . . Imagine having to live off rats."
CHAPTER TWENTY-EIGHT
THE MADNESS OF MR CROUCH
Harry, Ron, and Hermione went up to the Owlery after breakfast on Sunday
to send a letter to Percy, asking, as Sirius had suggested, whether he
had seen Mr. Crouch lately. They used Hedwig, because it had been
so long since she'd had a job. When they had watched her fly out
of sight through the Owlery window, they proceeded down to the kitchen
to give Dobby his new socks.
The house-elves gave them a very cheery welcome, bowing and curtsying
and bustling around making tea again. Dobby was ecsta-tic about his
present.
"Harry Potter is too good to Dobby!" he squeaked, wiping large tears
out of his enormous eyes.
"You saved my life with that gillyweed, Dobby, you really did," said
Harry.
"No chance of more of those eclairs, is there?" said Ron, who
was looking around at the beaming and bowing house-elves.
"You've just had breakfast!" said Hermione irritably, but a great silver
platter of eclairs was already zooming toward them, sup-ported by four
elves.
"We should get some stuff to send up to Snuffles," Harry muttered.
"Good idea," said Ron. "Give Pig something to do. You couldn't give
us a bit of extra food, could you?" he said to the surrounding elves,
and they bowed delightedly and hurried off to get some more.
"Dobby, where's Winky?" said Hermione, who was looking around.
"Winky is over there by the fire, miss," said Dobby quietly, his ears
drooping slightly.
"Oh dear," said Hermione as she spotted Winky.
Harry looked over at the fireplace too. Winky was sitting on
the same stool as last time, but she had allowed herself to become so filthy
that she was not immediately distinguishable from the smoke-blackened brick
behind her. Her clothes were ragged and unwashed. She was clutching
a bottle of butterbeer and swaying slightly on her stool, staring into
the fire. As they watched her, she gave an enormous hiccup.
"Winky is getting through six bottles a day now," Dobby whis-pered
to Harry.
"Well, it's not strong, that stuff," Harry said.
But Dobby shook his head. "'Tis strong for a house-elf, sir," he said.
Winky hiccuped again. The elves who had brought the eclairs gave her
disapproving looks as they returned to work.
"Winky is pining, Harry Potter," Dobby whispered sadly. "Winky
wants to go home. Winky still thinks Mr. Crouch is her master, sir, and
nothing Dobby says will persuade her that Profes-sor Dumbledore is her
master now."
"Hey, Winky," said Harry, struck by a sudden inspiration, walk-ing
over to her, and bending down, "you don't know what Mr. Crouch might be
up to, do you? Because he's stopped turning up to judge the Triwizard
Tournament."
Winky's eyes flickered. Her enormous pupils focused on Harry.
She swayed slightly again and then said, "M - Master is stopped -
hic - coming?"
"Yeah," said Harry, "we haven't seen him since the first task.
The Daily Prophet's saying he's ill."
Winky swayed some more, staring blurrily at Harry.
"Master- hic- ill?"
Her bottom lip began to tremble.
"But we're not sure if that's true," said Hermione quickly.
"Master is needing his - hie - Winky!" whimpered the elf.
"Master cannot - hic - manage - hic - all by himself. . . ."
"Other people manage to do their own housework, you know, Winky," Hermione
said severely.
"Winky - hic - is not only - hic - doing housework for Mr. Crouch!"
Winky squeaked indignantly, swaying worse than ever and slopping butterbeer
down her already heavily stained blouse. "Master is - hic - trusting
Winky with - hic - the most important - hic - the most secret..."
"What?" said Harry.
But Winky shook her head very hard, spilling more butterbeer down herself.
"Winky keeps - hic - her master's secrets," she said muti-nously, swaying
very heavily now, frowning up at Harry with her eyes crossed. "You
is - hic - nosing, you is."
"Winky must not talk like that to Harry Potter!" said Dobby an-grily.
"Harry Potter is brave and noble and Harry Potter is not nosy!"
"He is nosing - hic - into my master's - hic - private and secret -
hic - Winky is a good house-elf- hic - Winky keeps her silence - hic -
people trying to - hic - pry and poke - hic -"
Winky's eyelids drooped and suddenly, without warning, she slid off
her stool into the hearth, snoring loudly. The empty bottle of butterbeer
rolled away across the stone-flagged floor. Half a dozen house-elves
came hurrying forward, looking disgusted. One of them picked up the
bottle; the others covered Winky with a large checked tablecloth and tucked
the ends in neatly, hiding her from view.
"We is sorry you had to see that, sirs and miss!" squeaked a
nearby elf, shaking his head and looking very ashamed. "We is hop-ing
you will not judge us all by Winky, sirs and miss!"
"She's unhappy!" said Hermione, exasperated. "Why don't you try
and cheer her up instead of covering her up?"
"Begging your pardon, miss," said the house-elf, bowing deeply again,
"but house-elves has no right to be unhappy when there is work to be done
and masters to be served."
"Oh for heavens sake!" Hermione cried. "Listen to me, all
of you! You've got just as much right as wizards to be unhappy!
You've got the right to wages and holidays and proper clothes, you don't
have to do everything you're told - look at Dobby!"
"Miss will please keep Dobby out of this," Dobby mumbled, looking scared.
The cheery smiles had vanished from the faces of the house-elves around
the kitchen. They were suddenly looking at Hermione as though she
were mad and dangerous.
"We has your extra food!" squeaked an elf at Harry's elbow, and
he shoved a large ham, a dozen cakes, and some fruit into Harry's arms.
"Good-bye!"
The house-elves crowded around Harry, Ron, and Hermione and began shunting
them out of the kitchen, many little hands pushing in the smalls of their
backs.
"Thank you for the socks, Harry Potter!" Dobby called miser-ably
from the hearth, where he was standing next to the lumpy tablecloth that
was Winky.
"You couldn't keep your mouth shut, could you, Hermione?" said
Ron angrily as the kitchen door slammed shut behind them. "They won't
want us visiting them now! We could've tried to get more stuff out
of Winky about Crouch!"
"Oh as if you care about that!" scoffed Hermione. "You only like
coming down here for the food!"
It was an irritable sort of day after that. Harry got so tired
of Ron and Hermione sniping at each other over their homework in the common
room that he took Sirius's food up to the Owlery that evening on his own.
Pigwidgeon was much too small to carry an entire ham up to the mountain
by himself, so Harry enlisted the help of two school screech owls as well.
When they had set off into the dusk, looking extremely odd carrying the
large package between them. Harry leaned on the windowsill, looking
out at the grounds, at the dark, rustling treetops of the Forbidden Forest,
and the rippling sails of the Durmstrang ship. An eagle owl flew
through the coil of smoke rising from Hagrids chimney; it soared toward
the castle, around the Owlery, and out of sight. Looking down, Harry saw
Hagrid digging energetically in front of his cabin. Harry wondered
what he was doing; it looked as though he were making a new vegetable patch.
As he watched, Madame Maxime emerged from the Beaux-batons carriage and
walked over to Hagrid. She appeared to be try-ing to engage him in
conversation. Hagrid leaned upon his spade, but did not seem keen
to prolong their talk, because Madame Maxime returned to the carriage shortly
afterward.
Unwilling to go back to Gryffindor Tower and listen to Ron and Hermione
snarling at each other, Harry watched Hagrid digging until the darkness
swallowed him and the owls around Harry be-gan to awake, swooshing past
him into the night.
By breakfast the next day Ron's and Hermione's bad moods had burnt out,
and to Harrys relief, Ron's dark predictions that the house-elves would
send substandard food up to the Gryffindor table because Hermione had insulted
them proved false; the bacon, eggs, and kippers were quite as good as usual.
When the post owls arrived, Hermione looked up eagerly; she seemed
to be expecting something.
"Percy won't've had time to answer yet," said Ron. "We only sent
Hedwig yesterday."
"No, it's not that," said Hermione. "I've taken out a subscription
to the Daily Prophet. I'm getting sick of finding everything out from the
Slytherins."
"Good thinking!" said Harry, also looking up at the owls.
"Hey, Hermione, I think you're in luck -"
A gray owl was soaring down toward Hermione.
"It hasn't got a newspaper, though," she said, looking disap-pointed.
"It's -"
But to her bewilderment, the gray owl landed in front of her plate,
closely followed by four barn owls, a brown owl, and a tawny.
"How many subscriptions did you take out?" said Harry, seizing Hermione's
goblet before it was knocked over by the cluster of owls, all of whom were
jostling close to her, trying to deliver their own letter first.
"What on earth - ?" Hermione said, taking the letter from the gray
owl, opening it, and starting to read. "Oh really!" she sput-tered,
going rather red.
"What's up?" said Ron.
"It,'s - oh how ridiculous -"
She thrust the letter at Harry, who saw that it was not handwrit-ten,
but composed from pasted letters that seemed to have been cut out of the
Daily Prophet.
YOU ARE A WICKED GIRL. HARRY POTTER DESERVES
BETTER. GO BACK WHERE YOU CAME FROM MUGGLE.
"They're all like it!" said Hermione desperately, opening one
let-ter after another. "'Harry Potter can do much better than the
likes of you. . . .' 'You deserve to be boiled in frog spawn. . . .' Ouch!"
She had opened the last envelope, and yellowish-green liquid smelling
strongly of petrol gushed over her hands, which began to erupt in large
yellow boils.
"Undiluted bubotuber pus!" said Ron, picking up the envelope gingerly
and sniffing it.
"Ow!" said Hermione, tears starting in her eyes as she tried
to rub the pus off her hands with a napkin, but her fingers were now so
thickly covered in painful sores that it looked as though she were wearing
a pair of thick, knobbly gloves.
"You'd better get up to the hospital wing," said Harry as the owls
around Hermione took flight. "We'll tell Professor Sprout where you've
gone. . . ."
"I warned her!" said Ron as Hermione hurried out of the Great
Hall, cradling her hands. "I warned her not to annoy Rita Skeeter!
Look at this one ..." He read out one of the letters Hermione had
left behind: "I read In Witch Weekly about how you are playing Harry Potter
false and that boy has had enough hardship and I will be sending you a
curse by next post as soon as I can find a big enough en-velope.'
Blimey, she'd better watch out for herself."
Hermione didn't turn up for Herbology. As Harry and Ron left
the greenhouse for their Care of Magical Creatures class, they saw Malfoy,
Crabbe, and Goyle descending the stone steps of the castle. Pansy
Parkinson was whispering and giggling behind them with her gang of Slytherin
girls. Catching sight of Harry, Pansy called, "Potter, have you split
up with your girlfriend? Why was she so up-set at breakfast?"
Harry ignored her; he didn't want to give her the satisfaction of knowing
how much trouble the Witch Weekly article had caused.
Hagrid, who had told them last lesson that they had finished with unicorns,
was waiting for them outside his cabin with a fresh supply of open crates
at his feet. Harrys heart sank at the sight of the crates - surely
not another skrewt hatching? - but when he got near enough to see inside,
he found himself looking at a num-ber of flurry black creatures with long
snouts. Their front paws were curiously flat, like spades, and they
were blinking up at the class, looking politely puzzled at all the attention.
"These're nifflers," said Hagrid, when the class had gathered around.
"Yeh find 'em down mines mostly. They like sparkly stuff. . . . There
yeh go, look."
One of the nifflers had suddenly leapt up and attempted to bite Pansy
Parkinson's watch off her wrist. She shrieked and jumped backward.
"Useful little treasure detectors," said Hagrid happily. "Thought
we'd have some fun with 'em today. See over there?" He pointed
at the large patch of freshly turned earth Harry had watched him dig-ging
from the Owlery window. "I've buried some gold coins. I've
got a prize fer whoever picks the niffler that digs up most. Jus'
take off all yer valuables, an' choose a niffler, an get ready ter set
'em loose."
Harry took off his watch, which he was only wearing out of habit, as
it didn't work anymore, and stuffed it into his pocket. Then he picked
up a niffler. It put its long snout in Harry's ear and sniffed enthusiastically.
It was really quite cuddly.
"Hang on," said Hagrid, looking down into the crate, "there's a spare
niffler here . . . who's missin? Where's Hermione?"
"She had to go to the hospital wing," said Ron.
"We'll explain later," Harry muttered; Pansy Parkinson was listening.
It was easily the most fun they had ever had in Care of Magical Creatures.
The nifflers dived in and out of the patch of earth as though it were water,
each scurrying back to the student who had released it and spitting gold
into their hands. Ron's was particularly efficient; it had soon filled
his lap with coins.
"Can you buy these as pets, Hagrid?" he asked excitedly as his
niffler dived back into the soil, splattering his robes.
"Yer mum wouldn' be happy, Ron," said Hagrid, grinning. "They
wreck houses, nifflers. I reckon they've nearly got the lot, now," he added,
pacing around the patch of earth while the nifflers continued to dive.
"I on'y buried a hundred coins. Oh there y'are, Hermione!"
Hermione was walking toward them across the lawn. Her hands were
very heavily bandaged and she looked miserable. Pansy Parkinson was
watching her beadily.
"Well, let's check how yeh've done!" said Hagrid. "Count yer
coins! An' there's no point tryin' ter steal any, Goyle," he added,
his beetle-black eyes narrowed. "It's leprechaun gold. Vanishes
after a few hours."
Goyle emptied his pockets, looking extremely sulky. It turned
out that Ron's niffler had been most successful, so Hagrid gave him an
enormous slab of Honeydukes chocolate for a prize. The bell rang
across the grounds for lunch; the rest of the class set off back to the
castle, but Harry, Ron, and Hermione stayed behind to help Hagrid put the
nifflers back in their boxes. Harry noticed Madame Maxime watching them
out other carriage window.
"What yeh done ter your hands, Hermione?" said Hagrid, look-ing
concerned.
Hermione told him about the hate mail she had received that morning,
and the envelope full of bubotuber pus.
"Aaah, don worry," said Hagrid gendy, looking down at her. "I
got some o' those letters an all, after Rita Skeeter wrote abou me mum.
'Yeh're a monster an yeh should be put down.' 'Yer mother killed
innocent people an if you had any decency you d jump in a lake.'"
"No!" said Hermione, looking shocked.
"Yeah," said Hagrid, heaving the niffler crates over by his cabin wall.
"They're jus' nutters, Hermione. Don' open 'em if yeh get any more.
Chuck 'em straigh' in the fire."
"You missed a really good lesson," Harry told Hermione as they headed
back toward the castle. "They're good, nifflers, aren't they, Ron?"
Ron, however, was frowning at the chocolate Hagrid had given him. He
looked thoroughly put out about something.
"What's the matter?" said Harry. "Wrong flavor?"
"No," said Ron shortly. "Why didn't you tell me about the gold?"
"What gold?" said Harry.
"The gold I gave you at the Quidditch World Cup," said Ron. "The
leprechaun gold I gave you for my Omnioculars. In the Top Box.
Why didn't you tell me it disappeared?"
Harry had to think for a moment before he realized what Ron was talking
about.
"Oh . . ." he said, the memory coming back to him at last. "I
dunno ... I never noticed it had gone. I was more worried about my
wand, wasn't I?"
They climbed the steps into the entrance hall and went into the Great
Hall for lunch.
"Must be nice," Ron said abruptly, when they had sat down and started
serving themselves roast beef and Yorkshire puddings. "To have so
much money you don't notice if a pocketful of Galleons goes missing."
"Listen, I had other stuff on my mind that night!" s aid Harry impatiently.
"We all did, remember?"
"I didn't know leprechaun gold vanishes," Ron muttered. "I thought
I was paying you back. You shouldn't've given me that Chudley Cannon
hat for Christmas."
"Forget it, all right?" said Harry.
Ron speared a roast potato on the end of his fork, glaring at it.
Then he said, "I hate being poor."
Harry and Hermione looked at each other. Neither of them re-ally
knew what to say.
"It's rubbish," said Ron, still glaring down at his potato. "I
don't blame Fred and George for trying to make some extra money.
Wish I could. Wish I had a niffler."
"Well, we know what to get you next Christmas," said Hermi-one brightly.
Then, when Ron continued to look gloomy, she said, "Come on, Ron, it could
be worse. At least your fingers aren't full of pus." Hermione
was having a lot of difficulty managing her knife and fork, her fingers
were so stiff and swollen. "I hate that Skeeter woman!" she
burst out savagely. "I'll get her back for this if it's the last
thing I do!"
Hate mail continued to arrive for Hermione over the following week,
and although she followed Hagrid's advice and stopped opening it, several
of her ill-wishers sent Howlers, which exploded at the Gryffindor table
and shrieked insults at her for the whole Hall to hear. Even those
people who didn't read Witch Weekly knew all about the supposed Harry-Krum-Hermione
triangle now. Harry was getting sick of telling people that Hermione
wasn't his girlfriend.
"It'll die down, though," he told Hermione, "if we just ignore it.
... People got bored with that stuff she wrote about me last time
"I want to know how she's listening into private conversations when
she's supposed to be banned from the grounds!" said Hermione angrily.
Hermione hung back in their next Defense Against the Dark Arts lesson
to ask Professor Moody something. The rest of the class was very
eager to leave; Moody had given them such a rigorous test of hex-deflection
that many of them were nursing small injuries. Harry had such a bad
case of Twitchy Ears, he had to hold his hands clamped over them as he
walked away from the class.
"Well, Rita's definitely not using an Invisibility Cloak!" Hermione
panted five minutes later, catching up with Harry and Ron in the entrance
hall and pulling Harrys hand away from one of his wiggling ears so that
he could hear her. "Moody says he didn't see her anywhere near the
judges' table at the second task, or any-where near the lake!"
"Hermione, is there any point in telling you to drop this?" said
Ron.
"No!" said Hermione stubbornly. "I want to know how she heard
me talking to Viktor! And how she found out about Hagrids mum!"
"Maybe she had you bugged," said Harry.
"Bugged?" said Ron blankly. "What. . . put fleas on her or something?"
Harry started explaining about hidden microphones and record-ing equipment.
Ron was fascinated, but Hermione interrupted them.
"Aren't you two ever going to read Hogwarts, A History^"
"What's the point?" said Ron. "You know it by heart, we
can just ask you."
"All those substitutes for magic Muggles use - electricity, com-puters,
and radar, and all those things - they all go haywire around Hogwarts,
there's too much magic in the air. No, Rita's us-ing magic to eavesdrop,
she must be. ... If I could just find out what it is ... ooh, if it's illegal,
I'll have her ..."
"Haven't we got enough to worry about?" Ron asked her.
"Do we have to start a vendetta against Rita Skeeter as well?"
"I'm not asking you to help!" Hermione snapped. "I'll do
it on my own!"
She marched back up the marble staircase without a backward glance.
Harry was quite sure she was going to the library.
"What's the betting she comes back with a box of / Hate Rita Skeeter
badges?" said Ron.
Hermione, however, did not ask Harry and Ron to help her pur-sue vengeance
against Rita Skeeter, for which they were both grate-ful, because their
workload was mounting ever higher in the days before the Easter holidays.
Harry frankly marveled at the fact that Hermione could research magical
methods of eavesdropping as well as everything else they had to do.
He was working flat-out just to get through all their homework, though
he made a point of sending regular food packages up to the cave in the
mountain for Sirius; after last summer, Harry had not forgotten what it
felt like to be continually hungry. He enclosed notes to Sirius,
telling him that nothing out of the ordinary had happened, and that they
were still waiting for an answer from Percy.
Hedwig didn't return until the end of the Easter holidays. Percy's
letter was enclosed in a package of Easter eggs that Mrs. Weasley had sent.
Both Harrys and Ron's were the size of dragon eggs and full of homemade
toffee. Hermiones, however, was smaller than a chicken egg.
Her face fell when she saw it.
"Your mum doesn't read Witch Weekly, by any chance, does she, Ron?"
she asked quietly.
"Yeah," said Ron, whose mouth was full of toffee. "Gets it for the
recipes."
Hermione looked sadly at her tiny egg.
"Don't you want to see what Percy's written?" Harry asked her hastily.
Percys letter was short and irritated.
As I am constantly telling the Daily Prophet, Mr. Crouch is taking a well-deserved break. He is sending in regular owls with instructions. No, I haven't actually seen him, but I think I can be trusted to know my own superior's handwriting. I have quite enough to do at the moment without trying to quash these ridiculous rumors. Please don't bother me again unless it's something important. Happy Easter.
The start of the summer term would normally have meant that Harry was
training hard for the last Quidditch match of the season. This year, however,
it was the third and final task in the Triwizard Tournament for which he
needed to prepare, but he still didn't know what he would have to do.
Finally, in the last week of May, Professor McGonagall held him back in
Transfiguration.
"You are to go down to the Quidditch field tonight at nine o'clock.
Potter," she told him. "Mr. Bagman will be there to tell the champions
about the third task."
So at half past eight that night. Harry left Ron and Hermione in Gryffindor
Tower and went downstairs. As he crossed the entrance hall, Cedric
came up from the Hufflepuff common room.
"What d'you reckon it's going to be?" he asked Harry as they
went together down the stone steps, out into the cloudy night. "Fleur
keeps going on about underground tunnels; she reckons we've got to find
treasure."
"That wouldn't be too bad," said Harry, thinking that he would simply
ask Hagrid for a niffler to do the job for him.
They walked down the dark lawn to the Quidditch stadium, turned through
a gap in the stands, and walked out onto the field.
"What've they done to it?" Cedric said indignantly, stopping dead.
The Quidditch field was no longer smooth and flat. It looked
as though somebody had been building long, low walls all over it that twisted
and crisscrossed in every direction.
"They're hedges!" said Harry, bending to examine the nearest one.
"Hello there!" called a cheery voice.
Ludo Bagman was standing in the middle of the field with Krum and Fleur.
Harry and Cedric made their way toward them, climbing over the hedges.
Fleur beamed at Harry as he came nearer. Her attitude toward him
had changed completely since he had saved her sister from the lake.
"Well, what d'you think?" said Bagman happily as Harry and Cedric
climbed over the last hedge. "Growing nicely, aren't they?
Give them a month and Hagrid'll have them twenty feet high. Don't
worry," he added, grinning, spotting the less-than-happy expressions on
Harrys and Cedric's faces, "you'll have your Quid-ditch field back to normal
once the task is over! Now, I imagine you can guess what we're making here?"
No one spoke for a moment. Then -
"Maze," grunted Krum.
"That's right!" said Bagman. "A maze. The third task's
really very straightforward. The Triwizard Cup will be placed in
the center of the maze. The first champion to touch it will receive
full marks."
"We seemply 'ave to get through the maze?" said Fleur.
"There will be obstacles," said Bagman happily, bouncing on the balls
of his feet. "Hagrid is providing a number of creatures . . . then there
will be spells that must be broken ... all that sort of thing, you know.
Now, the champions who are leading on points will get a head start into
the maze." Bagman grinned at Harry and Cedric. "Then Mr. Krum will enter
. . . then Miss Delacour. But you'll all be in with a fighting chance,
depending how well you get past the obstacles. Should be fun, eh?"
Harry, who knew only too well the kind of creatures that Hagrid was
likely to provide for an event like this, thought it was unlikely to be
any fun at all. However, he nodded politely like the other champions.
"Very well. . . if you haven't got any questions, we'll go back up
to the castle, shall we, it's a bit chilly. ..."
Bagman hurried alongside Harry as they began to wend their way out
of the growing maze. Harry had the feeling that Bagman was going
to start offering to help him again, but just then, Krum tapped Harry on
the shoulder.
"Could I haff a vord?"
"Yeah, all right," said Harry, slightly surprised.
"Vill you valk vith me?"
"Okay," said Harry curiously.
Bagman looked slightly perturbed.
"I'll wait for you. Harry, shall I?"
"No, it's okay, Mr. Bagman," said Harry, suppressing a smile, "I think
I can find the castle on my own, thanks."
Harry and Krum left the stadium together, but Krum did not set a course
for the Durmstrang ship. Instead, he walked toward the forest.
"What're we going this way for?" said Harry as they passed Hagrid s
cabin and the illuminated Beauxbatons carriage.
"Don't vont to be overheard," said Krum shortly.
When at last they had reached a quiet stretch of ground a short way
from the Beauxbatons horses' paddock, Krum stopped in the shade of the
trees and turned to face Harry.
"I vant to know," he said, glowering, "vot there is between you and
Hermy-own-ninny."
Harry, who from Krum's secretive manner had expected some-thing much
more serious than this, stared up at Krum in amaze-ment.
"Nothing," he said. But Krum glowered at him, and Harry, somehow
struck anew by how tall Krum was, elaborated. "We're friends.
She's not my girlfriend and she never has been. It's just that Skeeter
woman making things up."
"Hermy-own-ninny talks about you very often," said Krum, looking suspiciously
at Harry.
"Yeah," said Harry, "because were friends."
He couldn't quite believe he was having this conversation with Viktor
Krum, the famous International Quidditch player. It was as though
the eighteen-year-old Krum thought he. Harry, was an equal - a real rival
-
"You haff never . . . you haff not..."
"No," said Harry very firmly.
Krum looked slightly happier. He stared at Harry for a few sec-onds,
then said, "You fly very veil. I vos votching at the first task."
"Thanks," said Harry, grinning broadly and suddenly feeling much taller
himself. "I saw you at the Quidditch World Cup. The Wronski
Feint, you really -"
But something moved behind Krum in the trees, and Harry, who had some
experience of the sort of thing that lurked in the for-est, instinctively
grabbed Krum's arm and pulled him around.
"Vot is it?"
Harry shook his head, staring at the place where he'd seen move-ment.
He slipped his hand inside his robes, reaching for his wand.
Suddenly a man staggered out from behind a tall oak. For a mo-ment,
Harry didn't recognize him . . . then he realized it was Mr. Crouch.
He looked as though he had been traveling for days. The knees
of his robes were ripped and bloody, his face scratched; he was unshaven
and gray with exhaustion. His neat hair and mustache were both in
need of a wash and a trim. His strange appearance, however, was nothing
to the way he was behaving. Muttering and gesticulating, Mr. Crouch
appeared to be talking to someone that he alone could see. He reminded
Harry vividly of an old tramp he had seen once when out shopping with the
Dursleys. That man too had been conversing wildly with thin air;
Aunt Petunia had seized Dudley's hand and pulled him across the road to
avoid him; Uncle Vernon had then treated the family to a long rant about
what he would like to do with beggars and vagrants.
"Vosn't he a judge?" said Krum, staring at Mr. Crouch. "Isn't
he vith your Ministry?"
Harry nodded, hesitated for a moment, then walked slowly to-ward Mr.
Crouch, who did not look at him, but continued to talk to a nearby tree.
"... and when you've done that, Weatherby, send an owl to Dumbledore
confirming the number of Durmstrang students who will be attending the
tournament, Karkaroff has just sent word there will be twelve. . . ."
"Mr. Crouch?" said Harry cautiously.
"... and then send another owl to Madame Maxime, because she might
want to up the number of students she's bringing, now Karkaroff's made
it a round dozen ... do that, Weatherby, will you? Will you? Will..."
Mr. Crouch's eyes were bulging. He stood staring at the tree,
muttering soundlessly at it. Then he staggered sideways and fell
to his knees.
"Mr. Crouch?" Harry said loudly. "Are you all right?"
Crouch's eyes were rolling in his head. Harry looked around at
Krum, who had followed him into the trees, and was looking down at Crouch
in alarm.
"Vot is wrong with him?"
"No idea," Harry muttered. "Listen, you'd better go and get someone
-"
"Dumbledore!" gasped Mr. Crouch. He reached out and seized a handful
of Harrys robes, dragging him closer, though his eyes were staring over
Harry's head. "I need... see ... Dumble-dore. ..."
"Okay," said Harry, "if you get up, Mr. Crouch, we can go up to the-"
"I've done . . . stupid . . . thing . . ." Mr. Crouch breathed.
He looked utterly mad. His eyes were rolling and bulging, and a trickle
of spittle was sliding down his chin. Every word he spoke seemed
to cost him a terrible effort. "Must. . . tell. . . Dumbledore .
. ."
"Get up, Mr. Crouch," said Harry loudly and clearly. "Get up,
I'll take you to Dumbledore!"
Mr, Crouch's eyes rolled forward onto Harry.
"Who ... you?" he whispered.
"I'm a student at the school," said Harry, looking around at Krum for
some help, but Krum was hanging back, looking ex-tremely nervous.
"You're not... his?" whispered Crouch, his mouth sagging.
"No," said Harry, without the faintest idea what Crouch was talking
about.
"Dumbledore's?"
"That's right," said Harry.
Crouch was pulling him closer; Harry tried to loosen Crouch's grip
on his robes, but it was too powerful.
"Warn ... Dumbledore ..."
"I'll get Dumbledore if you let go of me," said Harry. "Just
let go, Mr. Crouch, and I'll get him.. . ."
"Thank you, Weatherby, and when you have done that, I would like a
cup of tea. My wife and son will be arriving shortly, we are at-tending
a concert tonight with Mr. and Mrs. Fudge."
Crouch was now talking fluently to a tree again, and seemed completely
unaware that Harry was there, which surprised Harry so much he didn't notice
that Crouch had released him.
"Yes, my son has recently gained twelve O.W.L.S, most satisfac-tory,
yes, thank you, yes, very proud indeed. Now, if you could bring me
that memo from the Andorran Minister of Magic, I think I will have time
to draft a response. ..."
"You stay here with him!" Harry said to Krum. "I'll get
Dumb-ledore, I'll be quicker, I know where his office is -"
"He is mad," said Krum doubtfully, staring down at Crouch, who was
still gabbling to the tree, apparently convinced it was Percy.
"Just stay with him," said Harry, starting to get up, but his movement
seemed to trigger another abrupt change in Mr. Crouch, who seized him hard
around the knees and pulled Harry back to the ground.
"Don't. . . leave .. . me!" he whispered, his eyes bulging again.
"I... escaped .. . must warn . . . must tell... see Dumbledore . . . my
fault... all my fault. . . Bertha . . . dead ... all my fault. .. my son
... my fault... tell Dumbledore ... Harry Potter ... the Dark Lord . .
. stronger . . . Harry Potter ..."
"I'll get Dumbledore if you let me go, Mr. Crouch!" said Harry. He
looked furiously around at Krum. "Help me, will you?"
Looking extremely apprehensive, Krum moved forward and squatted down
next to Mr. Crouch.
"Just keep him here," said Harry, pulling himself free of Mr. Crouch.
"I'll be back with Dumbledore."
"Hurry, von't you?" Krum called after him as Harry sprinted away
from the forest and up through the dark grounds. They were deserted;
Bagman, Cedric, and Fleur had disappeared. Harry tore up the stone
steps, through the oak front doors, and off up the marble staircase, toward
the second floor.
Five minutes later he was hurtling toward a stone gargoyle standing
halfway along an empty corridor.
"Sher - sherbet lemon!" he panted at it.
This was the password to the hidden staircase to Dumbledore's office
- or at least, it had been two years ago.&nbbsp; The password had evidently
changed, however, for the stone gargoyle did not spring to life and jump
aside, but stood frozen, glaring at Harry malevolently.
"Move!" Harry shouted at it. "C'mon!"
But nothing at Hogwarts had ever moved just because he shouted at it;
he knew it was no good. He looked up and down the dark corridor.
Perhaps Dumbledore was in the staffroom? He started running as fast
as he could toward the staircase -
"POTTER!"
Harry skidded to a halt and looked around. Snape had just emerged from
the hidden staircase behind the stone gargoyle. The wall was sliding
shut behind him even as he beckoned Harry back toward him.
"What are you doing here, Potter?"
"I need to see Professor Dumbledore!" said Harry, running back
up the corridor and skidding to a standstill in front of Snape in-stead.
"It's Mr. Crouch . . . he's just turned up ... he's in the for-est... he's
asking -"
"What is this rubbish?" said Snape, his black eyes glittering. "What
are you talking about?"
"Mr. Crouch!" Harry shouted. "From the Ministry!
He's ill or something - he's in the forest, he wants to see Dumbledore!
Just give me the password up to -"
"The headmaster is busy. Potter," said Snape, his thin mouth curling
into an unpleasant smile.
"I've got to tell Dumbledore!" Harry yelled.
"Didn't you hear me. Potter?"
Harry could tell Snape was thoroughly enjoying himself, deny-ing Harry
the thing he wanted when he was so panicky.
"Look," said Harry angrily, "Crouch isn't right - he's - he's out of
his mind - he says he wants to warn -"
The stone wall behind Snape slid open. Dumbledore was stand-ing
there, wearing long green robes and a mildly curious expression.
"Is there a problem?" he said, looking between Harry and Snape.
"Professor!" Harry said, sidestepping Snape before Snape could speak,
"Mr. Crouch is here - he's down in the forest, he wants to speak to you!"
Harry expected Dumbledore to ask questions, but to his relief, Dumbledore
did nothing of the sort.
"Lead the way," he said promptly, and he swept off along the corridor
behind Harry, leaving Snape standing next to the gargoyle and looking twice
as ugly.
"What did Mr. Crouch say. Harry?" said Dumbledore as they walked swiftly
down the marble staircase.
"Said he wants to warn you . . . said he's done something terrible
... he mentioned his son . . . and Bertha Jorkins .. . and - and Voldemort.
. . something about Voldemort getting stronger. ..."
"Indeed," said Dumbledore, and he quickened his pace as they hurried
out into the pitch-darkness.
"He's not acting normally," Harry said, hurrying along beside Dumbledore.
"He doesn't seem to know where he is. He keeps talking like he thinks
Percy Weasley's there, and then he changes, and says he needs to see you.
... I left him with Vik-tor Krum."
"You did?" said Dumbledore sharply, and he began to take longer
strides still, so that Harry was running to keep up. "Do you know
if anybody else saw Mr. Crouch?"
"No," said Harry. "Krum and I were talking, Mr. Bagman had just
finished telling us about the third task, we stayed behind, and then we
saw Mr. Crouch coming out of the forest -"
"Where are they?" said Dumbledore as the Beauxbatons carriage emerged
from the darkness.
"Over here," said Harry, moving in front of Dumbledore, lead-ing the
way through the trees. He couldn't hear Crouch's voice any-more,
but he knew where he was going; it hadn't been much past the Beauxbatons
carriage . . . somewhere around here. . . .
"Viktor?" Harry shouted.
No one answered.
"They were here," Harry said to Dumbledore. "They were defi-nitely
somewhere around here. ..."
"Lumos," Dumbledore said, lighting his wand and holding it up.
Its narrow beam traveled from black trunk to black trunk, illu-minating
the ground. And then it fell upon a pair of feet.
Harry and Dumbledore hurried forward. Krum was sprawled on the
forest floor. He seemed to be unconscious. There was no sign
at all of Mr. Crouch. Dumbledore bent over Krum and gently lifted
one of his eyelids.
"Stunned," he said softly. His half-moon glasses glittered in the wandlight
as he peered around at the surrounding trees.
"Should I go and get someone?" said Harry. "Madam Pomfrey?"
"No," said Dumbledore swiftly. "Stay here."
He raised his wand into the air and pointed it in the direction of
Hagrid's cabin. Harry saw something silvery dart out of it and streak
away through the trees like a ghostly bird. Then Dumble-dore bent
over Krum again, pointed his wand at him, and mut-tered, "Ennervate."
Krum opened his eyes. He looked dazed. When he saw Dumb-ledore,
he tried to sit up, but Dumbledore put a hand on his shoul-der and made
him lie still.
"He attacked me!" Krum muttered, putting a hand up to his head.
"The old madman attacked me! I vos looking around to see vare Potter
had gone and he attacked from behind!"
"Lie still for a moment," Dumbledore said.
The sound of thunderous footfalls reached them, and Hagrid came panting
into sight with Fang at his heels. He was carrying his crossbow.
"Professor Dumbledore!" he said, his eyes widening. "Harry - what the
- ?"
"Hagrid, I need you to fetch Professor Karkaroff," said Dumble-dore.
"His student has been attacked. When you've done that, kindly alert
Professor Moody -"
"No need, Dumbledore," said a wheezy growl. "I'm here."
Moody was limping toward them, leaning on his staff, his wand lit.
"Damn leg," he said furiously. "Would've been here quicker .
. . what's happened? Snape said something about Crouch -"
"Crouch?" said Hagrid blankly.
"Karkaroff, please, Hagrid!" said Dumbledore sharply.
"Oh yeah . .'. right y'are, Professor. . ." said Hagrid, and he turned
and disappeared into the dark trees, Fang trotting after him.
"I don't know where Barty Crouch is," Dumbledore told Moody, "but it
is essential that we find him."
"I'm onto it," growled Moody, and he pulled out his wand and limped
off into the forest.
Neither Dumbledore nor Harry spoke again until they heard the unmistakable
sounds of Hagrid and Fang returning. Karkaroff was hurrying along
behind them. He was wearing his sleek silver furs, and he looked
pale and agitated.
"What is this?" he cried when he saw Krum on the ground and Dumbledore
and Harry beside him. "What's going on?"
"I vos attacked!" said Krum, sitting up now and rubbing his head.
"Mr. Crouch or votever his name -"
"Crouch attacked you? Crouch attacked you? The Triwizard
judge?"
"Igor," Dumbledore began, but Karkaroff had drawn himself up, clutching
his furs around him, looking livid.
"Treachery!" he bellowed, pointing at Dumbledore. "It is a plot!
You and your Ministry of Magic have lured me here under false pretenses,
Dumbledore! This is not an equal competition! First you sneak
Potter into the tournament, though he is underage! Now one of your
Ministry friends attempts to put my champion out of action! I smell
double-dealing and corruption in this whole affair, and you, Dumbledore,
you, with your talk of closer international
wizarding links, of rebuilding old ties, of forgetting old differ-ences
- here's what I think of you!"
Karkaroff spat onto the ground at Dumbledore's feet. In one swift
movement, Hagrid seized the front of Karkaroff's furs, lifted him into
the air, and slammed him against a nearby tree.
"Apologize!" Hagrid snarled as Karkaroff gasped for breath, Hagrid's
massive fist at his throat, his feet dangling in midair.
"Hagrid, no!" Dumbledore shouted, his eyes flashing.
Hagrid removed the hand pinning Karkaroff to the tree, and Karkaroff
slid all the way down the trunk and slumped in a huddle at its roots; a
few twigs and leaves showered down upon his head.
"Kindly escort Harry back up to the castle, Hagrid," said Dum-bledore
sharply.
Breathing heavily, Hagrid gave Karkaroff a glowering look.
"Maybe I'd better stay here. Headmaster. . . ."
"You will take Harry back to school, Hagrid," Dumbledore re-peated
firmly. "Take him right up to Gryffindor Tower. And Harry -
I want you to stay there. Anything you might want to do - any owls
you might want to send - they can wait until morning, do you understand
me?"
"Er - yes," said Harry, staring at him. How had Dumbledore known
that, at that very moment, he had been thinking about sending Pigwidgeon
straight to Sirius, to tell him what had happened?
"I'll leave Fang with yeh. Headmaster," Hagrid said, staring menacingly
at Karkaroff, who was still sprawled at the foot of the tree, tangled in
furs and tree roots. "Stay, Fang. C'mon, Harry."
They marched in silence past the Beauxbatons carriage and up toward
the castle.
"How dare he," Hagrid growled as they strode past the lake. "How
dare he accuse Dumbledore. Like Dumbledore'd do anythin' like that.
Like Dumbledore wanted you in the tournament in the firs' place.
Worried! I dunno when I seen Dumbledore more wor-ried than he's bin
lately. An' you!" Hagrid suddenly said angrily to Harry, who
looked up at him, taken aback. "What were yeh doin', wanderin' off
with ruddy Krum? He's from Durmstrang, Harry! Coulda jinxed yeh right
there, couldn he? Hasn' Moody taught yeh nothin'? 'Magine lettin
him lure yeh off on yer own -"
"Krum's all right!" said Harry as they climbed the steps into
the entrance hall. "He wasn't trying to jinx me, he just wanted to
talk about Hermione -"
"I'll be havin' a few words with her, an' all," said Hagrid grimly,
stomping up the stairs. "The less you lot 'ave ter do with these for-eigners,
the happier yeh'll be. Yeh can trust any of 'em."
"You were getting on all right with Madame Maxime," Harry said, annoyed.
"Don' you talk ter me abou' her!" said Hagrid, and he looked
quite frightening for a moment. "I've got her number now! Tryin'
ter get back in me good books, tryin' ter get me ter tell her what's comin
in the third task. Ha! You can' trust any of'em!"
Hagrid was in such a bad mood, Harry was quite glad to say good-bye
to him in front of the Fat Lady. He clambered through the portrait
hole into the common room and hurried straight for the corner where Ron
and Hermione were sitting, to tell them what had happened.
CHAPTER TWENTY-NINE
THE DREAM
It comes down to this," said Hermione, rubbing her forehead. "Either
Mr. Crouch attacked Viktor, or somebody else at-tacked both of them when
Viktor wasn't looking."
"It must've been Crouch," said Ron at once. "That's why he was gone
when Harry and Dumbledore got there. He'd done a runner."
"I don't think so," said Harry, shaking his head. "He seemed
really weak - I don't reckon he was up to Disapparating or any-thing."
"You cant Disapparate on the Hogwarts grounds, haven't I told you enough
times?" said Hermione.
"Okay. . . hows this for a theory," said Ron excitedly. "Krum
attacked Crouch - no, wait for it - and then Stunned himself!"
"And Mr. Crouch evaporated, did he?" said Hermione coldly.
"Oh yeah . . ."
It was daybreak. Harry, Ron, and Hermione had crept out of their dormitories
very early and hurried up to the Owlery together to send a note to Sirius.
Now they were standing looking out at the misty grounds. All three
of them were puffy-eyed and pale because they had been talking late into
the night about Mr. Crouch.
"Just go through it again, Harry," said Hermione. "What did Mr.
Crouch actually say?"
"I've told you, he wasn't making much sense," said Harry. "He
said he wanted to warn Dumbledore about something. He defi-nitely
mentioned Bertha Jorkins, and he seemed to think she was dead. He
kept saying stuff was his fault. . . . He mentioned his son."
"Well, that was his fault," said Hermione testily.
"He was out of his mind," said Harry. "Half the time he seemed
to think his wife and son were still alive, and he kept talking to Percy
about work and giving him instructions."
"And . . . remind me what he said about You-Know-Who?" said Ron tentatively.
"I've told you," Harry repeated dully. "He said he's getting
stronger."
There was a pause. Then Ron said in a falsely confident voice,
"But he was out of his mind, like you said, so half of it was proba-bly
just raving. ..."
"He was sanest when he was trying to talk about Voldemort," said Harry,
and Ron winced at the sound of the name. "He was having real trouble
stringing two words together, but that was when he seemed to know where
he was, and know what he wanted to do. He just kept saying he had
to see Dumbledore."
Harry turned away from the window and stared up into the rafters.
The many perches were half-empty; every now and then, another owl would
swoop in through one of the windows, return-ing from its night's hunting
with a mouse in its beak.
"If Snape hadn't held me up," Harry said bitterly, "we might've got
there in time. 'The headmaster is busy. Potter . . . what's this
rubbish, Potter?' Why couldn't he have just got out of the way?"
"Maybe he didn't want you to get there!" said Ron quickly. "Maybe
- hang on - how fast d'you reckon he could'vve gotten down to the forest?
D'you reckon he could've beaten you and Dumbledore there?"
"Not unless he can turn himself into a bat or something," said Harry.
"Wouldn't put it past him," Ron muttered.
"We need to see Professor Moody," said Hermione. "We need to
find out whether he found Mr. Crouch,"
"If he had the Marauder's Map on him, it would've been easy," said
Harry.
"Unless Crouch was already outside the grounds," said Ron, "because
it only shows up to the boundaries, doesn't -"
"Shh!" said Hermione suddenly.
Somebody was climbing the steps up to the Owlery. Harry could
hear two voices arguing, coming closer and closer.
"- that's blackmail, that is, we could get into a lot of trouble for
that-"
"- we've tried being polite; it's time to play dirty, like him.
He wouldn't like the Ministry of Magic knowing what he did -"
"I'm telling you, if you put that in writing, it's blackmail!"
"Yeah, and you won't be complaining if we get a nice fat payoff, will
you?"
The Owlery door banged open. Fred and George came over the threshold,
then froze at the sight of Harry, Ron, and Hermione.
"What're you doing here?" Ron and Fred said at the same time.
"Sending a letter," said Harry and George in unison.
"What, at this time?" said Hermione and Fred.
Fred grinned.
"Fine - we won't ask you what you're doing, if you don't ask us," he
said.
He was holding a sealed envelope in his hands. Harry glanced
at it, but Fred, whether accidentally or on purpose, shifted his hand so
that the name on it was covered.
"Well, don't let us hold you up," Fred said, making a mock bow and
pointing at the door.
Ron didn't move. "Who're you blackmailing?" he said.
The grin vanished from Fred's face. Harry saw George half glance at
Fred, before smiling at Ron.
"Don't be stupid, I was only joking," he said easily.
"Didn't sound like that," said Ron.
Fred and George looked at each other. Then Fred said abruptly,
"I've told you before, Ron, keep your nose out if you like it the shape
it is. Can't see why you would, but -"
"It's my business if you're blackmailing someone," said Ron.
"George's right, you could end up in serious trouble for that."
"Told you, I was joking," said George. He walked over to Fred,
pulled the letter out of his hands, and began attaching it to the leg of
the nearest barn owl. "You're starting to sound a bit like our dear
older brother, you are, Ron. Carry on like this and you'll be made
a prefect."
"No, I won't!" said Ron hotly.
George carried the barn owl over to the window and it took off.
George turned around and grinned at Ron.
"Well, stop telling people what to do then. See you later."
He and Fred left the Owlery. Harry, Ron, and Hermione stared
at one another.
"You don't think they know something about all this, do you?"
Hermione whispered. "About Crouch and everything?"
"No," said Harry. "If it was something that serious, they'd tell
someone. They'd tell Dumbledore."
Ron, however, was looking uncomfortable.
"What's the matter?" Hermione asked him.
"Well. . ." said Ron slowly, "I dunno if they would. They're
. . . they're obsessed with making money lately, I noticed it when I was
hanging around with them - when - you know -"
"We weren't talking." Harry finished the sentence for him. "Yeah, but
blackmail..."
"It's this joke shop idea they've got," said Ron. "I thought
they were only saying it to annoy Mum, but they really mean it, they want
to start one. They've only got a year left at Hog-warts, they keep
going on about how it's time to think about their future, and Dad can't
help them, and they need gold to get started."
Hermione was looking uncomfortable now.
"Yes, but. . . they wouldn't do anything against the law to get gold."
"Wouldn't they?" said Ron, looking skeptical. "I dunno . . .
they don't exactly mind breaking rules, do they?"
"Yes, but this is the law" said Hermione, looking scared. "This
isn't some silly school rule. . . . They'll get a lot more than detention
for blackmail! Ron. . . maybe you'd better tell Percy. . . ."
"Are you mad?" said Ron. "Tell Percy? He'd probably
do a Crouch and turn them in." He stared at the window through which Fred
and George's owl had departed, then said, "Come on, let's get some breakfast."
"D'you think it's too early to go and see Professor Moody?" Hermione
said as they went down the spiral staircase.
"Yes," said Harry. "He'd probably blast us through the door if
we wake him at the crack of dawn; he'll think we're trying to attack him
while he's asleep. Let's give it till break."
History of Magic had rarely gone so slowly. Harry kept checking
Ron's watch, having finally discarded his own, but Ron's was mov-ing so
slowly he could have sworn it had stopped working too. All three
of them were so tired they could happily have put their heads down on the
desks and slept; even Hermione wasn't taking her usual notes, but was sitting
with her head on her hand, gazing at Professor Binns with her eyes out
of focus.
When the bell finally rang, they hurried out into the corridors toward
the Dark Arts classroom and found Professor Moody leav-ing it. He
looked as tired as they felt. The eyelid of his normal eye was drooping,
giving his face an even more lopsided appearance than usual.
"Professor Moody?" Harry called as they made their way toward
him through the crowd.
"Hello, Potter," growled Moody. His magical eye followed a couple
of passing first years, who sped up, looking nervous; it rolled into the
back of Moody's head and watched them around the corner before he spoke
again.
"Come in here."
He stood back to let them into his empty classroom, limped in after
them, and closed the door.
"Did you find him?" Harry asked without preamble. "Mr.
Crouch?"
"No," said Moody. He moved over to his desk, sat down, stretched
out his wooden leg with a slight groan, and pulled out his hip flask.
"Did you use the map?" Harry said.
"Of course," said Moody, taking a swig from his flask. "Took a leaf
out of your book, Potter. Summoned it from my office into the forest.
He wasn't anywhere on there."
"So he did Disapparate?" said Ron.
"You can't Disapparate on the grounds, Ron!" said Hermione. "There
are other ways he could have disappeared, aren't there, Professor?"
Moody's magical eye quivered as it rested on Hermione. "You're another
one who might think about a career as an Auror," he told her. "Mind
works the right way. Granger."
Hermione flushed pink with pleasure.
"Well, he wasn't invisible," said Harry. "The map shows invisi-ble
people. He must've left the grounds, then."
"But under his own steam?" said Hermione eagerly, "or because
someone made him?"
"Yeah, someone could've - could've pulled him onto a broom and flown
off with him, couldn't they?" said Ron quickly, looking hopefully
at Moody as if he too wanted to be told he had the mak-ings of an Auror.
"We can't rule out kidnap," growled Moody.
"So," said Ron, "d'you reckon he's somewhere in Hogsmeade?"
"Could be anywhere," said Moody, shaking his head. "Only thing
we know for sure is that he's not here."
He yawned widely, so that his scars stretched, and his lopsided mouth
revealed a number of missing teeth. Then he said, "Now, Dumbledore's
told me you three fancy yourselves as investigators, but there's nothing
you can do for Crouch. The Ministry'll be look-ing for him now, Dumbledore's
notified them. Potter, you just keep your mind on the third task."
"What?" said Harry. "Oh yeah . . ."
He hadn't given the maze a single thought since he'd left it with Krum
the previous night.
"Should be right up your street, this one," said Moody, looking up
at Harry and scratching his scarred and stubbly chin. "From what
Dumbledore's said, you've managed to get through stuff like this plenty
of times. Broke your way through a series of obstacles guarding the
Sorcerers Stone in your first year, didn't you?"
"We helped," Ron said quickly. "Me and Hermione helped."
Moody grinned.
"Well, help him practice for this one, and I'll be very surprised if
he doesn't win," said Moody. "In the meantime .. . constant vigi-lance,
Potter. Constant vigilance." He took another long draw from
his hip flask, and his magical eye swiveled onto the window. The
topmost sail of the Durmstrang ship was visible through it.
"You two," counseled Moody, his normal eye on Ron and Hermione, "you
stick close to Potter, all right? I'm keeping an eye on things, but all
the same . . . you can never have too many eyes out."
Sirius sent their owl back the very next morning. It fluttered down beside Harry at the same moment that a tawny owl landed in front of Hermione, clutching a copy of the Daily Prophet in its beak. She took the newspaper, scanned the first few pages, said, "Ha! She hasn't got wind of Crouch!" then joined Ron and Harry in reading what Sirius had to say on the mysterious events of the night before last.
Harry - what do you think you are playing at, walking off into the forest
with Viktor Krum? I want you to swear, by return owl, that you are
not going to go walking with anyone else at night. There is somebody
highly dangerous at Hogwarts. It is clear to me that they wanted
to stop Crouch from seeing Dumbledore and you were probably feet away from
them in the dark. You could have been killed.
Your name didn't get into the Goblet of Fire by accident. If
someone's trying to attack you, they're on their last chance. Stay
close to Ron and Hermione, do not leave Gryffindor Tower after hours, and
arm yourself for the third task. Practice Stun-ning and Disarming.
A few hexes wouldn't go amiss either. There's nothing you can do
about Crouch. Keep your head down and look after yourself.
I'm waiting for your letter giving me your word you won't stray out-of-bounds
again.
Sirius
"Who's he, to lecture me about being out-of-bounds?" said Harry
in mild indignation as he folded up Sirius's letter and put it inside his
robes. "After all the stuff he did at school!"
"He's worried about you!" said Hermione sharply. "Just
like Moody and Hagrid! So listen to them!"
"No one's tried to attack me all year," said Harry. "No one's done
anything to me at
all-"
"Except put your name in the Goblet of Fire," said Hermione.
"And they must've done that for a reason. Harry. Snuffles is
right. Maybe they've been biding their time. Maybe this is
the task they're going to get you."
"Look," said Harry impatiently, "let's say Sirius is right, and someone
Stunned Krum to kidnap Crouch. Well, they would've been in the trees
near us, wouldn't they? But they waited till I was out of the way
until they acted, didn't they? So it doesn't look like I'm their
target, does it?"
"They couldn't have made it look like an accident if they'd mur-dered
you in the forest!" said Hermione. "But if you die during a task-"
"They didn't care about attacking Krum, did they?" said Harry.
"Why didn't they just polish me off at the same time? They could've
made it look like Krum and I had a duel or something."
"Harry, I don't understand it either," said Hermione desperately.
"I just know there are a lot of odd things going on, and I don't like it.
... Moody's right - Sirius is right - you've got to get in train-ing for
the third task, straight away. And you make sure you write back to
Sirius and promise him you're not going to go sneaking off alone again."
The Hogwarts grounds never looked more inviting than when Harry had
to stay indoors. For the next few days he spent all of his free time either
in the library with Hermione and Ron, looking up hexes, or else in empty
classrooms, which they sneaked into to practice. Harry was concentrating
on the Stunning Spell, which he had never used before. The trouble
was that practicing it involved certain sacrifices on Ron's and Hermione's
part.
"Can't we kidnap Mrs. Norris?" Ron suggested on Monday lunchtime as
he lay flat on his back in the middle of their Charms classroom, having
just been Stunned and reawoken by Harry for the fifth time in a row.
"Let's Stun her for a bit. Or you could use Dobby, Harry, I bet he'd
do anything to help you. I'm not com-plaining or anything" - he got
gingerly to his feet, rubbing his backside - "but I'm aching all over.
..."
"Well, you keep missing the cushions, don't you!" said Hermi-one
impatiently, rearranging the pile of cushions they had used for the Banishing
Spell, which Flitwick had left in a cabinet. "Just try and fall backward!"
"Once you're Stunned, you can't aim too well, Hermione! "said Ron angrily.
"Why don't you take a turn?"
"Well, I think Harry's got it now, anyway," said Hermione hastily.
"And we don't have to worry about Disarming, because he's been able to
do that for ages. ... I think we ought to start on some of these hexes
this evening."
She looked down the list they had made in the library.
"I like the look of this one," she said, "this Impediment Curse.
Should slow down anything that's trying to attack you. Harry.
We'll start with that one."
The bell rang. They hastily shoved the cushions back into Flitwicks
cupboard and slipped out of the classroom.
"See you at dinner!" said Hermione, and she set off for Arith-mancy,
while Harry and Ron headed toward North Tower, and Divination. Broad
strips of dazzling gold sunlight tell across the corridor from the high
windows. The sky outside was so brightly blue it looked as though
it had been enameled.
"It's going to be boiling in Trelawney's room, she never puts out that
fire," said Ron as they started up the staircase toward the silver ladder
and the trapdoor.
He was quite right. The dimly lit room was swelteringly hot.
The fumes from the perfumed fire were heavier than ever. Harrys head
swam as he made his way over to one of the curtained win-dows. While
Professor Trelawney was looking the other way, disen-tangling her shawl
from a lamp, he opened it an inch or so and settled back in his chintz
armchair, so that a soft breeze played across his face. It was extremely
comfortable.
"My dears," said Professor Trelawney, sitting down in her winged armchair
in front of the class and peering around at them all with her strangely
enlarged eyes, "we have almost finished our work on planetary divination.
Today, however, will be an excellent opportunity to examine the effects
of Mars, for he is placed most interestingly at the present time.
If you will all look this way, I will dim the lights. . . ."
She waved her wand and the lamps went out. The fire was the only
source of light now. Professor Trelawney bent down and lifted, from
under her chair, a miniature model of the solar system, contained within
a glass dome. It was a beautiful thing; each of the moons glimmered
in place around the nine planets and the fiery sun, all of them hanging
in thin air beneath the glass. Harry watched lazily as Professor
Trelawney began to point out the fascinating angle Mars was making to Neptune.
The heavily perfumed fumes washed over him, and the breeze from the window
played across his face. He could hear an insect humming gently some-where
behind the curtain. His eyelids began to droop. . . .
He was riding on the back of an eagle owl, soaring through the clear
blue sky toward an old, ivy-covered house set high on a hill-side.
Lower and lower they flew, the wind blowing pleasantly in Harry's face,
until they reached a dark and broken window in the upper story of the house
and entered. Now they were flying along a gloomy passageway, to a
room at the very end . . . through the door they went, into a dark room
whose windows were boarded up....
Harry had left the owl's back... he was watching, now, as it fluttered
across the room, into a chair with its back to him. . . . There were two
dark shapes on the floor beside the chair . . . both of them were stirring.
. . .
One was a huge snake . . . the other was a man ... a short, bald-ing
man, a man with watery eyes and a pointed nose ... he was wheezing and
sobbing on the hearth rug. . . .
"You are in luck, Wormtail," said a cold, high-pitched voice from the
depths of the chair in which the owl had landed. "You are very fortunate
indeed. Your blunder has not ruined everything. He is dead."
"My Lord!" gasped the man on the floor. "My Lord, I am ... I
am so pleased . . . and so sorry. ..."
"Nagini," said the cold voice, "you are out of luck. I will not
be feeding Wormtail to you, after all... but never mind, never mind . .
. there is still Harry Potter. ..."
The snake hissed. Harry could see its tongue fluttering.
"Now, Wormtail," said the cold voice, "perhaps one more little reminder
why I will not tolerate another blunder from you. ..."
"My Lord ... no ... I beg you . . ."
The tip of a wand emerged from around the back of the chair.
It was pointing at Wormtail.
"Crucio!" said the cold voice.
Wormtail screamed, screamed as though every nerve in his body were
on fire, the screaming filled Harry's ears as the scar on his fore-head
seared with pain; he was yelling too...Voldemort would hear him, would know
he was there. . . .
"Harry! Harry!"
Harry opened his eyes. He was lying on the floor of Professor
Trelawney's room with his hands over his face. His scar was still
burning so badly that his eyes were watering. The pain had been real.
The whole class was standing around him, and Ron was kneel-ing next to
him, looking terrified.
"You all right?" he said.
"Of course he isn't!" said Professor Trelawney, looking thor-oughly
excited. Her great eyes loomed over Harry, gazing at him. "What
was it. Potter? A premonition? An apparition? What did you
see?"
"Nothing," Harry lied. He sat up. He could feel himself
shaking. He couldn't stop himself from looking around, into the shadows
behind him; Voldemorts voice had sounded so close. . . .
"You were clutching your scar!" said Professor Trelawney.
"You were rolling on the floor, clutching your scar! Come now.
Potter, I have experience in these matters!"
Harry looked up at her.
"I need to go to the hospital wing, I think," he said. "Bad headache."
"My dear, you were undoubtedly stimulated by the extraordi-nary clairvoyant
vibrations of my room!" said Professor Trelawney. "If you leave
now, you may lose the opportunity to see further than you have ever -"
"I don't want to see anything except a headache cure," said Harry.
He stood up. The class backed away. They all looked unnerved.
"See you later," Harry muttered to Ron, and he picked up his bag and
headed for the trapdoor, ignoring Professor Trelawney, who was wearing
an expression of great frustration, as though she had just been denied
a real treat.
When Harry reached the bottom of her stepladder, however, he did not
set off for the hospital wing. He had no intention whatsoever of
going there. Sirius had told him what to do if his scar hurt him
again, and Harry was going to follow his advice: He was going straight
to Dumbledore's office. He marched down the corridors, thinking about
what he had seen in the dream . . . it had been as vivid as the one that
had awoken him on Privet Drive. . . . He ran over the details in his mind,
trying to make sure he could remember them. . . . He had heard Voldemort
accusing Wormtail of making a blunder . . . but the owl had brought good
news, the blunder had been repaired, somebody was dead ... so Wormtail
was not going to be fed to the snake . . . he, Harry, was going to be fed
to it instead. . . .
Harry had walked right past the stone gargoyle guarding the en-trance
to Dumbledores office without noticing. He blinked, looked around,
realized what he had done, and retraced his steps, stopping in front of
it. Then he remembered that he didn't know the password.
"Sherbet lemon?" he tried tentatively.
The gargoyle did not move.
"Okay," said Harry, staring at it, "Pear Drop. Er - Licorice
Wand. Fizzing Whizbee. Drooble's Best Blowing Gum. Bertie Bott's
Every Flavor Beans ... oh no, he doesn't like them, does he?... oh just
open, can't you?" he said angrily. "I really need to see him, its
urgent!"
The gargoyle remained immovable.
Harry kicked it, achieving nothing but an excruciating pain in his
big toe.
"Chocolate Frog!" he yelled angrily, standing on one leg. "Sugar
Quill! Cockroach Cluster!"
The gargoyle sprang to life and jumped aside. Harry blinked.
"Cockroach Cluster?" he said, amazed. "I was only joking. ..."
He hurried through the gap in the walls and stepped onto the foot of
a spiral stone staircase, which moved slowly upward as the doors closed
behind him, taking him up to a polished oak door with a brass door knocker.
He could hear voices from inside the office. He stepped off the moving
staircase and hesitated, listening.
"Dumbledore, I'm afraid I don't see the connection, don't see it at
all!" It was the voice of the Minister of Magic, Cornelius Fudge.
"Ludo says Berthas perfectly capable of getting herself lost. I agree
we would have expected to have found her by now, but all the same, we've
no evidence of foul play, Dumbledore, none at all. As for her disappearance
being linked with Barty Crouch's!"
"And what do you thinks happened to Barty Crouch, Minister?"
said Moody's growling voice.
"I see two possibilities, Alastor," said Fudge. "Either Crouch
has finally cracked - more than likely, I'm sure you'll agree, given his
personal history - lost his mind, and gone wandering off some-where -"
"He wandered extremely quickly, if that is the case, Cornelius," said
Dumbledore calmly.
"Or else - well..." Fudge sounded embarrassed. "Well, I'll reserve
judgment until after I've seen the place where he was found, but you say
it was just past the Beauxbatons carriage? Dumbledore, you know what that
woman is?"
"I consider her to be a very able headmistress - and an excel-lent
dancer," said Dumbledore quietly.
"Dumbledore, come!" said Fudge angrily. "Don't you think
you might be prejudiced in her favor because of Hagrid? They don't
all turn out harmless - if, indeed, you can call Hagrid harmless, with
that monster fixation he's got -"
"I no more suspect Madame Maxime than Hagrid," said Dum-bledore, just
as calmly. "I think it possible that it is you who are prejudiced,
Cornelius."
"Can we wrap up this discussion?" growled Moody.
"Yes, yes, let's go down to the grounds, then," said Fudge impa-tiently.
"No, it's not that," said Moody, "it's just that Potter wants a word
with you, Dumbledore. He's just outside the door."
CHAPTER THIRTY
THE PENSIEVE
The door of the office opened.
"Hello, Potter," said Moody. "Come in, then."
Harry walked inside. He had been inside Dumbledore's office once
before; it was a very beautiful, circular room, lined with pic-tures of
previous headmasters and headmistresses of Hogwarts, all of whom were fast
asleep, their chests rising and falling gently.
Cornelius Fudge was standing beside Dumbledore's desk, wear-ing his
usual pinstriped cloak and holding his lime-green bowler hat.
"Harry!" said Fudge jovially, moving forward. "How are
you?"
"Fine," Harry lied.
"We were just talking about the night when Mr. Crouch turned up on
the grounds," said Fudge. "It was you who found him, was it not?"
"Yes," said Harry. Then, feeling it was pointless to pretend
that he hadn't overheard what they had been saying, he added, "I
didn't see Madame Maxime anywhere, though, and she'd have a job hid-ing,
wouldn't she?"
Dumbledore smiled at Harry behind Fudge's back, his eyes twinkling.
"Yes, well," said Fudge, looking embarrassed, "we're about to go for
a short walk on the grounds, Harry, if you'll excuse us ... per-haps if
you just go back to your class -"
"I wanted to talk to you. Professor," Harry said quickly, looking at
Dumbledore, who gave him a swift, searching look.
"Wait here for me, Harry," he said. "Our examination of the grounds
will not take long."
They trooped out in silence past him and closed the door. After
a minute or so, Harry heard the clunks of Moody's wooden leg growing fainter
in the corridor below. He looked around.
"Hello, Fawkes," he said.
Fawkes, Professor Dumbledore's phoenix, was standing on his golden
perch beside the door. The size of a swan, with magnificent scarlet-and-gold
plumage, he swished his long tail and blinked benignly at Harry.
Harry sat down in a chair in front of Dumbledore's desk. For
several minutes, he sat and watched the old headmasters and head-mistresses
snoozing in their frames, thinking about what he had just heard, and running
his fingers over his scar. It had stopped hurting now.
He felt much calmer, somehow, now that he was in Dumble-dore's office,
knowing he would shortly be telling him about the dream. Harry looked
up at the walls behind the desk. The patched and ragged Sorting Hat
was standing on a shelf. A glass case next to it held a magnificent
silver sword with large rubies set into the hilt, which Harry recognized
as the one he himself had pulled out of the Sorting Hat in his second year.
The sword had once belonged to Godric Gryffindor, founder of Harry's House.
He was gazing at it, remembering how it had come to his aid when he had
thought all hope was lost, when he noticed a patch of silvery light, dancing
and shimmering on the glass case. He looked around for the source
of the light and saw a sliver of silver-white shining brightly from within
a black cabinet behind him, whose door had not been closed properly.
Harry hesitated, glanced at Fawkes, then got up, walked across the office,
and pulled open the cabinet door.
A shallow stone basin lay there, with odd carvings around the edge:
runes and symbols that Harry did not recognize. The silvery light
was coming from the basin's contents, which were like noth-ing Harry had
ever seen before. He could not tell whether the sub-stance was liquid
or gas. It was a bright, whitish silver, and it was moving ceaselessly;
the surface of it became ruffled like water be-neath wind, and then, like
clouds, separated and swirled smoothly. It looked like light made liquid
- or like wind made solid - Harry couldn't mmake up his mind.
He wanted to touch it, to find out what it felt like, but nearly four
years' experience of the magical world told him that sticking his hand
into a bowl full of some unknown substance was a very stupid thing to do.
He therefore pulled his wand out of the inside of his robes, cast a nervous
look around the office, looked back at the contents of the basin, and prodded
them.
The surface of the silvery stuff inside the basin began to swirl very
fast.
Harry bent closer, his head right inside the cabinet. The silvery
substance had become transparent; it looked like glass. He looked
down into it expecting to see the stone bottom of the basin - and saw instead
an enormous room below the surface of the mysterious substance, a room
into which he seemed to be looking through a circular window in the ceiling.
The room was dimly lit; he thought it might even be under-ground, for
there were no windows, merely torches in brackets such as the ones that
illuminated the walls of Hogwarts. Lowering his face so that his nose was
a mere inch away from the glassy sub-stance, Harry saw that rows and rows
of witches and wizards were seated around every wall on what seemed to
be benches rising in levels. An empty chair stood in the very center
of the room. There was something about the chair that gave Harry
an ominous feeling. Chains encircled the arms of it, as though its
occupants were usu-ally tied to it.
Where was this place? It surely wasn't Hogwarts; he had never
seen a room like that here in the castle. Moreover, the crowd in
the mysterious room at the bottom of the basin was comprised of adults,
and Harry knew there were not nearly that many teachers at Hogwarts. They
seemed, he thought, to be waiting for something; even though he could only
see the tops of their hats, all of their faces seemed to be pointing in
one direction, and none of them were talking to one another.
The basin being circular, and the room he was observing square, Harry
could not make out what was going on in the corners of it. He leaned
even closer, tilting his head, trying to see...
The tip of his nose touched the strange substance into which he was
staring.
Dumbledore's office gave an almighty lurch - Harry was thrown forward
and pitched headfirst into the substance inside the basin -
But his head did not hit the stone bottom. He was falling through
something icy-cold and black; it was like being sucked into a dark whirlpool
-
And suddenly, Harry found himself sitting on a bench at the end of
the room inside the basin, a bench raised high above the others.
He looked up at the high stone ceiling, expecting to see the circu-lar
window through which he had just been staring, but there was nothing there
but dark, solid stone.
Breathing hard and fast. Harry looked around him. Not one
of the witches and wizards in the room (and there were at least two hundred
of them) was looking at him. Not one of them seemed to have noticed
that a fourteen-year-old boy had just dropped from the ceiling into their
midst. Harry turned to the wizard next to him on the bench and uttered
a loud cry of surprise that reverberated around the silent room.
He was sitting right next to Albus Dumbledore.
"Professor!" Harry said in a kind of strangled whisper. "I'm
sorry - I didn't mean to - I was just looking at that basin in your cabinet
- I - where are we?"
But Dumbledore didn't move or speak. He ignored Harry com-pletely.
Like every other wizard on the benches, he was staring into the far corner
of the room, where there was a door.
Harry gazed, nonplussed, at Dumbledore, then around at the silently
watchful crowd, then back at Dumbledore. And then it dawned on him.
. . .
Once before. Harry had found himself somewhere that nobody could see
or hear him. That time, he had fallen through a page in an enchanted diary,
right into somebody else's memory . . . and unless he was very much mistaken,
something of the sort had hap-pened again...
Harry raised his right hand, hesitated, and then waved it ener-getically
in from of Dumbledore's face. Dumbledore did not blink, look around
at Harry, or indeed move at all. And that, in Harry's opinion, settled
the matter. Dumbledore wouldn't ignore him like that. He was
inside a memory, and this was not the present-day Dumbledore. Yet
it couldn't be that long ago . . . the Dumbledore sitting next to him now
was silver-haired, just like the present-day Dumbledore. But what
was this place? What were all these wizards waiting for?
Harry looked around more carefully. The room, as he had sus-pected
when observing it from above, was almost certainly under-ground - more
of a dungeon than a room, he thought. There was a bleak and forbidding
air about the place; there were no pictures on the walls, no decorations
at all; just these serried rows of benches, rising in levels all around
the room, all positioned so that they had a clear view of that chair with
the chains on its arms.
Before Harry could reach any conclusions about the place in which they
were, he heard footsteps. The door in the corner of the dungeon opened
and three people entered - or at least one man, flanked by two dementors.
Harry's insides went cold. The dementors - tall, hooded crea-tures
whose faces were concealed - were gliding slowly toward the chair in the
center of the room, each grasping one of the man's arms with their dead
and rotten-looking hands. The man between them looked as though he
was about to faint, and Harry couldn't blame him ... he knew the dementors
could not touch him inside a memory, but he remembered their power only
too well. The watching crowd recoiled slightly as the dementors placed
the man in the chained chair and glided back out of the room. The
door swung shut behind them.
Harry looked down at the man now sitting in the chair and saw that
it was Karkaroff.
Unlike Dumbledore, Karkaroff looked much younger; his hair and goatee
were black. He was not dressed in sleek furs, but in thin and ragged robes.
He was shaking. Even as Harry watched, the chains on the arms of
the chair glowed suddenly gold and snaked their way up Karkaroff's arms,
binding him there.
"Igor Karkaroff," said a curt voice to Harry's left. Harry looked
around and saw Mr. Crouch standing up in the middle of the bench beside
him. Crouch's hair was dark, his face was much less lined, he looked
fit and alert. "You have been brought from Azka-ban to present evidence
to the Ministry of Magic. You have given us to understand that you
have important information for us."
Karkaroff straightened himself as best he could, tightly bound to the
chair.
"I have, sir," he said, and although his voice was very scared, Harry
could still hear the familiar unctuous note in it. "I wish to be
of use to the Ministry. I wish to help. I - I know that the Ministry is
trying to - to round up the last of the Dark Lords supporters. I
am eager to assist in any way I can. ..."
There was a murmur around the benches. Some of the wizards and
witches were surveying Karkaroff with interest, others with pronounced
mistrust. Then Harry heard, quite distinctly, from Dumbledores other
side, a familiar, growling voice saying, "Filth."
Harry leaned forward so that he could see past Dumbledore. Mad-Eye
Moody was sitting there - except that there was a very noticeable difference
in his appearance. He did not have his magi-cal eye, but two normal
ones. Both were looking down upon Karkaroff, and both were narrowed
in intense dislike.
"Crouch is going to let him out," Moody breathed quietly to Dumbledore.
"He's done a deal with him. Took me six months to track him down,
and Crouch is going to let him go if he's got enough new names. Let's
hear his information, I say, and throw him straight back to the dementors."
Dumbledore made a small noise of dissent through his long, crooked
nose.
"Ah, I was forgetting . . . you don't like the dementors, do you, Albus?"
said Moody with a sardonic smile.
"No," said Dumbledore calmly, "I'm afraid I don't. I have long
felt the Ministry is wrong to ally itself with such creatures."
"But for filth like this . . ." Moody said softly.
"You say you have names for us, Karkaroff," said Mr. Crouch. "Let us
hear them, please."
"You must understand," said Karkaroff hurriedly, "that He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named
operated always in the greatest secrecy. . . . He preferred that we - I
mean to say, his supporters - and I re-gret now, very deeply, that I ever
counted myself among them -"
"Get on with it," sneered Moody.
"- we never knew the names of every one of our fellows - He alone knew
exactly who we all were -"
"Which was a wise move, wasn't it, as it prevented someone like you,
Karkaroff, from turning all of them in," muttered Moody.
"Yet you say you have some names for us?" said Mr. Crouch.
"I - I do," said Karkaroff breathlessly. "And these were impor-tant
supporters, mark you. People I saw with my own eyes doing his bidding.
I give this information as a sign that I fully and totally re-nounce him,
and am filled with a remorse so deep I can barely -"
"These names are?" said Mr. Crouch sharply.
Karkaroff drew a deep breath.
"There was Antonin Dolohov," he said. "I - I saw him torture
countless Muggles and - and non-supporters of the Dark Lord."
"And helped him do it," murmured Moody.
"We have already apprehended Dolohov," said Crouch. "He was caught
shortly after yourself."
"Indeed?" said Karkaroff, his eyes widening. "I - I am de-lighted
to hear it!"
But he didn't look it. Harry could tell that this news had come
as a real blow to him. One of his names was worthless.
"Any others?" said Crouch coldly.
"Why, yes ... there was Rosier," said Karkaroff hurriedly. "Evan Rosier."
"Rosier is dead," said Crouch. "He was caught shortly after you
were too. He preferred to fight rather than come quietly and was
killed in the struggle."
"Took a bit of me with him, though," whispered Moody to Harry's right.
Harry looked around at him once more, and saw him indicating the large
chunk out of his nose to Dumbledore.
"No - no more than Rosier deserved!" said Karkaroff, a real note
of panic in his voice now. Harry could see that he was starting to worry
that none of his information would be of any use to the Ministry. Karkaroff's
eyes darted toward the door in the corner, be-hind which the dementors
undoubtedly still stood, waiting.
"Any more?" said Crouch.
"Yes!" said Karkaroff. "There was Travers - he helped murder
the McKinnons! Mulciber - he specialized in the Imperius Curse, forced
countless people to do horrific things! Rookwood, who was a spy, and passed
He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named useful informa-tion from inside the Ministry itself!"
Harry could tell that, this time, Karkaroff had struck gold. The watching
crowd was all murmuring together.
"Rookwood?" said Mr. Crouch, nodding to a witch sitting in front of
him, who began scribbling upon her piece of parchment. "Augustus
Rookwood of the Department of Mysteries?"
"The very same," said Karkaroff eagerly. "I believe he used a
net-work of well-placed wizards, both inside the Ministry and out, to collect
information -"
"But Travers and Mulciber we have," said Mr. Crouch. "Very well,
Karkaroff, if that is all, you will be returned to Azkaban while we decide
-"
"Not yet!" cried Karkaroff, looking quite desperate. "Wait, I have
more!"
Harry could see him sweating in the torchlight, his white skin contrasting
strongly with the black of his hair and beard.
"Snape!" he shouted. "Severus Snape!"
"Snape has been cleared by this council," said Crouch disdain-fully.
"He has been vouched for by Albus Dumbledore."
"No!" shouted Karkaroff, straining at the chains that bound him
to the chair. "I assure you! Severus Snape is a Death Eater!"
Dumbledore had gotten to his feet.
"I have given evidence already on this matter," he said calmly.
"Severus Snape was indeed a Death Eater. However, he rejoined our side
before Lord Voldemort's downfall and turned spy for us, at great personal
risk. He is now no more a Death Eater than I am."
Harry turned to look at Mad-Eye Moody. He was wearing a look of deep
skepticism behind Dumbledore's back.
"Very well, Karkaroff," Crouch said coldly, "you have been of as-sistance.
I shall review your case. You will return to Azkaban in the meantime.
..."
Mr. Crouch's voice faded. Harry looked around; the dungeon was
dissolving as though it were made of smoke; everything was fading; he could
see only his own body - all else was swirling darkness. . . .
And then, the dungeon returned. Harry was sitting in a different
seat, still on the highest bench, but now to the left side of Mr. Crouch.
The atmosphere seemed quite different: relaxed, even cheerful. The
witches and wizards all around the walls were talking to one another, almost
as though they were at some sort of sporting event. Harry noticed
a witch halfway up the rows of benches op-posite. She had short blonde
hair, was wearing magenta robes, and was sucking the end of an acid-green
quill. It was, unmistakably, a younger Rita Skeeter. Harry
looked around; Dumbledore was sit-ting beside him again, wearing different
robes. Mr. Crouch looked more tired and somehow fiercer, gaunter.
. . . Harry understood. It was a different memory, a different day ...
a different trial.
The door in the corner opened, and Ludo Bagman walked into the room.
This was not, however, a Ludo Bagman gone to seed, but a Ludo Bagman
who was clearly at the height of his Quidditch-playing fit-ness.
His nose wasn't broken now; he was tall and lean and muscu-lar. Bagman
looked nervous as he sat down in the chained chair, but it did not bind
him there as it had bound Karkaroff, and Bag-man, perhaps taking heart
from this, glanced around at the watch-ing crowd, waved at a couple of
them, and managed a small smile.
"Ludo Bagman, you have been brought here in front of the Council of
Magical Law to answer charges relating to the activities of the Death Eaters,"
said Mr. Crouch. "We have heard the evidence against you, and are
about to reach our verdict. Do you have any-thing to add to your
testimony before we pronounce judgment?"
Harry couldn't believe his ears. Ludo Bagman, a Death Eater?
"Only," said Bagman, smiling awkwardly, "well - I know I've been a
bit of an idiot -"
One or two wizards and witches in the surrounding seats smiled indulgently.
Mr. Crouch did not appear to share their feelings. He was staring
down at Ludo Bagman with an expression of the ut-most severity and dislike.
"You never spoke a truer word, boy," someone muttered dryly to Dumbledore
behind Harry. He looked around and saw Moody sitting there again.
"If I didn't know he'd always been dim, I'd have said some of those Bludgers
had permanently affected his brain. ..."
"Ludovic Bagman, you were caught passing information to Lord Voldemort's
supporters," said Mr. Crouch. "For this, I suggest a term of imprisonment
in Azkaban lasting no less than -"
But there was an angry outcry from the surrounding benches. Several
of the witches and wizards around the walls stood up, shak-ing their heads,
and even their fists, at Mr. Crouch.
"But I've told you, I had no idea!" Bagman called earnestly over
the crowd's babble, his round blue eyes widening. "None at all! Old
Rookwood was a friend of my dad's . . . never crossed my mind he was in
with You-Know-Who! I thought I was collecting informa-tion for our
side! And Rookwood kept talking about getting me a job in the Ministry
later on ... once my Quidditch days are over, you know ... I mean, I can't
keep getting hit by Bludgers for the rest of my life, can I?"
There were titters from the crowd.
"It will be put to the vote," said Mr. Crouch coldly. He turned
to the right-hand side of the dungeon. "The jury will please raise
their hands . . . those in favor of imprisonment..."
Harry looked toward the right-hand side of the dungeon. Not one
person raised their hand. Many of the witches and wizards around
the walls began to clap. One of the witches on the jury stood up.
"Yes?" barked Crouch.
"We'd just like to congratulate Mr. Bagman on his splendid per-formance
for England in the Quidditch match against Turkey last Saturday," the witch
said breathlessly.
Mr. Crouch looked furious. The dungeon was ringing with ap-plause
now. Bagman got to his feet and bowed, beaming.
"Despicable," Mr. Crouch spat at Dumbledore, sitting down as Bagman
walked out of the dungeon. "Rookwood get him a job in-deed. . . .
The day Ludo Bagman joins us will be a sad day indeed for the Ministry.
. . ."
And the dungeon dissolved again. When it had returned, Harry
looked around. He and Dumbledore were still sitting beside Mr. Crouch,
but the atmosphere could not have been more different. There was
total silence, broken only by the dry sobs of a frail, wispy-looking witch
in the seat next to Mr. Crouch. She was clutching a handkerchief
to her mouth with trembling hands.
Harry looked up at Crouch and saw that he looked gaunter and grayer
than ever before. A nerve was twitching in his temple.
"Bring them in," he said, and his voice echoed through the silent dungeon.
The door in the corner opened yet again. Six dementors entered
this time, flanking a group of four people. Harry saw the people
in the crowd turn to look up at Mr. Crouch. A few of them whispered
to one another.
The dementors placed each of the four people in the four chairs with
chained arms that now stood on the dungeon floor. There was a thickset
man who stared blankly up at Crouch; a thinner and more nervous-looking
man, whose eyes were darting around the crowd; a woman with thick, shining
dark hair and heavily hooded eyes, who was sitting in the chained chair
as though it were a throne; and a boy in his late teens, who looked nothing
short of petrified. He was shivering, his straw-colored hair all
over his face, his freckled skin milk-white. The wispy little witch
beside Crouch began to rock backward and forward in her seat, whimpering
into her handkerchief.
Crouch stood up. He looked down upon the four in front of him,
and there was pure hatred in his face.
"You have been brought here before the Council of Magical Law," he
said clearly, "so that we may pass judgment on you, for a crime so heinous
-"
"Father," said the boy with the straw-colored hair. "Father. . .please
. . .
"- that we have rarely heard the like of it within this court," said
Crouch, speaking more loudly, drowning out his son's voice.
"We have heard the evidence against you. The four of you stand
accused of capturing an Auror - Frank Longbottom - and subjecting him to
the Cruciatus Curse, believing him to have knowledge of the present whereabouts
of your exiled master, He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named -"
"Father, I didn't!" shrieked the boy in chains below. "I
didn't, I swear it. Father, don't send me back to the dementors -"
"You are further accused," bellowed Mr. Crouch, "of using the Cruciatus
Curse on Frank Longbottom's wife, when he would not give you information.
You planned to restore He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named to power, and to resume
the lives of violence you pre-sumably led while he was strong. I now ask
the jury -"
"Mother!" screamed the boy below, and the wispy little witch beside
Crouch began to sob, rocking backward and forward. "Mother, stop
him. Mother, I didn't do it, it wasn't me!"
"I now ask the jury," shouted Mr. Crouch, "to raise their hands if
they believe, as I do, that these crimes deserve a life sentence in Azkaban!"
In unison, the witches and wizards along the right-hand side of the
dungeon raised their hands. The crowd around the walls began to clap
as it had for Bagman, their faces full of savage triumph. The boy
began to scream.
"No! Mother, no! I didn't do it, I didn't do it, I didn't
know! Don't send me there, don't let him!"
The dementors were gliding back into the room. The boys' three
companions rose quietly from their seats; the woman with the heavy-lidded
eyes looked up at Crouch and called, "The Dark Lord will rise again, Crouch!
Throw us into Azkaban; we will wait! He
will rise again and will come for us, he will reward us beyond any
of his other supporters! We alone were faithful! We alone tried
to find him!"
But the boy was trying to fight off the dementors, even though Harry
could see their cold, draining power starting to affect him. The
crowd was jeering, some of them on their feet, as the woman swept out of
the dungeon, and the boy continued to struggle.
"I'm your son!" he screamed up at Crouch. "I'm your son!"
"You are no son of mine!" bellowed Mr. Crouch, his eyes bulging suddenly.
"I have no son!"
The wispy witch beside him gave a great gasp and slumped in her seat.
She had fainted. Crouch appeared not to have noticed.
"Take them away!" Crouch roared at the dementors, spit flying from
his mouth. "Take them away, and may they rot there!"
"Father! Father, I wasn't involved! No! No!
Father, please!"
"I think. Harry, it is time to return to my office," said a quiet voice
in Harrys ear.
Harry started. He looked around. Then he looked on his
other side.
There was an Albus Dumbledore sitting on his right, watching Crouch's
son being dragged away by the dementors - and there was an Albus Dumbledore
on his left, looking right at him.
"Come," said the Dumbledore on his left, and he put his hand under
Harrys elbow. Harry felt himself rising into the air; the dun-geon dissolved
around him; for a moment, all was blackness, and then he felt as though
he had done a slow-motion somersault, sud-denly landing flat on his feet,
in what seemed like the dazzling light of Dumbledore's sunlit office.
The stone basin was shimmering in the cabinet in front of him, and Albus
Dumbledore was standing beside him.
"Professor," Harry gasped, "I know I shouldn't've - I didn't mean -
the cabinet door was sort of open and -"
"I quite understand," said Dumbledore. He lifted the basin, car-ried
it over to his desk, placed it upon the polished top, and sat down in the
chair behind it. He motioned for Harry to sit down opposite him.
Harry did so, staring at the stone basin. The contents had re-turned
to their original, silvery-white state, swirling and rippling beneath his
gaze.
"What is it?" Harry asked shakily.
"This? It is called a Pensieve," said Dumbledore. "I sometimes
find, and I am sure you know the feeling, that I simply have too many thoughts
and memories crammed into my mind."
"Er," said Harry, who couldn't truthfully say that he had ever felt
anything of the sort.
"At these times," said Dumbledore, indicating the stone basin, "I use
the Pensieve. One simply siphons the excess thoughts from one's mind,
pours them into the basin, and examines them at one's leisure. It
becomes easier to spot patterns and links, you under-stand, when they are
in this form."
"You mean . . . that stuff's your thoughts?" Harry said, staring
at the swirling white substance in the basin.
"Certainly," said Dumbledore. "Let me show you."
Dumbledore drew his wand out of the inside of his robes and placed
the tip into his own silvery hair, near his temple. When he took
the wand away, hair seemed to be clinging to it - but then Harry saw that
it was in fact a glistening strand of the same strange silvery-white substance
that filled the Pensieve. Dumbledore added this fresh thought to
the basin, and Harry, astonished, saw his own face swimming around the
surface of the bowl. Dumbledore placed his long hands on either side
of the Pensieve and swirled it, rather as a gold prospector would pan for
fragments of gold.... and Harry saw his own face change smoothly into Snape's,
who opened his mouth and spoke to the ceiling, his voice echoing slightly.
"It's coming back . . . Karkaroff's too . . . stronger and clearer
than ever..."
"A connection I could have made without assistance," Dumble-dore sighed,
"but never mind." He peered over the top of his half-moon spectacles
at Harry, who was gaping at Snape's face, which was continuing to swirl
around the bowl. "I was using the Pensieve when Mr. Fudge arrived
for our meeting and put it away rather hastily. Undoubtedly I did
not fasten the cabinet door properly. Naturally, it would have attracted
your attention."
"I'm sorry," Harry mumbled.
Dumbledore shook his head. "Curiosity is not a sin," he said.
"But we should exercise caution with our curiosity. . . yes, in-deed ..."
Frowning slightly, he prodded the thoughts within the basin with the
tip of his wand. Instantly, a figure rose out of it, a plump, scowling
girl of about sixteen, who began to revolve slowly, with her feet still
in the basin. She took no notice whatsoever of Harry or Professor
Dumbledore. When she spoke, her voice echoed as Snape's had done,
as though it were coming from the depths of the stone basin. "He
put a hex on me, Professor Dumbledore, and I
was only teasing him, sir, I only said I'd seen him kissing Florence
behind the greenhouses last Thursday. . . ."
"But why. Bertha," said Dumbledore sadly, looking up at the now silently
revolving girl, "why did you have to follow him in the first place?"
"Bertha?" Harry whispered, looking up at her. "Is that - was
that Bertha Jorkins?"
"Yes," said Dumbledore, prodding the thoughts in the basin again; Bertha
sank back into them, and they became silvery and opaque once more.
"That was Bertha as I remember her at school."
The silvery light from the Pensieve illuminated Dumbledore's face,
and it struck Harry suddenly how very old he was looking. He knew,
of course, that Dumbledore was getting on in years, but somehow he never
really thought of Dumbledore as an old man.
"So, Harry," said Dumbledore quietly. "Before you got lost in my thoughts,
you wanted to tell me something."
"Yes," said Harry. "Professor - I was in Divination just now, and -
er - I fell asleep."
He hesitated here, wondering if a reprimand was coming, but Dumbledore
merely said, "Quite understandable. Continue."
"Well, I had a dream," said Harry. "A dream about Lord Volde-mort.
He was torturing Wormtail . . . you know who Wormtail-"
"I do know," said Dumbledore promptly. "Please continue."
"Voldemort got a letter from an owl. He said something like,
Wormtail's blunder had been repaired. He said someone was dead.
Then he said, Wormtail wouldn't be fed to the snake - there was a snake
beside his chair. He said - he said he'd be feeding me to it,
instead. Then he did the Cruciatus Curse on Wormtail - and my
scar hurt," Harry said. "It woke me up, it hurt so badly."
Dumbledore merely looked at him.
"Er - that's all," said Harry.
"I see," said Dumbledore quietly. "I see. Now, has your scar
hurt at any other time this year, excepting the time it woke you up over
the summer?"
"No, I - how did you know it woke me up over the summer?" said Harry,
astonished.
"You are not Sirius's only correspondent," said Dumbledore. "I
have also been in contact with him ever since he left Hogwarts last year.
It was I who suggested the mountainside cave as the safest place for him
to stay."
Dumbledore got up and began walking up and down behind his desk.
Every now and then, he placed his wand tip to his temple, re-moved another
shining silver thought, and added it to the Pensieve. The thoughts
inside began to swirl so fast that Harry couldn't make out anything clearly:
It was merely a blur of color.
"Professor?" he said quietly, after a couple of minutes.
Dumbledore stopped pacing and looked at Harry.
"My apologies," he said quietly. He sat back down at his desk.
"D'you - d'you know why my scar's hurting me?"
Dumbledore looked very intently at Harry for a moment, and then said,
"I have a theory, no more than that. ... It is my belief that your scar
hurts both when Lord Voldemort is near you, and when he is feeling a particularly
strong surge of hatred."
"But. . . why?"
"Because you and he are connected by the curse that failed," said Dumbledore.
"That is no ordinary scar."
"So you think . . . that dream . . . did it really happen?"
"It is possible," said Dumbledore. "I would say - probable. Harry -
did you see Voldemort?"
"No," said Harry. "Just the back of his chair. But - there
wouldn't have been anything to see, would there? I mean, he hasn't
got a body, has he? But. . . but then how could he have held the
wand?" Harry said slowly.
"How indeed?" muttered Dumbledore. "How indeed . . ."
Neither Dumbledore nor Harry spoke for a while. Dumbledore was
gazing across the room, and, every now and then, placing his wand tip to
his temple and adding another shining silver thought to the seething mass
within the Pensieve.
"Professor," Harry said at last, "do you think he's getting stronger?"
"Voldemort?" said Dumbledore, looking at Harry over the Pensieve.
It was the characteristic, piercing look Dumbledore had given him
on other occasions, and always made Harry feel as though Dumbledore were
seeing right through him in a way that even Moody's magical eye could not.
"Once again. Harry, I can only give you my suspicions."
Dumbledore sighed again, and he looked older, and wearier, than ever.
"The years of Voldemort's ascent to power," he said, "were marked with
disappearances. Bertha Jorkins has vanished without a trace in the
place where Voldemort was certainly known to be last. Mr. Crouch too has
disappeared . . . within these very grounds. And there was a third
disappearance, one which the Ministry, I re-gret to say, do not consider
of any importance, for it concerns a Muggle. His name was Frank Bryce,
he lived in the village where Voldemort's father grew up, and he has not
been seen since last August. You see, I read the Muggle newspapers,
unlike most of my Ministry friends."
Dumbledore looked very seriously at Harry.
"These disappearances seem to me to be linked. The Ministry disagrees
- as you may have heard, while waiting outsiide my office."
Harry nodded. Silence fell between them again, Dumbledore extracting
thoughts every now and then. Harry felt as though he ought to go,
but his curiosity held him in his chair.
"Professor?" he said again.
"Yes, Harry?" said Dumbledore.
"Er . . . could I ask you about. . . that court thing I was in ...
in the Pensieve?"
"You could," said Dumbledore heavily. "I attended it many times,
but some trials come back to me more clearly than oth-ers ... particularly
now. ..."
"You know - you know the trial you found me in? The one with
Crouch's son? Well....were they talking about Neville's parents?"
Dumbledore gave Harry a very sharp look. " Has Neville never told you
why he has been brought up by his grandmother?" he said.
Harry shook his head, wondering, as he did so, how he could have failed
to ask Neville this, in almost four years of knowing him.
"Yes, they were talking about Nevilles parents," said Dumble-dore.
"His father, Frank, was an Auror just like Professor Moody. He and
his wife were tortured for information about Voldemort's whereabouts after
he lost his powers, as you heard."
"So they're dead?" said Harry quietly.
"No," said Dumbledore, his voice full of a bitterness Harry had never
heard there before. "They are insane. They are both in St.
Mungo's Hospital for Magical Maladies and Injuries. I believe Neville
visits them, with his grandmother, during the holidays. They do not
recognize him."
Harry sat there, horror-struck. He had never known . . . never, in
four years, bothered to find out. . .
"The Longbottoms were very popular," said Dumbledore. "The attacks
on them came after Voldemort's fall from power, just when everyone thought
they were safe. Those attacks caused a wave of fury such as I have
never known. The Ministry was under great pressure to catch those
who had done it. Unfortunately, the Longbottoms' evidence was - given
their condition - none too reliable."
"Then Mr. Crouch's son might not have been involved?" said Harry slowly.
Dumbledore shook his head.
"As to that, I have no idea."
Harry sat in silence once more, watching the contents of the Pensieve
swirl. There were two more questions he was burning to ask . . .
but they concerned the guilt of living people. . . .
"Er," he said, "Mr. Bagman . .."
"... has never been accused of any Dark activity since," said Dumbledore
calmly.
"Right," said Harry hastily, staring at the contents of the Pensieve
again, which were swirling more slowly now that Dumble-dore had stopped
adding thoughts. "And ... er ..."
But the Pensieve seemed to be asking his question for him.
Snape's face was swimming on the surface again. Dumbledore glanced
down into it, and then up at Harry.
"No more has Professor Snape," he said.
Harry looked into Dumbledore's light blue eyes, and the thing he really
wanted to know spilled out of his mouth before he could stop it.
"What made you think he'd really stopped supporting Volde-mort, Professor?"
Dumbledore held Harrys gaze for a few seconds, and then said, "That,
Harry, is a matter between Professor Snape and myself."
Harry knew that the interview was over; Dumbledore did not look angry,
yet there was a finality in his tone that told Harry it was time to go.
He stood up, and so did Dumbledore.
"Harry," he said as Harry reached the door. "Please do not speak
about Neville's parents to anybody else. He has the right to let
peo-ple know, when he is ready."
"Yes, Professor," said Harry, turning to go.
"And-"
Harry looked back. Dumbledore was standing over the Pensieve,
his face lit from beneath by its silvery spots of light, looking older
than ever. He stared at Harry for a moment, and then said, "Good
luck with the third task."
CHAPTER THIRTY-ONE
THE THIRD TASK
Dumbledore reckons You-Know-Who's getting stronger again as well?"
Ron whispered.
Everything Harry had seen in the Pensieve, nearly everything Dumbledore
had told and shown him afterward, he had now shared with Ron and Hermione
- and, of course, with Sirius, to whom Harryy had sent an owl the moment
he had left Dumble-dore's office. Harry, Ron, and Hermione sat up
late in the common room once again that night, talking it all over until
Harry's mind was reeling, until he understood what Dumbledore had meant
about a head becoming so full of thoughts that it would have been a relief
to siphon them off.
Ron stared into the common room fire. Harry thought he saw Ron
shiver slightly, even though the evening was warm.
"And he trusts Snape?" Ron said. "He really trusts Snape,
even though he knows he was a Death Eater?"
"Yes," said Harry.
Hermione had not spoken for ten minutes. She was sitting with
her forehead in her hands, staring at her knees. Harry thought she
too looked as though she could have done with a Pensieve.
"Rita Skeeter," she muttered finally.
"How can you be worrying about her now?" said Ron, in utter disbelief.
"I'm not worrying about her," Hermione said to her knees. "I'm
just thinking. . . remember what she said to me in the Three Broomsticks?
'I know things about Ludo Bagman that would make your hair curl. ' This
is what she meant, isn't it? She reported his trial, she knew he'd
passed information to the Death Eaters. And Winky too, remember .
. .'Ludo Bagman's a bad wizard.' Mr. Crouch would have been furious
he got off, he would have talked about it at home."
"Yeah, but Bagman didn't pass information on purpose, did he?"
Hermione shrugged.
"And Fudge reckons Madame Maxime attacked Crouch?" Ron said,
turning back to Harry.
"Yeah," said Harry, "but he's only saying that because Crouch disappeared
near the Beauxbatons carriage."
"We never thought of her, did we?" said Ron slowly. "Mind
you, she's definitely got giant blood, and she doesn't want to admit it-"
"Of course she doesn't," said Hermione sharply, looking up. "Look
what happened to Hagrid when Rita found out about his mother. Look
at Fudge, jumping to conclusions about her, just be-cause she's part giant.
Who needs that sort of prejudice? I'd proba-bly say I had big bones
if I knew that's what I'd get for telling the truth."
Hermione looked at her watch. "We haven't done any practic-ing!"
she said, looking shocked. "We were going to do the Impedi-ment Curse!
We'll have to really get down to it tomorrow! Come on. Harry, you
need to get some sleep."
Harry and Ron went slowly upstairs to their dormitory. As Harry
pulled on his pajamas, he looked over at Nevilles bed. True to his
word to Dumbledore, he had not told Ron and Hermione about Neville s parents.
As Harry took off his glasses and climbed into his four-poster, he imagined
how it must feel to have parents still living but unable to recognize you.
He often got sympathy from strangers for being an orphan, but as he listened
to Nevilles snores, he thought that Neville deserved it more than he did.
Lying in the darkness, Harry felt a rush of anger and hate toward the peo-ple
who had tortured Mr. and Mrs. Longbottom. ... He remem-bered the jeers
of the crowd as Crouch's son and his companions had been dragged from the
court by the dementors. ... He under-stood how they had felt. . . . Then
he remembered the milk-white face of the screaming boy and realized with
a jolt that he had died a year later. . . .
It was Voldemort, Harry thought, staring up at the canopy of his bed
in the darkness, it all came back to Voldemort. ... He was the one who
had torn these families apart, who had ruined all these lives. . . .
Ron and Hermione were supposed to be studying for their exams, which
would finish on the day of the third task, but they were putting most of
their efforts into helping Harry prepare.
"Don't worry about it," Hermione said shortly when Harry pointed this
out to them and said he didn't mind practicing on his own for a while,
"at least we'll get top marks in Defense Against the Dark Arts. We'd
never have found out about all these hexes in class."
"Good training for when we're all Aurors," said Ron excitedly, attempting
the Impediment Curse on a wasp that had buzzed into the room and making
it stop dead in midair.
The mood in the castle as they entered June became excited and tense
again. Everyone was looking forward to the third task, which would
take place a week before the end of term. Harry was practic-ing hexes at
every available moment. He felt more confident about this task than
either of the others. Difficult and dangerous though it would undoubtedly
be, Moody was right: Harry had managed to find his way past monstrous creatures
and enchanted barriers be-fore now, and this time he had some notice, some
chance to pre-pare himself for what lay ahead.
Tired of walking in on Harry, Hermione, and Ron all over the school.
Professor McGonagall had given them permission to use the empty Transfiguration
classroom at lunchtimes. Harry had soon mastered the Impediment Curse,
a spell to slow down and ob-struct attackers; the Reductor Curse, which
would enable him to blast solid objects out of his way; and the Four-Point
Spell, a useful discovery of Hermiones that would make his wand point due
north, therefore enabling him to check whether he was going in the right
direction within the maze. He was still having trouble with the Shield
Charm, though. This was supposed to cast a temporary, invisible wall
around himself that deflected minor curses; Hermi-one managed to shatter
it with a well-placed Jelly-Legs Jinx, and Harry wobbled around the room
for ten minutes afterward before she had looked up the counter-jinx.
"You're still doing really well, though," Hermione said encour-agingly,
looking down her list and crossing off those spells they had already learned.
"Some of these are bound to come in handy."
"Come and look at this," said Ron, who was standing by the window.
He was staring down onto the grounds. "What's Malfoy doing?"
Harry and Hermione went to see. Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle were standing
in the shadow of a tree below. Crabbe and Goyle seemed to be keeping
a lookout; both were smirking. Malfoy was holding his hand up to
his mouth and speaking into it.
"He looks like he's using a walkie-talkie," said Harry curiously.
"He can't be," said Hermione, "I've told you, those sorts of things
don't work around Hogwarts. Come on, Harry," she added briskly, turning
away from the window and moving back into the middle of the room, "let's
try that Shield Charm again."
Sirius was sending daily owls now. Like Hermione, he seemed to want
to concentrate on getting Harry through the last task before they concerned
themselves with anything else. He reminded Harry in every letter
that whatever might be going on outside the walls of Hogwarts was not Harry's
responsibility, nor was it within his power to influence it.
If Voldemort is really getting stronger again, he wrote, my priority is to ensure your safety. He cannot hope to lay hands on you while you are under Dumbledore's protection, but all the same, take no risks: Concentrate on getting through that maze safely, and then we can turn our attention to other matters.
Harry's nerves mounted as June the twenty-fourth drew closer, but they were not as bad as those he had felt before the first and sec-ond tasks. For one thing, he was confident that, this time, he had done everything in his power to prepare for the task. For another, this was the final hurdle, and however well or badly he did, the tour-nament would at last be over, which would be an enormous relief.
Breakfast was a very noisy affair at the Gryffindor table on the morning
of the third task. The post owls appeared, bringing Harry a good-luck card
from Sirius. It was only a piece of parchment, folded over and bearing
a muddy paw print on its front, but Harry appreciated it all the same.
A screech owl arrived for Hermione, carrying her morning copy of the Daily
Prophet as usual. She un-folded the paper, glanced at the front page,
and spat out a mouth-ful of pumpkin juice all over it.
"What?" said Harry and Ron together, staring at her. "Nothing,"
said Hermione quickly, trying to shove the paper out of sight, but Ron
grabbed it. He stared at the headline and said, "No way. Not
today. That old cow."
"What?" said Harry. "Rita Skeeter again?"
"No," said Ron, and just like Hermione, he attempted to push the paper
out of sight.
"It's about me, isn't it?" said Harry.
"No," said Ron, in an entirely unconvincing tone. But before
Harry could demand to see the paper. Draco Malfoy shouted across
the Great Hall from the Slytherin table.
"Hey, Potter! Potter! How's your head? You feeling
all right? Sure you're not going to go berserk on us?"
Malfoy was holding a copy of the Daily Prophet too. Slytherins up and
down the table were sniggering, twisting in their seats to see Harry's
reaction.
"Let me see it," Harry said to Ron. "Give it here."
Very reluctantly, Ron handed over the newspaper. Harry turned it over
and found himself staring at his own picture, beneath the banner headline:
"HARRY POTTER "DISTURBED AND DANGEROUS"
The boy who defeated He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named is unstable and possibly
dangerous, writes Rita Skeeter, Special Correspondent. Alarming evi-dence
has recently come to light about Harry Pot-ter's strange behavior, which
casts doubts upon his suitability to compete in a demanding competition
like the Triwizard Tournament, or even to attend Hogwarts School.
Potter, the Daily Prophet can exclusively reveal, regularly collapses
at school, and is often heard to complain of pain in the scar on his forehead
(relic of the curse with which You-Know-Who attempted to kill him).
On Monday last, midway through a Divination lesson, your Daily Prophet
reporter witnessed Potter storming from the class, claiming that his scar
was hurting too badly to continue studying.
It is possible, say top experts at St. Mungo's Hos-pital for Magical
Maladies and Injuries, that Pot-ters brain was affected by the attack inflicted
upon him by You-Know-Who, and that his insistence that the scar is still
hurting is an expression of his deep-seated confusion.
"He might even be pretending," said one spe-cialist. "This could be
a plea for attention."
The Daily Prophet, however, has unearthed worrying facts about Harry
Potter that Albus Dumbledore, Headmaster of Hogwarts, has care-fully concealed
from the wizarding public.
"Potter can speak Parseltongue," reveals Draco Malfoy, a Hogwarts fourth
year. "There were a lot of attacks on students a couple of years
ago, and most people thought Potter was behind them after they saw him
lose his temper at a dueling club and set a snake on another boy.
It was all hushed up, though. But he's made friends with werewolves and
giants too. We think he'd do anything for a bit of power."
Parseltongue, the ability to converse with snakes, has long been considered
a Dark Art. Indeed, the most famous Parselmouth of our times is none
other than You-Know-Who himself. A member of the Dark Force Defense
League, who wished to remain unnamed, stated that he would regard any wizard
who could speak Parseltongue "as worthy of investigation. Personally, I
would be highly suspi-cious of anybody who could converse with snakes,
as serpents are often used in the worst kinds of Dark Magic, and are historically
associated with evildoers." Similarly, "anyone who seeks out the
company of such vicious creatures as werewolves and giants would appear
to have a fondness for violence."
Albus Dumbledore should surely consider whether a boy such as this
should be allowed to compete in the Triwizard Tournament. Some fear
that Potter might resort to the Dark Arts in his des-peration to win the
tournament, the third task of which takes place this evening.
"Gone off me a bit, hasn't she?" said Harry lightly, folding up
the paper.
Over at the Slytherin table, Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle were laughing
at him, tapping their heads with their fingers, pulling grotesquely mad
faces, and waggling their tongues like snakes.
"How did she know your scar hurt in Divination?" Ron said. "There's
no way she was there, there's no way she could've heard -"
"The window was open," said Harry. "I opened it to breathe."
"You were at the top of North Tower!" Hermione said. "Your
voice couldn't have carried all the way down to the grounds!"
"Well, you're the one who's supposed to be researching magical methods
of bugging!" said Harry. "You tell me how she did it!"
"I've been trying!" said Hermione. "But I... but. . ."
An odd, dreamy expression suddenly came over Hermione's face.
She slowly raised a hand and ran her fingers through her hair.
"Are you all right?" said Ron, frowning at her.
"Yes," said Hermione breathlessly. She ran her fingers through
her hair again, and then held her hand up to her mouth, as though speaking
into an invisible walkie-talkie. Harry and Ron stared at each other.
"I've had an idea," Hermione said, gazing into space. "I think
I know. . . because then no one would be able to see ... even Moody. .
. and she'd have been able to get onto the window ledge . . . but she's
not allowed . . . she's definitely not allowed ... I think we've got her!
Just give me two seconds in the library - just to make sure!"
With that, Hermione seized her school bag and dashed out of the Great
Hall.
"Oi!" Ron called after her. "We've got our History of Magic exam
in ten minutes! Blimey," he said, turning back to Harry, "she must really
hate that Skeeter woman to risk missing the start of an exam. What're
you going to do in Binns's class - read again?"
Exempt from the end-of-term tests as a Triwizard champion, Harry had
been sitting in the back of every exam class so far, look-ing up fresh
hexes for the third task.
"S'pose so," Harry said to Ron; but just then. Professor McGo-nagall
came walking alongside the Gryffindor table toward him.
"Potter, the champions are congregating in the chamber off the Hall
after breakfast," she said.
"But the task's not till tonight!" said Harry, accidentally spilling
scrambled eggs down his front, afraid he had mistaken the time.
"I'm aware of that, Potter," she said. "The champions' families
are invited to watch the final task, you know. This is simply a chance
for you to greet them."
She moved away. Harry gaped after her.
"She doesn't expect the Dursleys to turn up, does she?" he asked
Ron blankly.
"Dunno," said Ron. "Harry, I'd better hurry, I'm going to be
late for Binns. See you later."
Harry finished his breakfast in the emptying Great Hall. He saw
Fleur Delacour get up from the Ravenclaw table and join Cedric as he crossed
to the side chamber and entered. Krum slouched off to join them shortly
afterward. Harry stayed where he was. He really didn't want
to go into the chamber. He had no family - no family who would turn
up to see him risk his life, anyway. But just as he was getting up,
thinking that he might as well go up to the library and do a spot more
hex research, the door of the side chamber opened, and Cedric stuck his
head out.
"Harry, come on, they're waiting for you!"
Utterly perplexed. Harry got up. The Dursleys couldn't
possibly be here, could they? He walked across the Hall and opened the
door into the chamber.
Cedric and his parents were just inside the door. Viktor Krum
was over in a corner, conversing with his dark-haired mother and father
in rapid Bulgarian. He had inherited his fathers hooked nose.
On the other side of the room, Fleur was jabbering away in French to her
mother. Fleur's little sister, Gabrielle, was holding her mother's
hand. She waved at Harry, who waved back, grinning. Then he
saw Mrs. Weasley and Bill standing in front of the fire-place, beaming
at him.
"Surprise!" Mrs. Weasley said excitedly as he smiled broadly
and walked over to them. "Thought we'd come and watch you. Harry!"
She bent down and kissed him on the cheek.
"You all right?" said Bill, grinning at Harry and shaking his hand.
"Charlie wanted to come, but he couldn't get time off. He said you
were incredible against the Horntail."
Fleur Delacour, Harry noticed, was eyeing Bill with great inter-est
over her mother's shoulder. Harry could tell she had no objec-tion
whatsoever to long hair or earrings with fangs on them.
"This is really nice of you," Harry muttered to Mrs. Weasley.
"I thought for a moment - the Dursleys -"
"Hmm," said Mrs. Weasley, pursing her lips. She had always re-frained
from criticizing the Dursleys in front of Harry, but her eyes flashed every
time they were mentioned.
"It's great being back here," said Bill, looking around the cham-ber
(Violet, the Fat Lady's friend, winked at him from her frame). "Haven't
seen this place for five years. Is that picture of the mad knight
still around? Sir Cadogan?"
"Oh yeah," said Harry, who had met Sir Cadogan the previous year.
"And the Fat Lady?" said Bill.
"She was here in my time," said Mrs. Weasley. "She gave me such
a telling off one night when I got back to the dormitory at four in the
morning -"
"What were you doing out of your dormitory at four in the morning?"
said Bill, surveying his mother with amazement.
Mrs. Weasley grinned, her eyes twinkling.
"Your father and I had been for a nighttime stroll," she said.
"He got caught by Apollyon Pringle - he was the caretaker in those days
- your father's still got the marks."
"Fancy giving us a tour, Harry?" said Bill.
"Yeah, okay," said Harry, and they made their way back toward the door
into the Great Hall. As they passed Amos Diggory, he looked around.
"There you are, are you?" he said, looking Harry up and down.
"Bet you're not feeling quite as full of yourself now Cedrics caught
you up on points, are you?"
"What?" said Harry.
"Ignore him," said Cedric in a low voice to Harry, frowning af-ter
his father. "He's been angry ever since Rita Skeeters article about
the Triwizard Tournament - you know, when she made out you were the only
Hogwarts champion."
"Didn't bother to correct her, though, did he?" said Amos Dig-gory,
loudly enough for Harry to hear as he started to walk out of the door with
Mrs. Weasley and Bill. "Still, . . you'll show him, Ced. Beaten him
once before, haven't you?"
"Rita Skeeter goes out of her way to cause trouble, Amos!" Mrs.
Weasley said angrily. "I would have thought you'd know that, working at
the Ministry!"
Mr. Diggory looked as though he was going to say something angry, but
his wife laid a hand on his arm, and he merely shrugged and turned away.
Harry had a very enjoyable morning walking over the sunny grounds with
Bill and Mrs. Weasley, showing them the Beaux-batons carriage and the Durmstrang
ship. Mrs. Weasley was intrigued by the Whomping Willow, which had
been planted after she had left school, and reminisced at length about
the gamekeeper before Hagrid, a man called Ogg.
"How's Percy?" Harry asked as they walked around the green-houses.
"Not good," said Bill.
"He's very upset," said Mrs. Weasley, lowering her voice and glancing
around. "The Ministry wants to keep Mr. Crouch's disap-pearance quiet,
but Percy's been hauled in for questioning about the instructions Mr. Crouch
has been sending in. They seem to think there's a chance they weren't
genuinely written by him. Percy's been under a lot of strain.
They're not letting him fill in for Mr. Crouch as the fifth judge tonight.
Cornelius Fudge is going to be doing it."
They returned to the castle for lunch.
"Mum - Bill!" said Ron, looking stunned, as he joined the Gryffindor
table. "What're you doing here?"
"Come to watch Harry in the last task!" said Mrs. Weasley brightly.
"I must say, it makes a lovely change, not having to cook. How was
your exam?"
"Oh . . . okay," said Ron. "Couldn't remember all the goblin rebels'
names, so I invented a few. It's all right," he said, helping himself
to a Cornish pasty, while Mrs. Weasley looked stern, "they're all called
stuff like Bodrod the Bearded and Urg the Un-clean; it wasn't hard."
Fred, George, and Ginny came to sit next to them too, and Harry was
having such a good time he felt almost as though he were back at the Burrow;
he had forgotten to worry about that evening's task, and not until Hermione
turned up, halfway through lunch, did he remember that she had had a brainwave
about Rita Skeeter.
"Are you going to tell us - ?"
Hermione shook her head warningly and glanced at Mrs. Weasley.
"Hello, Hermione," said Mrs. Weasley, much more stiffly than usual.
"Hello," said Hermione, her smile faltering at the cold expres-sion
on Mrs. Weasley's face.
Harry looked between them, then said, "Mrs. Weasley, you did-n't believe
that rubbish Rita Skeeter wrote in Witch Weekly, did you? Because
Hermione's not my girlfriend."
"Oh!" said Mrs. Weasley "No - of course I didn't!"
But she became considerably warmer toward Hermione after that.
Harry, Bill, and Mrs. Weasley whiled away the afternoon with a long
walk around the castle, and then returned to the Great Hall for the evening
feast. Ludo Bagman and Cornelius Fudge had joined the staff table
now. Bagman looked quite cheerful, but Cor-nelius Fudge, who was
sitting next to Madame Maxime, looked stern and was not talking. Madame
Maxime was concentrating on her plate, and Harry thought her eyes looked
red. Hagrid kept glancing along the table at her,
There were more courses than usual, but Harry, who was start-ing to
feel really nervous now, didn't eat much. As the enchanted ceiling
overhead began to fade from blue to a dusky purple, Dum-bledore rose to
his feet at the staff table, and silence fell.
"Ladies and gentlemen, in five minutes' time, I will be asking you
to make your way down to the Quidditch field for the third and final task
of the Triwizard Tournament. Will the champions please follow Mr.
Bagman down to the stadium now."
Harry got up. The Gryffindors all along the table were applaud-ing
him; the Weasleys and Hermione all wished him good luck, and he headed
off out of the Great Hall with Cedric, Fleur, and Viktor.
"Feeling all right. Harry?" Bagman asked as they went down the stone
steps onto the grounds. "Confident?"
"I'm okay," said Harry. It was sort of true; he was nervous,
but he kept running over all the hexes and spells he had been practic-ing
in his mind as they walked, and the knowledge that he could remember them
all made him feel better.
They walked onto the Quidditch field, which was now com-pletely unrecognizable.
A twenty-foot-high hedge ran all the way around the edge of it. There
was a gap right in front of them: the entrance to the vast maze.
The passage beyond it looked dark and creepy.
Five minutes later, the stands had begun to fill; the air was full
of excited voices and the rumbling of feet as the hundreds of students
filed into their seats. The sky was a deep, clear blue now, and the
first stars were starting to appear. Hagrid, Professor Moody, Profes-sor
McGonagall, and Professor Flitwick came walking into the sta-dium and approached
Bagman and the champions. They were wearing large, red, luminous
stars on their hats, all except Hagrid, who had his on the back of his
moleskin vest.
"We are going to be patrolling the outside of the maze," said Professor
McGonagall to the champions. "If you get into difficulty, and wish
to be rescued, send red sparks into the air, and one of us will come and
get you, do you understand?"
The champions nodded.
"Off you go, then!" said Bagman brightly to the four patrollers.
"Good luck. Harry," Hagrid whispered, and the four of them walked away
in different directions, to station themselves around the maze. Bagman
now pointed his wand at his throat, muttered, "Sonorus," and his magically
magnified voice echoed into the stands.
"Ladies and gentlemen, the third and final task of the Triwizard Tournament
is about to begin! Let me remind you how the points currently stand!
Tied in first place, with eighty-five points each - Mr. Cedric Diggory
and Mr. Harry Potter, both of Hogwarts School!" The cheers and applause
sent birds from the Forbidden Forest fluttering into the darkening sky.
"In second place, with eighty points - Mr. Viktor Krum, of Durmstrang Institute!"
More applause. "And in third place - Miss Fleur Delacour, of Beauxbatons
Academy!"
Harry could just make out Mrs. Weasley, Bill, Ron, and Hermi-one applauding
Fleur politely, halfway up the stands. He waved up at them, and they
waved back, beaming at him.
"So ... on my whistle, Harry and Cedric!" said Bagman. "Three - two
- one -"
He gave a short blast on his whistle, and Harry and Cedric hur-ried
forward into the maze.
The towering hedges cast black shadows across the path, and, whether
because they were so tall and thick or because they had been enchanted,
the sound of the surrounding crowd was silenced the moment they entered
the maze. Harry felt almost as though he were underwater again.
He pulled out his wand, muttered, "Lumos," and heard Cedric do the same
just behind him.
After about fifty yards, they reached a fork. They looked at
each other.
"See you," Harry said, and he took the left one, while Cedric took
the right.
Harry heard Bagman's whistle for the second time. Krum had entered
the maze. Harry sped up. His chosen path seemed com-pletely
deserted. He turned right, and hurried on, holding his wand high
over his head, trying to see as far ahead as possible. Still, there
was nothing in sight.
Bagman's whistle blew in the distance for the third time. All
of the champions were now inside.
Harry kept looking behind him. The old feeling that he was be-ing
watched was upon him. The maze was growing darker with every passing
minute as the sky overhead deepened to navy. He reached a second
fork.
"Point Me," he whispered to his wand, holding it flat in his palm.
The wand spun around once and pointed toward his right, into solid
hedge. That way was north, and he knew that he needed to go northwest
for the center of the maze. The best he could do was to take the
left fork and go right again as soon as possible.
The path ahead was empty too, and when Harry reached a right turn and
took it, he again found his way unblocked. Harry didn't know why,
but the lack of obstacles was unnerving him. Surely he should have
met something by now? It felt as though the maze were luring him
into a false sense of security. Then he heard movement right behind
him. He held out his wand, ready to attack, but its beam fell only
upon Cedric, who had just hurried out of a path on the right-hand side.
Cedric looked severely shaken. The sleeve of his robe was smoking.
"Hagrid's Blast-Ended Skrewts!" he hissed. "They're enor-mous
- I only just got away!"
He shook his head and dived out of sight, along another path.
Keen to put plenty of distance between himself and the skrewts, Harry hurried
off again. Then, as he turned a corner, he saw ... a dementor gliding
toward him. Twelve feet tall, its face hidden by its hood, its rotting,
scabbed hands outstretched, it advanced, sensing its way blindly toward
him. Harry could hear its rattling breath; he felt clammy coldness
stealing over him, but knew what he had to do....
He summoned the happiest thought he could, concentrated with all his
might on the thought of getting out of the maze and celebrating with Ron
and Hermione, raised his wand, and cried, "Expecto Patronum!"
A silver stag erupted from the end of Harry's wand and galloped toward
the dementor, which fell back and tripped over the hem of its robes. .
. . Harry had never seen a dementor stumble.
"Hang on!" he shouted, advancing in the wake of his silver Patronus,
"You're a boggart! Riddikulus!"
There was a loud crack, and the shape-shifter exploded in a wisp of
smoke. The silver stag faded from sight. Harry wished it could
have stayed, he could have used some company...but he moved on, quickly and
quietly as possible, listening hard, his wand held high once more.
Left ... right... left again . . . Twice he found himself facing dead
ends. He did the Four-Point Spell again and found that he was going
too far east. He turned back, took a right turn, and saw an odd golden
mist floating ahead of him.
Harry approached it cautiously, pointing the wand's beam at it.
This looked like some kind of enchantment. He wondered whether he
might be able to blast it out of the way.
"Reducio!" he said.
The spell shot straight through the mist, leaving it intact.
He supposed he should have known better; the Reductor Curse was for solid
objects. What would happen if he walked through the mist? Was
it worth chancing it, or should he double back?
He was still hesitating when a scream shattered the silence.
"Fleur?" Harry yelled.
There was silence. He stared all around him. What had hap-pened
to her? Her scream seemed to have come from somewhere ahead.
He took a deep breath and ran through the enchanted mist.
The world turned upside down. Harry was hanging from the ground,
with his hair on end, his glasses dangling off his nose, threatening to
fall into the bottomless sky. He clutched them to the end of his
nose and hung there, terrified. It felt as though his feet were glued
to the grass, which had now become the ceiling. Below him the dark,
star-spangled heavens stretched endlessly. He felt as though if he
tried to move one of his feet, he would fall away from the earth completely.
Think, he told himself, as all the blood rushed to his head, think.
. .
But not one of the spells he had practiced had been designed to combat
a sudden reversal of ground and sky. Did he dare move his foot?
He could hear the blood pounding in his ears. He had two choices
- try and move, or send up red sparks, and gget rescued and disqualified
from the task.
He shut his eyes, so he wouldn't be able to see the view of end-less
space below him, and pulled his right foot as hard as he could away from
the grassy ceiling.
Immediately, the world righted itself. Harry fell forward onto his
knees onto the wonderfully solid ground. He felt temporarily limp with
shock. He took a deep, steadying breath, then got up again and hurried
forward, looking back over his shoulder as he ran away from the golden
mist, which twinkled innocently at him in the moonlight.
He paused at a junction of two paths and looked around for some sign
of Fleur. He was sure it had been she who had screamed. What
had she met? Was she all right? There was no sign of red sparks
- did that mean she had got herself out of ttrouble, or was she in such
trouble that she couldn't reach her wand? Harry took the right fork
with a feeling of increasing unease . . . but at the same time, he couldn't
help thinking. One champion down. . .
The cup was somewhere close by, and it sounded as though Fleur was
no longer in the running. He'd got this far, hadn't he? What
if he actually managed to win? Fleetingly, and for the first time
since he'd found himself champion, he saw again that image of himself,
raising the Triwizard Cup in front of the rest of the school. . . .
He met nothing for ten minutes, but kept running into dead ends.
Twice he took the same wrong turning. Finally, he found a new route
and started to jog along it, his wandlight waving, mak-ing his shadow flicker
and distort on the hedge walls. Then he rounded another corner and
found himself facing a Blast-Ended Skrewt.
Cedric was right - it was enormous. Ten feet long, it looked
more like a giant scorpion than anything. Its long sting was curled
over its back. Its thick armor glinted in the light from Harry's
wand, which he pointed at it.
"Stupefy!"
The spell hit the skrewt's armor and rebounded; Harry ducked just in
time, but could smell burning hair; it had singed the top of his head.
The skrewt issued a blast of fire from its end and flew for-ward toward
him.
"Impedimenta!" Harry yelled. The spell hit the skrewt's
armor again and ricocheted off; Harry staggered back a few paces and fell
over. "IMPEDIMENTA!"
The skrewt was inches from him when it froze - he had man-aged to hit
it on its fleshy, shell-less underside. Panting, Harry pushed himself
away from it and ran, hard, in the opposite direc-tion - the Impediment
Curse was not permanent; the skrewt would be regaining the use of its legs
at any moment.
He took a left path and hit a dead end, a right, and hit another; forcing
himself to stop, heart hammering, he performed the Four-Point Spell again,
backtracked, and chose a path that would take him northwest.
He had been hurrying along the new path for a few minutes, when he
heard something in the path running parallel to his own that made him stop
dead.
"What are you doing?" yelled Cedric's voice. "What the hell d'you
think you're doing?"
And then Harry heard Krum's voice.
"Crucio!"
The air was suddenly full of Cedric's yells. Horrified, Harry
be-gan sprinting up his path, trying to find a way into Cedric's.
When none appeared, he tried the Reductor Curse again. It wasn't
very ef-fective, but it burned a small hole in the hedge through which
Harry forced his leg, kicking at the thick brambles and branches until
they broke and made an opening; he struggled through it, tearing his robes,
and looking to his right, saw Cedric jerking and twitching on the ground,
Krum standing over him.
Harry pulled himself up and pointed his wand at Krum just as Krum looked
up. Krum turned and began to run.
"Stupefy!" Harry yelled.
The spell hit Krum in the back; he stopped dead in his tracks, fell
forward, and lay motionless, facedown in the grass. Harry-dashed
over to Cedric, who had stopped twitching and was lying there panting,
his hands over his face.
"Are you all right?" Harry said roughly, grabbing Cedric's arm.
"Yeah," panted Cedric. "Yeah ... I don't believe it... he crept up
behind me. ... I heard him, I turned around, and he had his wand on me.
. . ."
Cedric got up. He was still shaking. He and Harry looked down
at Krum.
"I can't believe this ... I thought he was all right," Harry said,
staring at Krum.
"So did I," said Cedric.
"Did you hear Fleur scream earlier?" said Harry.
"Yeah," said Cedric. "You don't think Krum got her too?"
"I don't know," said Harry slowly.
"Should we leave him here?" Cedric muttered.
"No," said Harry. "I reckon we should send up red sparks.
Someone'll come and collect him . . . otherwise he'll probably be eaten
by a skrewt."
"He'd deserve it," Cedric muttered, but all the same, he raised his
wand and shot a shower of red sparks into the air, which hov-ered high
above Krum, marking the spot where he lay.
Harry and Cedric stood there in the darkness for a moment, looking
around them. Then Cedric said, "Well... I s'pose we'd better go on.
. . ."
"What?" said Harry. "Oh . . . yeah . . . right. . ."
It was an odd moment. He and Cedric had been briefly united against
Krum - now the fact that they were opponents came back to Harry.
The two of them proceeded up the dark path without speaking, then Harry
turned left, and Cedric right. Cedric's foot-steps soon died away.
Harry moved on, continuing to use the Four-Point Spell, mak-ing sure
he was moving in the right direction. It was between him and Cedric
now. His desire to reach the cup first was now burning stronger than
ever, but he could hardly believe what he'd just seen Krum do. The
use of an Unforgivable Curse on a fellow human be-ing meant a life term
in Azkaban, that was what Moody had told them. Krum surely couldn't have
wanted the Triwizard Cup that badly....Harry sped up.
Every so often he hit more dead ends, but the increasing dark-ness
made him feel sure he was getting near the heart of the maze. Then,
as he strode down a long, straight path, he saw movement once again, and
his beam of wandlight hit an extraordinary crea-ture, one which he had
only seen in picture form, in his Monster Book of Monsters.
It was a sphinx. It had the body of an over-large lion: great
clawed paws and a long yellowish tail ending in a brown tuft. Its
head, how-ever, was that of a woman. She turned her long, almond-shaped
eyes upon Harry as he approached. He raised his wand, hesitating.
She was not crouching as if to spring, but pacing from side to side of
the path, blocking his progress. Then she spoke, in a deep, hoarse voice.
"You are very near your goal. The quickest way is past me."
"So ... so will you move, please?" said Harry, knowing what the
answer was going to be.
"No," she said, continuing to pace. "Not unless you can answer
my riddle. Answer on your first guess - I let you pass. Answer
wrongly - I attack. Remain silent - I will let you walk away from
me unscathed."
Harry's stomach slipped several notches. It was Hermione who
was good at this sort of thing, not him. He weighed his chances.
If the riddle was too hard, he could keep silent, get away from the sphinx
unharmed, and try and find an alternative route to the center.
"Okay," he said. "Can I hear the riddle?"
The sphinx sat down upon her hind legs, in the very middle of the path,
and recited:
"First think of the person who lives in disguise,
Who deals in secrets and tells naught but lies.
Next, tell me what's always the last thing to mend,
The middle of middle and end of the end?
And finally give me the sound often heard
During the search for a hard-to-find word.
Now string them together, and answer me this,
Which creature would you be unwilling to kiss?"
Harry gaped at her.
"Could I have it again . . . more slowly?" he asked tentatively.
She blinked at him, smiled, and repeated the poem. "All the clues
add up to a creature I wouldn't want to kiss?" Harry asked.
She merely smiled her mysterious smile. Harry took that for a
"yes." Harry cast his mind around. There were plenty of animals he
wouldn't want to kiss; his immediate thought was a Blast-Ended Skrewt,
but something told him that wasn't the answer. He'd have to try and
work out the clues. . . .
"A person in disguise," Harry muttered, staring at her, "who lies ...
er ... that'd be a - an impostor. No, that's not my guess!
A - a spy? I'll come back to that. . . could you give me the next
clue again, please?"
She repeated the next lines of the poem.
"'The last thing to mend,'" Harry repeated. "Er ... no idea . . . 'middle
of middle' . . . could I have the last bit again?"
She gave him the last four lines.
"'The sound often heard during the search for a hard-to-find word,'"
said Harry. "Er . . . that'd be ... er ... hang on - 'er'!
Er's a sound!"
The sphinx smiled at him.
"Spy ... er ... spy ... er ..." said Harry, pacing up and down. "A
creature I wouldn't want to kiss . . . a spider!"
The sphinx smiled more broadly. She got up, stretched her front
legs, and then moved aside for him to pass.
"Thanks!" said Harry, and, amazed at his own brilliance, he dashed
forward.
He had to be close now, he had to be. ... His wand was telling him
he was bang on course; as long as he didn't meet anything too horrible,
he might have a chance. . . .
Harry broke into a run. He had a choice of paths up ahead. "Point
Me!" he whispered again to his wand, and it spun around and pointed him
to the right-hand one. He dashed up this one and saw light ahead.
The Triwizard Cup was gleaming on a plinth a hundred yards away.
Suddenly a dark figure hurtled out onto the path in front of him.
Cedric was going to get there first. Cedric was sprinting as
fast as he could toward the cup, and Harry knew he would never catch up,
Cedric was much taller, had much longer legs -
Then Harry saw something immense over a hedge to his left, moving quickly
along a path that intersected with his own; it was moving so fast Cedric
was about to run into it, and Cedric, his eyes on the cup, had not seen
it -
"Cedric!" Harry bellowed. "On your left!"
Cedric looked around just in time to hurl himself past the thing and
avoid colliding with it, but in his haste, he tripped. Harry saw
Cedric's wand fly out of his hand as a gigantic spider stepped into the
path and began to bear down upon Cedric.
"Stupefy!" Harry yelled; the spell hit the spider's gigantic, hairy
black body, but for all the good it did, he might as well have thrown a
stone at it; the spider jerked, scuttled around, and ran at Harry instead.
"Stupefy! Impedimenta! Stupefy!"
But it was no use - the spider was either so large, or so magical,
that the spells were doing no more than aggravating it. Harry had
one horrifying glimpse of eight shining black eyes and razor-sharp pincers
before it was upon him.
He was lifted into the air in its front legs; struggling madly, he
tried to kick it; his leg connected with the pincers and next moment he
was in excruciating pain. He could hear Cedric yelling "Stupefy!" too,
but his spell had no more effect than Harry's - Harry raised his wand as
the spider opened its pincers once more and shouted "Expelliarmus!"
It worked - the Disarming Spell made the spider drop him, but that
meant that Harry fell twelve feet onto his already injured leg, which crumpled
beneath him. Without pausing to think, he aimed high at the spider's
underbelly, as he had done with the skrewt, and shouted "Stupefy!''just
as Cedric yelled the same thing.
The two spells combined did what one alone had not: The spi-der
keeled over sideways, flattening a nearby hedge, and strewing the path
with a tangle of hairy legs.
"Harry!" he heard Cedric shouting. "You all right? Did it fall on you?"
"No," Harry called back, panting. He looked down at his leg.
It was bleeding freely. He could see some sort of thick, gluey secre-tion
from the spider's pincers on his torn robes. He tried to get up,
but his leg was shaking badly and did not want to support his weight.
He leaned against the hedge, gasping for breath, and looked around.
Cedric was standing feet from the Triwizard Cup, which was gleaming
behind him.
"Take it, then," Harry panted to Cedric. "Go on, take it. You're there."
But Cedric didn't move. He merely stood there, looking at Harry.
Then he turned to stare at the cup. Harry saw the longing expression
on his face in its golden light. Cedric looked around at Harry again,
who was now holding onto the hedge to support him-self. Cedric took
a deep breath.
"You take it. You should win. That's twice you've saved my neck in
here."
"That's not how it's supposed to work," Harry said. He felt an-gry;
his leg was very painful, he was aching all over from trying to throw off
the spider, and after all his efforts, Cedric had beaten him to it, just
as he'd beaten Harry to ask Cho to the ball. "The one who reaches
the cup first gets the points. That's you. I'm telling you, I'm not
going to win any races on this leg."
Cedric took a few paces nearer to the Stunned spider, away from the
cup, shaking his head.
"No," he said.
"Stop being noble," said Harry irritably. "Just take it, then
we can get out of here."
Cedric watched Harry steadying himself, holding tight to the hedge.
"You told me about the dragons," Cedric said. "I would've gone
down in the first task if you hadn't told me what was coming."
"I had help on that too," Harry snapped, trying to mop up his bloody
leg with his robes. "You helped me with the egg - we're square."
"I had help on the egg in the first place," said Cedric.
"We're still square," said Harry, testing his leg gingerly; it shook
violently as he put weight on it; he had sprained his ankle when the spider
had dropped him.
"You should've got more points on the second task," said Cedric mulishly.
"You stayed behind to get all the hostages. I should've done that."
"I was the only one who was thick enough to take that song se-riously!"
said Harry bitterly. "Just take the cup!"
"No," said Cedric.
He stepped over the spider's tangled legs to join Harry, who stared
at him. Cedric was serious. He was walking away from the sort
of glory Hufflepuff House hadn't had in centuries.
"Go on," Cedric said. He looked as though this was costing him
every ounce of resolution he had, but his face was set, his arms were folded,
he seemed decided.
Harry looked from Cedric to the cup. For one shining moment,
he saw himself emerging from the maze, holding it. He saw himself
holding the Triwizard Cup aloft, heard the roar of the crowd, saw Cho's
face shining with admiration, more clearly than he had ever seen it before
. . . and then the picture faded, and he found himself staring at Cedric's
shadowy, stubborn face.
"Both of us," Harry said.
"What?"
"We'll take it at the same time. It's still a Hogwarts victory.
We'll tie for it."
Cedric stared at Harry. He unfolded his arms.
"You - you sure?"
"Yeah," said Harry. "Yeah . . . we've helped each other out,
haven't we? We both got here. Let's just take it together."
For a moment, Cedric looked as though he couldn't believe his ears;
then his face split in a grin.
"You're on," he said. "Come here."
He grabbed Harrys arm below the shoulder and helped Harry limp toward
the plinth where the cup stood. When they had reached it, they both
held a hand out over one of the cup's gleam-ing handles.
"On three, right?" said Harry. "One - two - three -"
He and Cedric both grasped a handle.
Instantly, Harry felt a jerk somewhere behind his navel. His
feet had left the ground. He could not unclench the hand holding
the Triwizard Cup; it was pulling him onward in a howl of wind and swirling
color, Cedric at his side.
CHAPTER THIRTY-TWO
FLESH, BLOOD, AND BONE
Harry felt his feet slam into the ground; his injured leg gave way,
and he fell forward; his hand let go of the Triwizard Cup at last.
He raised his head.
"Where are we?" he said.
Cedric shook his head. He got up, pulled Harry to his feet, and
they looked around.
They had left the Hogwarts grounds completely; they had obvi-ously
traveled miles - perhaps hundreds of miles - for even the mountains surrounding
the castle were gone. They were standing instead in a dark and overgrown
graveyard; the black outline of a small church was visible beyond a large
yew tree to their right. A hill rose above them to their left. Harry
could just make out the outline of a fine old house on the hillside.
Cedric looked down at the Triwizard Cup and then up at Harry.
"Did anyone tell you the cup was a Portkey?" he asked.
"Nope," said Harry. He was looking around the graveyard. It was
completely silent and slightly eerie. "Is this supposed to be part
of the task?"
"I dunno," said Cedric. He sounded slightly nervous. "Wands
out, d'you reckon?"
"Yeah," said Harry, glad that Cedric had made the suggestion rather
than him.
They pulled out their wands. Harry kept looking around him.
He had, yet again, the strange feeling that they were being watched.
"Someone's coming," he said suddenly.
Squinting tensely through the darkness, they watched the figure drawing
nearer, walking steadily toward them between the graves. Harry couldn't
make out a face, but from the way it was walking and holding its arms,
he could tell that it was carrying something. Whoever it was, he
was short, and wearing a hooded cloak pulled up over his head to obscure
his face. And - several paces nearer, the gap between them closing
all the time - Harry saw that the thing in the persons arms looked like
a baby ... or was it merely a bundle of robes?
Harry lowered his wand slightly and glanced sideways at Cedric.
Cedric shot him a quizzical look. They both turned back to watch
the approaching figure.
It stopped beside a towering marble headstone, only six feet from them.
For a second. Harry and Cedric and the short figure simply looked at one
another.
And then, without warning, Harry's scar exploded with pain. It
was agony such as he had never felt in all his life; his wand slipped from
his fingers as he put his hands over his face; his knees buck-led; he was
on the ground and he could see nothing at all; his head was about to split
open.
From far away, above his head, he heard a high, cold voice say, "Kill
the spare."
A swishing noise and a second voice, which screeched the words to the
night: "Avada Kedavra!"
A blast of green light blazed through Harry's eyelids, and he heard
something heavy fall to the ground beside him; the pain in his scar reached
such a pitch that he retched, and then it dimin-ished; terrified of what
he was about to see, he opened his stinging eyes.
Cedric was lying spread-eagled on the ground beside him. He was
dead.
For a second that contained an eternity, Harry stared into Cedric's
face, at his open gray eyes, blank and expressionless as the windows of
a deserted house, at his half-open mouth, which looked slightly surprised.
And then, before Harry's mind had ac-cepted what he was seeing, before
he could feel anything but numb disbelief, he felt himself being pulled
to his feet.
The short man in the cloak had put down his bundle, lit his wand, and
was dragging Harry toward the marble headstone. Harry saw the name
upon it flickering in the wandlight before he was forced around and slammed
against it.
TOM RIDDLE
The cloaked man was now conjuring tight cords around Harry, tying him
from neck to ankles to the headstone. Harry could hear shallow, fast
breathing from the depths of the hood; he struggled, and the man hit him
- hit him with a hand that had a finger misss-ing. And Harry realized
who was under the hood. It was Wormtail.
"You!" he gasped.
But Wormtail, who had finished conjuring the ropes, did not re-ply;
he was busy checking the tightness of the cords, his fingers trembling
uncontrollably, rumbling over the knots. Once sure that Harry was bound
so tightly to the headstone that he couldn't move an inch, Wormtail drew
a length of some black material from the inside of his cloak and stuffed
it roughly into Harry's mouth; then, without a word, he turned from Harry
and hurried away. Harry couldn't make a sound, nor could he see where Wormtail
had gone; he couldn't turn his head to see beyond the headstone; he could
see only what was right in front of him.
Cedric's body was lying some twenty feet away. Some way be-yond
him, glinting in the starlight, lay the Triwizard Cup. Harry's wand
was on the ground at Cedric's feet. The bundle of robes that Harry
had thought was a baby was close by, at the foot of the grave. It
seemed to be stirring fretfully. Harry watched it, and his scar seared
with pain again . . . and he suddenly knew that he didn't want to see what
was in those robes ... he didn't want that bundle opened....
He could hear noises at his feet. He looked down and saw a gigantic
snake slithering through the grass, circling the headstone where he was
tied. Wormtail's fast, wheezy breathing was growing louder again.
It sounded as though he was forcing something heavy across the ground.
Then he came back within Harry's range of vision, and Harry saw him pushing
a stone cauldron to the foot of the grave. It was full of what seemed
to be water - Harry could hear it slopping around - and it was larger than
any cauldron Harry had ever used; a great stone belly large enough for
a full-grown man to sit in.
The thing inside the bundle of robes on the ground was stirring more
persistently, as though it was trying to free itself. Now Worm-tail
was busying himself at the bottom of the cauldron with a wand. Suddenly
there were crackling names beneath it. The large snake slithered
away into the darkness.
The liquid in the cauldron seemed to heat very fast. The surface
began not only to bubble, but to send out fiery sparks, as though it were
on fire. Steam was thickening, blurring the outline of Worm-tail
tending the fire. The movements beneath the robes became more agitated.
And Harry heard the high, cold voice again.
"Hurry!"
The whole surface of the water was alight with sparks now. It
might have been encrusted with diamonds.
"It is ready. Master."
"Now ..." said the cold voice.
Wormtail pulled open the robes on the ground, revealing what was inside
them, and Harry let out a yell that was strangled in the wad of material
blocking his mouth.
It was as though Wormtail had flipped over a stone and revealed something
ugly, slimy, and blind - but worse, a hundred times worse. The thing
Wormtail had been carrying had the shape of a crouched human child, except
that Harry had never seen anything less like a child. It was hairless
and scaly-looking, a dark, raw, red-dish black. Its arms and legs
were thin and feeble, and its face - no child alive ever had a face like
that - flat and snakelike, with gleaming red eyes.
The thing seemed almost helpless; it raised its thin arms, put them
around Wormtail's neck, and Wormtail lifted it. As he did so, his
hood fell back, and Harry saw the look of revulsion on Worm-tail's weak,
pale face in the firelight as he carried the creature to the rim of the
cauldron. For one moment, Harry saw the evil, flat face illuminated
in the sparks dancing on the surface of the potion. And then Wormtail
lowered the creature into the cauldron; there was a hiss, and it vanished
below the surface; Harry heard its frail body hit the bottom with a soft
thud.
Let it drown, Harry thought, his scar burning almost past en-durance,
please. . . let it drown. . . .
Wormtail was speaking. His voice shook; he seemed frightened
beyond his wits. He raised his wand, closed his eyes, and spoke to
the night.
"Bone of the father, unknowingly given, you wil lrenew your son!"
The surface of the grave at Harry's feet cracked. Horrified,
Harry watched as a fine trickle of dust rose into the air at Wormtail's
com-mand and fell softly into the cauldron. The diamond surface of
the water broke and hissed; it sent sparks in all directions and turned
a vivid, poisonous-looking blue.
And now Wormtail was whimpering. He pulled a long, thin, shining silver
dagger from inside his cloak. His voice broke into petrified sobs.
"Flesh - of the servant - w-willingly given - you will - revive - your
master. "
He stretched his right hand out in front of him - the hand with the
missing finger. He gripped the dagger very tightly in his left hand
and swung it upward.
Harry realized what Wormtail was about to do a second before it happened
- he closed his eyes as tightly as he could,, but he could not block the
scream that pierced the night, that went through Harry as though he had
been stabbed with the dagger too. He heard something fall to the
ground, heard Wormtail's anguished panting, then a sickening splash, as
something was dropped into the cauldron. Harry couldn't stand to
look . . . but the potion had turned a burning red; the light of it shone
through Harry's closed eyelids. . . .
Wormtail was gasping and moaning with agony. Not until Harry
felt Wormtail's anguished breath on his face did he realize that Wormtail
was right in front of him.
"B-blood of the enemy . . . forcibly taken .. . you will. . . resurrect
your foe."
Harry could do nothing to prevent it, he was tied too tightly. . ..
Squinting down, struggling hopelessly at the ropes binding him, he saw
the shining silver dagger shaking in Wormtails remaining hand. He
felt its point penetrate the crook of his right arm and blood seeping down
the sleeve of his torn robes. Wormtail, still panting with pain,
rumbled in his pocket for a glass vial and held it to Harry's cut, so that
a dribble of blood fell into it.
He staggered back to the cauldron with Harrys blood. He poured
it inside. The liquid within turned, instantly, a blinding white.
Wormtail, his job done, dropped to his knees beside the cauldron, then
slumped sideways and lay on the ground, cradling the bleeding stump of
his arm, gasping and sobbing.
The cauldron was simmering, sending its diamond sparks in all directions,
so blindingly bright that it turned all else to velvety blackness.
Nothing happened. . . .
Let it have drowned. Harry thought, let it have gone wrong. .
. •
And then, suddenly, the sparks emanating from the cauldron were extinguished.
A surge of white steam billowed thickly from the cauldron instead, obliterating
everything in front of Harry, so that he couldn't see Wormtail or Cedric
or anything but vapor hang-ing in the air. ... It's gone wrong, he thought.
. . it's drowned. .. please . . . please let it be dead. ...
But then, through the mist in front of him, he saw, with an icy surge
of terror, the dark outline of a man, tall and skeletally thin, rising
slowly from inside the cauldron.
"Robe me," said the high, cold voice from behind the steam, and Wormtail,
sobbing and moaning, still cradling his mutilated arm, scrambled to pick
up the black robes from the ground, got to his feet, reached up, and pulled
them one-handed over his master's head.
The thin man stepped out of the cauldron, staring at Harry . . . and
Harry stared back into the face that had haunted his night-mares for three
years. Whiter than a skull, with wide, livid scarlet eyes and a nose
that was flat as a snakes with slits for nostrils . . .
Lord Voldemort had risen again.
CHAPTER THIRTY-THREE
THE DEATH EATERS
Voldemort looked away from Harry and began examining his own body.
His hands were like large, pale spiders; his long white fingers caressed
his own chest, his arms, his face; the red eyes, whose pupils were slits,
like a cats, gleamed still more brightly through the darkness. He
held up his hands and flexed the fingers, his expression rapt and exultant.
He took not the slightest notice of Wormtail, who lay twitching and bleeding
on the ground, nor of the great snake, which had slithered back into sight
and was cir-cling Harry again, hissing. Voldemort slipped one of those
unnat-urally long-fingered hands into a deep pocket and drew out a wand.
He caressed it gently too; and then he raised it, and pointed it at Wormtail,
who was lifted off the ground and thrown against the headstone where Harry
was tied; he fell to the foot of it and lay there, crumpled up and crying.
Voldemort turned his scarlet eyes upon Harry, laughing a high, cold, mirthless
laugh.
Wormtail's robes were shining with blood now; he had wrapped the stump
of his arm in them.
"My Lord . . ." he choked, "my Lord . . . you promised . . . you did
promise ..."
"Hold out your arm," said Voldemort lazily.
"Oh Master . . . thank you, Master ..."
He extended the bleeding stump, but Voldemort laughed again.
"The other arm, Wormtail."
"Master, please . . .please ..."
Voldemort bent down and pulled out Wormtail's left arm; he forced the
sleeve of Wormtail's robes up past his elbow, and Harry saw something upon
the skin there, something like a vivid red tat-too - a skull with a snake
protruding from its mouth - the im-age that had appeared in the sky at
the Quidditch World Cup: the Dark Mark. Voldemort examined it carefully,
ignoring Wormtail's uncontrollable weeping.
"It is back," he said softly, "they will all have noticed it... and
now, we shall see ... now we shall know ..."
He pressed his long white forefinger to the brand on Wormtail's arm.
The scar on Harry s forehead seared with a sharp pain again, and Wormtail
let out a fresh howl; Voldemort removed his fingers from Wormtail's mark,
and Harry saw that it had turned jet black.
A look of cruel satisfaction on his face, Voldemort straightened up,
threw back his head, and stared around at the dark graveyard.
"How many will be brave enough to return when they feel it?"
he whispered, his gleaming red eyes fixed upon the stars. "And how
many will be foolish enough to stay away?"
He began to pace up and down before Harry and Wormtail, eyes sweeping
the graveyard all the while. After a minute or so, he looked down
at Harry again, a cruel smile twisting his snakelike face.
"You stand, Harry Potter, upon the remains of my late father," he hissed
softly. "A Muggle and a fool. . . very like your dear mother.
But they both had their uses, did they not? Your mother died to defend
you as a child . . . and I killed my father, and see how useful he has
proved himself, in death. ..."
Voldemort laughed again. Up and down he paced, looking all around
him as he walked, and the snake continued to circle in the grass.
"You see that house upon the hillside, Potter? My father lived
there. My mother, a witch who lived here in this village, fell in
love with him. But he abandoned her when she told him what she was.
... He didn't like magic, my father . . .
"He left her and returned to his Muggle parents before I was even born.
Potter, and she died giving birth to me, leaving me to be raised in a Muggle
orphanage . . . but I vowed to find him ... I re-venged myself upon him,
that fool who gave me his name . . . Tom Riddle. . . ."
Still he paced, his red eyes darting from grave to grave.
"Listen to me, reliving family history . . ." he said quietly, "why,
I am growing quite sentimental. . . . But look, Harry! My true fam-ily
returns. . . ."
The air was suddenly full of the swishing of cloaks. Between
graves, behind the yew tree, in every shadowy space, wizards were Apparating.
All of them were hooded and masked. And one by one they moved forward
. . . slowly, cautiously, as though they could
hardly believe their eyes Voldemort stood in silence, waiting for them.
Then one of the Death Eaters fell to his knees, crawled to-ward Voldemort
and kissed the hem of his black robes.
Master . . . Master " he murmured.
The Death Eaters behind him did the same; each of them ap-proaching
Voldemort on his knees and kissing his robes, before backing away and standing
up, forming a silent circle, which en-closed Tom Riddle s grave, Harry,
Voldemort, and the sobbing and twitching heap that was Wormtail.
Yet they left gaps in the circle, as though waiting for more people.
Voldemort, however, did not seem to expect more. He looked around
at the hooded faces, and though there was no wind rustling seemed to run
around the cir-cle, as though it had shivered.
"Welcome, Death Eaters," said Voldemort quietly. "Thirteen years. .
. thirteen years since last we met. Yet you answer my call as though
it were yesterday, we are still united under the Dark Mark, then!
Or are we?"
He put back his terrible face and sniffed, his slit-like nostrils widening.
"I smell guilt," he said. "There is a stench or guilt upon the
air.
A second shiver ran around the circle, as though each member of it
longed, but did not dare to step back from him.
"I see you all, whole and healthy, with your powers intact - such prompt
appearances! and I ask myself . . . why did this band of wizards never
come to the aid of their master, to whom they swore eternal loyalty?"
No one spoke. No one moved except Wormtail, who was upon the
ground, still sobbing over his bleeding arm.
"And I answer myself," whispered Voldemort, "they must have believed
me broken, they thought I was gone. They slipped back among my enemies,
and they pleaded innocence, and ignorance, and bewitchment. . . .
"And then I ask myself, but how could they have believed I would not
rise again? They, who knew the steps I took, long ago, to guard myself
against mortal death? They, who had seen proofs of the immensity
of my power in the times when I was mightier than any wizard living?
"And I answer myself, perhaps they believed a still greater power could
exist, one that could vanquish even Lord Voldemort. . . per-haps they now
pay allegiance to another . . . perhaps that champion of commoners, of
Mudbloods and Muggles, Albus Dumbledore?"
At the mention of Dumbledore's name, the members of the cir-cle stirred,
and some muttered and shook their heads. Voldemort ignored them.
"It is a disappointment to me ... I confess myself disap-pointed. .
. ."
One of the men suddenly flung himself forward, breaking the circle.
Trembling from head to foot, he collapsed at Voldemort's feet.
"Master!" he shrieked, "Master, forgive me! Forgive us all!"
Voldemort began to laugh. He raised his wand.
"Crucio!"
The Death Eater on the ground writhed and shrieked; Harry was sure
the sound must carry to the houses around. . . . Let the police come, he
thought desperately . . . anyone . .. anything. . .
Voldemort raised his wand. The tortured Death Eater lay flat
upon the ground, gasping.
"Get up, Avery," said Voldemort softly. "Stand up. You ask for forgiveness?
I do not forgive. I do not forget. Thirteen long years ...
I want thirteen years' repayment before I forgive you. Wormtail here
has paid some of his debt already, have you not, Wormtail?"
He looked down at Wormtail, who continued to sob.
"You returned to me, not out of loyalty, but out of fear of your old
friends. You deserve this pain, Wormtail. You know that, don't
you?"
"Yes, Master," moaned Wormtail, "please. Master . . . please ..."
"Yet you helped return me to my body," said Voldemort coolly, watching
Wormtail sob on the ground. "Worthless and traitorous as you are,
you helped me ... and Lord Voldemort rewards his helpers... ."
Voldemort raised his wand again and whirled it through the air.
A streak of what looked like molten silver hung shining in the wand's wake.
Momentarily shapeless, it writhed and then formed itself into a gleaming
replica of a human hand, bright as moon-light, which soared downward and
fixed itself upon Wormtails bleeding wrist.
Wormtail's sobbing stopped abruptly. His breathing harsh and
ragged, he raised his head and stared in disbelief at the silver hand,
now attached seamlessly to his arm, as though he were wearing a dazzling
glove. He flexed the shining fingers, then, trembling, picked up
a small twig on the ground and crushed it into powder.
"My Lord," he whispered. "Master ... it is beautiful. . . thank you...
thank you. ..."
He scrambled forward on his knees and kissed the hem of Volde-mort's
robes.
"May your loyalty never waver again, Wormtail," said Voldemort.
"No, my Lord . . . never, my Lord . . ."
Wormtail stood up and took his place in the circle, staring at his
powerful new hand, his face still shining with tears. Voldemort now
approached the man on Wormtail's right.
"Lucius, my slippery friend," he whispered, halting before him.
"I am told that you have not renounced the old ways, though to the world
you present a respectable face. You are still ready to take the lead
in a spot of Muggle-torture, I believe? Yet you never tried to find
me, Lucius. . . . Your exploits at the Quidditch World Cup were fun, I
daresay. . . but might not your energies have been bet-ter directed toward
finding and aiding your master?"
"My Lord, I was constantly on the alert," came Lucius Malfoy's voice
swiftly from beneath the hood. "Had there been any sign from you,
any whisper of your whereabouts, I would have been at your side immediately,
nothing could have prevented me -"
"And yet you ran from my Mark, when a faithful Death Eater sent it
into the sky last summer?" said Voldemort lazily, and Mr. Malfoy
stopped talking abruptly. "Yes, I know all about that, Lu-cius. .
. . You have disappointed me. ... I expect more faithful ser-vice in the
future."
"Of course, my Lord, of course. . . . You are merciful, thank you.
..."
Voldemort moved on, and stopped, staring at the space - large enough
for two people - that separated Malfoy and the next man.
"The Lestranges should stand here," said Voldemort quietly. "But
they are entombed in Azkaban. They were faithful. They went
to Azkaban rather than renounce me. . . . When Azkaban is broken open,
the Lestranges will be honored beyond their dreams. The dementors
will join us ... they are our natural allies ... we will recall the banished
giants ... I shall have all my devoted ser-vants returned to me, and an
army of creatures whom all fear. ..."
He walked on. Some of the Death Eaters he passed in silence, but he
paused before others and spoke to them.
"Macnair . . . destroying dangerous beasts for the Ministry of Magic
now, Wormtail tells me? You shall have better victims than that soon,
Macnair. Lord Voldemort will provide. ..."
"Thank you, Master . . . thank you," murmured Macnair.
"And here" - Voldemort moved on to the two largest hooded figures -
"we have Crabbe . . . you will do better this time, will you not, Crabbe?
And you, Goyle?"
They bowed clumsily, muttering dully.
"Yes, Master ..."
"We will, Master...."
"The same goes for you, Nott," said Voldemort quietly as he walked
past a stooped figure in Mr. Goyles shadow.
"My Lord, I prostrate myself before you, I am your most faithful -"
"That will do," said Voldemort.
He had reached the largest gap of all, and he stood surveying it with
his blank, red eyes, as though he could see people standing there.
"And here we have six missing Death Eaters . . . three dead in my service.
One, too cowardly to return ... he will pay. One, who I believe has
left me forever ... he will be killed, of course . . . and one, who remains
my most faithful servant, and who has already reentered my service."
The Death Eaters stirred, and Harry saw their eyes dart sideways at
one another through their masks.
"He is at Hogwarts, that faithful servant, and it was through his efforts
that our young friend arrived here tonight. . . .
"Yes," said Voldemort, a grin curling his lipless mouth as the eyes
of the circle flashed in Harry's direction. "Harry Potter has kindly
joined us for my rebirthing party. One might go so far as to call
him my guest of honor."
There was a silence. Then the Death Eater to the right of Worm-tail
stepped forward, and Lucius Malfoy's voice spoke from under the mask.
"Master, we crave to know ... we beg you to tell us ... how you have
achieved this . . . this miracle . . . how you managed to return to us.
.. ."
"Ah, what a story it is, Lucius," said Voldemort. "And it begins
- and ends - with my young friend here."
He walked lazily over to stand next to Harry, so that the eyes of the
whole circle were upon the two of them. The snake continued to circle.
"You know, of course, that they have called this boy my down-fall?"
Voldemort said softly, his red eyes upon Harry, whose scar began to burn
so fiercely that he almost screamed in agony. "You all know that
on the night I lost my powers and my body, I tried to kill him. His
mother died in the attempt to save him - and unwit-tingly provided him
with a protection I admit I had not fore-seen. ... I could not touch the
boy."
Voldemort raised one of his long white fingers and put it very close
to Harry's cheek.
"His mother left upon him the traces other sacrifice. . . . This is
old magic, I should have remembered it, I was foolish to overlook it...
but no matter. I can touch him now."
Harry felt the cold tip of the long white finger touch him, and thought
his head would burst with the pain. Voldemort laughed softly in his ear,
then took the finger away and continued address-ing the Death Eaters.
"I miscalculated, my friends, I admit it. My curse was deflected
by the woman's foolish sacrifice, and it rebounded upon myself. Aaah
. . . pain beyond pain, my friends; nothing could have pre-pared me for
it. I was ripped from my body, I was less than spirit, less than
the meanest ghost. . . but still, I was alive. What I was, even I
do not know... I, who have gone further than anybody along the path that
leads to immortality. You know my goal - to conquer death.
And now, I was tested, and it appeared that one or more of my experiments
had worked ... for I had not been killed, though the curse should have
done it. Nevertheless, I was as pow-erless as the weakest creature
alive, and without the means to help myself... for I had no body, and every
spell that might have helped me required the use of a wand. . . .
"I remember only forcing myself, sleeplessly, endlessly, second by
second, to exist. ... I settled in a faraway place, in a forest, and I
waited. . . . Surely, one of my faithful Death Eaters would try and find
me. . . one of them would come and perform the magic I could not, to restore
me to a body . . , but I waited in vain. ..."
The shiver ran once more around the circle of listening Death Eaters.
Voldemort let the silence spiral horribly before continuing.
"Only one power remained to me. I could possess the bodies of
others. But I dared not go where other humans were plentiful, for
I knew that the Aurors were still abroad and searching for me.
I sometimes inhabited animals - snakes, of course, being my pref-erence
- but I was little better off inside them thhan as pure spirit, for their
bodies were ill adapted to perform magic . . . and my pos-session of them
shortened their lives; none of them lasted long. . . .
"Then . . . four years ago . . . the means for my return seemed assured.
A wizard - young, foolish, and gullible - wandered across my path in the
forest I had made my home. Oh, he seemed the very chance I had been
dreaming of... for he was a teacher at Dumbledore's school... he was easy
to bend to my will... he brought me back to this country, and after a while,
I took posses-sion of his body, to supervise him closely as he carried
out my or-ders. But my plan failed. I did not manage to steal
the Sorcerer's Stone. I was not to be assured immortal life.
I was thwarted . . . thwarted, once again, by Harry Potter. ..."
Silence once more; nothing was stirring, not even the leaves on the
yew tree. The Death Eaters were quite motionless, the glitter-ing
eyes in their masks fixed upon Voldemort, and upon Harry.
"The servant died when I left his body, and I was left as weak as ever
I had been," Voldemort continued. "I returned to my hiding place
far away, and I will not pretend to you that I didn't then fear that I
might never regain my powers. . . . Yes, that was perhaps my darkest hour...
I could not hope that I would be sent another wizard to possess . . . and
I had given up hope, now, that any of my Death Eaters cared what had become
of me. ..."
One or two of the masked wizards in the circle moved uncom-fortably,
but Voldemort took no notice.
"And then, not even a year ago, when I had almost abandoned hope, it
happened at last... a servant returned to me. Wormtail here, who
had faked his own death to escape justice, was driven out of hiding by
those he had once counted friends, and decided to re-turn to his master.
He sought me in the country where it had long been rumored I was hiding
. . . helped, of course, by the rats he met along the way. Wormtail
has a curious affinity with rats, do you not, Wormtail? His filthy
little friends told him there was a place, deep in an Albanian forest,
that they avoided, where small animals like themselves had met their deaths
by a dark shadow that possessed them. . . .
"But his journey back to me was not smooth, was it, Wormtail?
For, hungry one night, on the edge of the very forest where he had hoped
to find me, he foolishly stopped at an inn for some food . . . and who
should he meet there, but one Bertha Jorkins, a witch from the Ministry
of Magic.
"Now see the way that fate favors Lord Voldemort. This might
have been the end of Wormtail, and of my last hope for regenera-tion.
But Wormtail - displaying a presence of mind I would never have expected
from him - convinced Bertha Jorkins to accom-pany him on a nighttime stroll.
He overpowered her ... he brought her to me. And Bertha Jorkins,
who might have ruined all, proved instead to be a gift beyond my wildest
dreams ... for - with a lit-tle persuasion - she became a veritable mine
of information.
"She told me that the Triwizard Tournament would be played at Hogwarts
this year. She told me that she knew of a faithful Death Eater who would
be only too willing to help me, if I could only contact him. She
told me many things. . . but the means I used to break the Memory Charm
upon her were powerful, and when I had extracted all useful information
from her, her mind and body were both damaged beyond repair. She
had now served her pur-pose. I could not possess her. I disposed
of her."
Voldemort smiled his terrible smile, his red eyes blank and pitiless.
"Wormtail's body, of course, was ill adapted for possession, as all
assumed him dead, and would attract far too much attention if noticed.
However, he was the able-bodied servant I needed, and, poor wizard though
he is, Wormtail was able to follow the instruc-tions I gave him, which
would return me to a rudimentary, weak body of my own, a body I would be
able to inhabit while awaiting the essential ingredients for true rebirth
... a spell or two of my own invention ... a little help from my dear Nagini,"
Voldemorts red eyes fell upon the continually circling snake, "a potion
con-cocted from unicorn blood, and the snake venom Nagini pro-vided ...
I was soon returned to an almost human form, and strong enough to travel.
"There was no hope of stealing the Sorcerer's Stone anymore, for I
knew that Dumbledore would have seen to it that it was de-stroyed.
But I was willing to embrace mortal life again, before chas-ing immortality.
I set my sights lower ... I would settle for my old body back again, and
my old strength.
"I knew that to achieve this - it is an old piece of Dark Magic, the
potion that revived me tonight - I would need three powerful ingredients.
Well, one of them was already at hand, was it not, Wormtail? Flesh
given by a servant. . . .
"My father's bone, naturally, meant that we would have to come here,
where he was buried. But the blood of a foe ... Wormtail would have had
me use any wizard, would you not, Wormtail? Any wizard who had hated
me ... as so many of them still do. But I knew the one I must use,
if I was to rise again, more powerful than I had been when I had fallen.
I wanted Harry Potters blood. I wanted the blood of the one who had
stripped me of power thir-teen years ago . . . for the lingering protection
his mother once gave him would then reside in my veins too. . . .
"But how to get at Harry Potter? For he has been better pro-tected
than I think even he knows, protected in ways devised by Dumbledore long
ago, when it fell to him to arrange the boy's fu-ture. Dumbledore
invoked an ancient magic, to ensure the boy's protection as long as he
is in his relations' care. Not even I can touch him there. . . .
Then, of course, there was the Quidditch World Cup. ... I thought his protection
might be weaker there, away from his relations and Dumbledore, but I was
not yet strong enough to attempt kidnap in the midst of a horde of Ministry
wiz-ards. And then, the boy would return to Hogwarts, where he is
un-der the crooked nose of that Muggle-loving fool from morning until night.
So how could I take him?
"Why ... by using Bertha Jorkins's information, of course. Use
my one faithful Death Eater, stationed at Hogwarts, to ensure that the
boy's name was entered into the Goblet of Fire. Use my Death Eater to ensure
that the boy won the tournament - that he touched the Triwizard Cup first
- the cup which my Death Eater had turned innto a Portkey, which would bring
him here, beyond the reach of Dumbledore's help and protection, and into
my wait-ing arms. And here he is ... the boy you all believed had
been my downfall. ..."
Voldemort moved slowly forward and turned to face Harry. He raised
his wand.
"Crucio!"
It was pain beyond anything Harry had ever experienced; his very bones
were on fire; his head was surely splitting along his scar; his eyes were
rolling madly in his head; he wanted it to end ... to black out... to die
...
And then it was gone. He was hanging limply in the ropes bind-ing
him to the headstone of Voldemort's father, looking up into those bright
red eyes through a kind of mist. The night was ringing with the sound
of the Death Eaters' laughter.
"You see, I think, how foolish it was to suppose that this boy could
ever have been stronger than me," said Voldemort. "But I want there
to be no mistake in anybody's mind. Harry Potter es-caped me by a lucky
chance. And I am now going to prove my power by killing him, here
and now, in front of you all, when there is no Dumbledore to help him,
and no mother to die for him. I will give him his chance. He
will be allowed to fight, and you will be left in no doubt which of us
is the stronger. Just a little longer, Nagini," he whispered, and
the snake glided away through the grass to where the Death Eaters stood
watching.
"Now untie him, Wormtail, and give him back his wand."
CHAPTER THIRTY-FOUR
PRIORI INCANTATEM
Wormtail approached Harry, who scrambled to find his feet, to support
his own weight before the ropes were un-tied. Wormtail raised his
new silver hand, pulled out the wad of material gagging Harry, and then,
with one swipe, cut through the bonds tying Harry to the gravestone.
There was a split second, perhaps, when Harry might have con-sidered
running for it, but his injured leg shook under him as he stood on the
overgrown grave, as the Death Eaters closed ranks, forming a tighter circle
around him and Voldemort, so that the gaps where the missing Death Eaters
should have stood were filled. Wormtail walked out of the circle
to the place where Cedric's body lay and returned with Harry's wand, which
he thrust roughly into Harry's hand without looking at him. Then
Wormtail resumed his place in the circle of watching Death Eaters.
"You have been taught how to duel. Harry Potter?" said Volde-mort
softly, his red eyes glinting through the darkness.
At these words Harry remembered, as though from a former life, the
dueling club at Hogwarts he had attended briefly two years ago. ... All
he had learned there was the Disarming Spell, "Expelliarmus". . . and what
use would it be to deprive Voldemort of his wand, even if he could, when
he was surrounded by Death Eaters, outnumbered by at least thirty to one?
He had never learned any-thing that could possibly fit him for this.
He knew he was facing the thing against which Moody had always warned .
. . the unblockable Avada Kedavra curse - and Voldemort was right - his
mother was not here to die for him this time. ... He was quite unprotected.
. . .
"We bow to each other. Harry," said Voldemort, bending a little, but
keeping his snakelike face upturned to Harry. "Come, the niceties
must be observed. . . . Dumbledore would like you to show manners. . .
. Bow to death, Harry. ..."
The Death Eaters were laughing again. Voldemorts lipless mouth
was smiling. Harry did not bow. He was not going to let Voldemort
play with him before killing him ... he was not going to give him that
satisfaction. . . .
"I said, bow," Voldemort said, raising his wand - and Harry felt his
spine curve as though a huge, invisible hand were bending him ruthlessly
forward, and the Death Eaters laughed harder than ever.
"Very good," said Voldemort softly, and as he raised his wand the pressure
bearing down upon Harry lifted too. "And now you face me, like a
man . . . straight-backed and proud, the way your father died. . . .
"And now - we duel."
Voldemort raised his wand, and before Harry could do anything to defend
himself, before he could even move, he had been hit again by the Cruciatus
Curse. The pain was so intense, so all-consuming, that he no longer
knew where he was. . . . White-hot knives were piercing every inch of his
skin, his head was surely going to burst with pain, he was screaming more
loudly than he'd ever screamed in his life -
And then it stopped. Harry rolled over and scrambled to his feet; he
was shaking as uncontrollably as Wormtail had done when his hand had been
cut off; he staggered sideways into the wall of watching Death Eaters,
and they pushed him away, back toward Voldemort.
"A little break," said Voldemort, the slit-like nostrils dilating with
excitement, "a little pause . . . That hurt, didn't it. Harry? You
don't want me to do that again, do you?"
Harry didn't answer. He was going to die like Cedric, those piti-less
red eyes were telling him so ... he was going to die, and there was nothing
he could do about it... but he wasn't going to play along. He wasn't
going to obey Voldemort... he wasn't going to beg. . . .
"I asked you whether you want me to do that again," said Volde-mort
softly. "Answer me! Imperial"
And Harry felt, for the third time in his life, the sensation that
his mind had been wiped of all thought. . . . Ah, it was bliss, not to
think, it was as though he were floating, dreaming ...just answer no ...
say no ... just answer no. .. .
I will not, said a stronger voice, in the back of his head, I won't
answer. . . .
Just answer no. . . .
I won't do it, I won't say it. ...
Just answer no. . . .
"I WON'T!"
And these words burst from Harry's mouth; they echoed through the graveyard,
and the dream state was lifted as suddenly as though cold water had been
thrown over him - back rushed the aches that the Cruciatus Curse had left
all over his body - back rushed the realization of where he was, and what
he was facing. . . .
"You won't?" said Voldemort quietly, and the Death Eaters were not
laughing now. "You won't say no? Harry, obedience is a virtue I need
to teach you before you die. . . . Perhaps another little dose of pain?"
Voldemort raised his wand, but this time Harry was ready; with the
reflexes born of his Quidditch training, he flung himself side-ways onto
the ground; he rolled behind the marble headstone of Voldemort s father,
and he heard it crack as the curse missed him.
"We are not playing hide-and-seek, Harry," said Voldemort's soft, cold
voice, drawing nearer, as the Death Eaters laughed. "You can-not
hide from me. Does this mean you are tired of our duel? Does
this mean that you would prefer me to finish it now, Harry? Come
out, Harry . . . come out and play, then ... it will be quick ... it might
even be painless ... I would not know... I have never died. . . ."
Harry crouched behind the headstone and knew the end had come.
There was no hope ... no help to be had. And as he heard Voldemort
draw nearer still, he knew one thing only, and it was be-yond fear or reason:
He was not going to die crouching here like a child playing hide-and-seek;
he was not going to die kneeling at Voldemort s feet... he was going to
die upright like his father, and he was going to die trying to defend himself,
even if no defense was possible. . . .
Before Voldemort could stick his snakelike face around the headstone.
Harry stood up ... he gripped his wand tightly in his hand, thrust it out
in front of him, and threw himself around the headstone, facing Voldemort.
Voldemort was ready. As Harry shouted, "Expelliarmus!" Volde-mort
cried, "Avada Kedavra!"
A jet of green light issued from Voldemorts wand just as a jet of red
light blasted from Harry's - they met in midair - and sud-denly Harry's
wand was vibrating as though an electric charge were surging through it;
his hand seized up around it; he couldn't have released it if he'd wanted
to - and a narrow beam of light con-nected the two wands, neither red nor
green, but bright, deep gold. Harry, following the beam with his
astonished gaze, saw that Voldemort's long white fingers too were gripping
a wand that was shaking and vibrating.
And then - nothing could have prepared Harry for this - he felt his
feet lift from the ground. He and Voldemort were both being raised
into the air, their wands still connected by that thread of shimmering
golden light. They glided away from the tomb-stone of Voldemort's
father and then came to rest on a patch of ground that was clear and free
of graves. . . . The Death Eaters were shouting; they were asking Voldemort
for instructions; they were closing in, reforming the circle around Harry
and Voldemort, the snake slithering at their heels, some of them drawing
their wands -
The golden thread connecting Harry and Voldemort splintered; though
the wands remained connected, a thousand more beams arced high over Harry
and Voldemort, crisscrossing all around them, until they were enclosed
in a golden, dome-shaped web, a
cage of light, beyond which the Death Eaters circled like jackals,
their cries strangely muffled now. . . .
"Do nothing!" Voldemort shrieked to the Death Eaters, and Harry
saw his red eyes wide with astonishment at what was hap-pening, saw him
fighting to break the thread of light still connect-ing his wand with Harry's;
Harry held onto his wand more tightly, with both hands, and the golden
thread remained unbroken. "Do nothing unless I command you!"
Voldemort shouted to the Death Eaters.
And then an unearthly and beautiful sound filled the air. ... It was
coming from every thread of the light-spun web vibrating around Harry and
Voldemort. It was a sound Harry recognized, though he had heard it
only once before in his life: phoenix song.
It was the sound of hope to Harry. . . the most beautiful and welcome
thing he had ever heard in his life. . . . He felt as though the song were
inside him instead of just around him. ... It was the sound he connected
with Dumbledore, and it was almost as though a friend were speaking in
his ear. . . .
Don't break the connection.
I know. Harry told the music, I know I mustn't. . . but no sooner
had he thought it, than the thing became much harder to do. His wand
began to vibrate more powerfully than ever . . . and now the beam between
him and Voldemort changed too ... it was as though large beads of light
were sliding up and down the thread connecting the wands - Harry felt his
wand give a shudder under his hand as the light beads began to slide slowly
and steadily his way. . . . The direction of the beams movement was now
toward him, from Voldemort, and he felt his wand shudder angrily. . . .
As the closest bead of light moved nearer to Harrys wand tip, the wood
beneath his fingers grew so hot he feared it would burst into flame.
The closer that bead moved, the harder Harry's wand vibrated; he was sure
his wand would not survive contact with it; it felt as though it was about
to shatter under his fingers -
He concentrated every last particle of his mind upon forcing the bead
back toward Voldemort, his ears full of phoenix song, his eyes furious,
fixed . . . and slowly, very slowly, the beads quivered to a halt, and
then, just as slowly, they began to move the other way . . . and it was
Voldemort's wand that was vibrating extra-hard now . . . Voldemort who
looked astonished, and almost fearful. . . .
One of the beads of light was quivering, inches from the tip of Voldemorts
wand. Harry didn't understand why he was doing it, didn't know what
it might achieve . . . but he now concentrated as he had never done in
his life on forcing that bead of light right back into Voldemort s wand
. . . and slowly . . . very slowly ... it moved along the golden thread
... it trembled for a moment. . . and then it connected. . . .
At once, Voldemorts wand began to emit echoing screams of pain . .
. then - Voldemort's red eyes widened with shock - a dense, smoky hand
flew out of the tip of it and vanished . . . the ghost of the hand he had
made Wormtail. . . more shouts of pain . . . and then something much larger
began to blossom from Voldemorts wand tip, a great, grayish something,
that looked as though it were made of the solidest, densest smoke. ...
It was a head . . . now a chest and arms . . . the torso of Cedric Diggory.
If ever Harry might have released his wand from shock, it would have
been then, but instinct kept him clutching his wand tightly, so that the
thread of golden light remained unbroken, even though the thick gray ghost
of Cedric Diggory (was it a ghost? it looked so
solid) emerged in its entirety from the end of Voldemort s wand, as
though it were squeezing itself out of a very narrow tunnel. . . and this
shade of Cedric stood up, and looked up and down the golden thread of light,
and spoke.
"Hold on. Harry," it said.
Its voice was distant and echoing. Harry looked at Volde-mort
... his wide red eyes were still shocked ... he had no more expected this
than Harry had . . . and, very dimly. Harry heard the frightened yells
of the Death Eaters, prowling around the edges of the golden dome. .
More screams of pain from the wand . . . and then something else emerged
from its tip ... the dense shadow of a second head, quickly followed by
arms and torso ... an old man Harry had seen only in a dream was now pushing
himself out of the end of the wand just as Cedric had done . . . and his
ghost, or his shadow, or whatever it was, fell next to Cedric's, and surveyed
Harry and Voldemort, and the golden web, and the connected wands, with
mild surprise, leaning on his walking stick. . . .
"He was a real wizard, then?" the old man said, his eyes on Voldemort.
"Killed me, that one did. . . . You fight him, boy. . . ."
But already, yet another head was emerging ... and this head, gray
as a smoky statue, was a woman's. . . . Harry, both arms shak-ing now as
he fought to keep his wand still, saw her drop to the ground and straighten
up like the others, staring. . . .
The shadow of Bertha Jorkins surveyed the battle before her with wide
eyes.
"Don't let go, now!" she cried, and her voice echoed like Cedrics
as though from very far away. "Don't let him get you, Harry - don't
let go!"
She and the other two shadowy figures began to pace around the inner
walls of the golden web, while the Death Eaters flitted around the outside
of it... and Voldemort's dead victims whispered as they circled the duelers,
whispered words of encouragement to Harry, and hissed words Harry couldn't
hear to Voldemort.
And now another head was emerging from the tip of Volde-morts wand
. . . and Harry knew when he saw it who it would be ... he knew, as though
he had expected it from the moment when Cedric had appeared from the wand
. . . knew, because the man appearing was the one he'd thought of more
than any other tonight. . . .
The smoky shadow of a tall man with untidy hair fell to the ground
as Bertha had done, straightened up, and looked at him . . . and Harry,
his arms shaking madly now, looked back into the ghostly face of his father.
"Your mother's coming . . ." he said quietly. "She wants to see
you ... it will be all right.. . hold on. . . ."
And she came. . . first her head, then her body... a young woman with
long hair, the smoky, shadowy form of Lily Potter blossomed from the end
of Voldemort's wand, fell to the ground, and straightened like her husband.
She walked close to Harry, looking down at him, and she spoke in the same
distant, echoing voice as the others, but quietly, so that Voldemort, his
face now livid with fear as his victims prowled around him, could not hear.
. ..
"When the connection is broken, we will linger for only mo-ments .
. . but we will give you time. . . you must get to the Portkey, it will
return you to Hogwarts ... do you understand, Harry?"
"Yes," Harry gasped, fighting now to keep a hold on his wand, which
was slipping and sliding beneath his fingers.
"Harry . . ." whispered the figure of Cedric, "take my body back, will
you? Take my body back to my parents, ..."
"I will," said Harry, his face screwed up with the effort of hold-ing
the wand.
"Do it now," whispered his father's voice, "be ready to run . . . do
it now. ..."
"NOW!" Harry yelled; he didn't think he could have held on for
another moment anyway - he pulled his wand upward with an almighty wrench,
and the golden thread broke; the cage of light vanished, the phoenix song
died - but the shadowy figures of Voldemort's victims did not disappear
- they were closing in upon Voldemort, shiellding Harry from his gaze -
And Harry ran as he had never run in his life, knocking two stunned
Death Eaters aside as he passed; he zigzagged behind head-stones, feeling
their curses following him, hearing them hit the headstones - he was dodging
curses and graves, pelting toward Cedric's body, no longer aware of the
pain in his leg, his whole be-ing concentrated on what he had to do -
"Stun him!" he heard Voldemort scream.
Ten feet from Cedric, Harry dived behind a marble angel to avoid the
jets of red light and saw the tip of its wing shatter as the spells hit
it. Gripping his wand more tightly, he dashed out from behind the
angel -
"Impedimenta!" he bellowed, pointing his wand wildly over his shoulder
at the Death Eaters running at him.
From a muffled yell, he thought he had stopped at least one of them,
but there was no time to stop and look; he jumped over the cup and dived
as he heard more wand blasts behind him; more jets of light flew over his
head as he fell, stretching out his hand to grab Cedric's arm...
"Stand aside! I will kill him! He is mine!" shrieked Voldemort.
Harry's hand had closed on Cedric's wrist; one tombstone stood between
him and Voldemort, but Cedric was too heavy to carry, and the cup was out
of reach -
Voldemort's red eyes flamed in the darkness. Harry saw his mouth curl
into a smile, saw him raise his wand.
"Accio!" Harry yelled, pointing his wand at the Triwizard Cup.
It flew into the air and soared toward him. Harry caught it by the
handle -
He heard Voldemort s scream of fury at the same moment that he felt
the jerk behind his navel that meant the Portkey had worked - it was speeding
him away in a whirl of wind and color, and Cedric along with him. . . .
They were going back.
CHAPTER THIRTY-FIVE
VERITASERUM
Harry felt himself slam flat into the ground; his face was pressed into
grass; the smell of it filled his nostrils. He had closed his eyes
while the Portkey transported him, and he kept them closed now. He
did not move. All the breath seemed to have been knocked out of him;
his head was swimming so badly he felt as though the ground beneath him
were swaying like the deck of a ship. To hold himself steady, he
tightened his hold on the two things he was still clutching: the smooth,
cold handle of the Tri-wizard Cup and Cedric's body. He felt as though
he would slide away into the blackness gathering at the edges of his brain
if he let go of either of them. Shock and exhaustion kept him on
the ground, breathing in the smell of the grass, waiting . . . waiting
for someone to do something . . . something to happen . . . and all the
while, his scar burned dully on his forehead. . . .
A torrent of sound deafened and confused him; there were voices everywhere,
footsteps, screams. ... He remained where he was, his face screwed up against
the noise, as though it were a nightmare that would pass. . . .
Then a pair of hands seized him roughly and turned him over.
"Harry! Harry!"
He opened his eyes.
He was looking up at the starry sky, and Albus Dumbledore was crouched
over him. The dark shadows of a crowd of people pressed in around them,
pushing nearer; Harry felt the ground beneath his head reverberating with
their footsteps.
He had come back to the edge of the maze. He could see the stands
rising above him, the shapes of people moving in them, the stars above.
Harry let go of the cup, but he clutched Cedric to him even more tightly.
He raised his free hand and seized Dumbledore's wrist, while Dumbledore's
face swam in and out of focus.
"He's back," Harry whispered. "He's back. Voldemort."
"What's going on? What's happened?"
The face of Cornelius Fudge appeared upside down over Harry; it looked
white, appalled.
"My God - Diggory!" it whispered. "Dumbledore - he's dead!"
The words were repeated, the shadowy figures pressing in on them gasped
it to those around them . . . and then others shouted it - screeched it
- into the night - "He's dead!" "He's dead!" "Cedric Diggory!
Dead!"
"Harry, let go of him," he heard Fudge's voice say, and he felt fingers
trying to pry him from Cedric's limp body, but Harry wouldn't let him go.
Then Dumbledore's face, which was still blurred and misted, came closer.
"Harry, you can't help him now. It's over. Let go."
"He wanted me to bring him back," Harry muttered - it seemed important
to explain this. "He wanted me to bring him back to his parents.
..."
"That's right. Harry . . . just let go now. . . ."
Dumbledore bent down, and with extraordinary strength for a man so
old and thin, raised Harry from the ground and set -him on his feet.
Harry swayed. His head was pounding. His injured leg would no longer
support his weight. The crowd around them jostled, fighting to get
closer, pressing darkly in on him - "What's hap-pened?" "What's wrong
with him?" "Diggorys dead!"
"He'll need to go to the hospital wing!" Fudge was saying loudly.
"He's ill, he's injured - Dumbledore, Diggory's parents, they're here,
they're in the stands. ..."
"I'll take Harry, Dumbledore, I'll take him -"
"No, I would prefer-"
"Dumbledore, Amos Diggorys running . . . he's coming over. . . . Don't
you think you should tell him - before he sees - ?"
"Harry, stay here -"
Girls were screaming, sobbing hysterically.... The scene flick-ered
oddly before Harry's eyes. . . .
"Its all right, son, I've got you . . . come on ... hospital wing .
. ."
"Dumbledore said stay," said Harry thickly, the pounding in his scar
making him feel as though he was about to throw up; his vi-sion was blurring
worse than ever.
"You need to lie down. . .. Come on now...."
Someone larger and stronger than he was was half pulling, half carrying
him through the frightened crowd. Harry heard people gasping, screaming,
and shouting as the man supporting him pushed a path through them, taking
him back to the castle. Across the lawn, past the lake and the Durmstrang
ship, Harry heard nothing but the heavy breathing of the man helping him
walk.
"What happened. Harry?" the man asked at last as he lifted Harry
up the stone steps. Clunk. Clunk. Clunk. It was Mad-Eye
Moody.
"Cup was a Portkey," said Harry as they crossed the entrance hall.
"Took me and Cedric to a graveyard . . . and Voldemort was there . . .
Lord Voldemort..."
Clunk. Clunk. Clunk. Up the marble stairs . . .
"The Dark Lord was there? What happened then?"
"Killed Cedric . . . they killed Cedric. . . ."
"And then?"
Clunk. Clunk. Clunk. Along the corridor . . .
"Made a potion . . . got his body back. . . ."
"The Dark Lord got his body back? He's returned?"
"And the Death Eaters came . . . and then we dueled. ..."
"You dueled with the Dark Lord?"
"Got away . . . my wand . . . did something funny. ... I saw my mum
and dad . . . they came out of his wand. ..."
"In here. Harry ... in here, and sit down. . . . You'll be all right
now . . . drink this. ..."
Harry heard a key scrape in a lock and felt a cup being pushed into
his hands.
"Drink it... you'll feel better . . . come on, now. Harry, I
need to know exactly what happened. ..."
Moody helped tip the stuff down Harrys throat; he coughed, a peppery
taste burning his throat. Moody's office came into sharper focus, and so
did Moody himself. ... He looked as white as Fudge had looked, and both
eyes were fixed unblinkingly upon Harry's face.
"Voldemort's back, Harry? You're sure he's back? How did
he do it?"
"He took stuff from his father's grave, and from Wormtail, and me,"
said Harry. His head felt clearer; his scar wasn't hurting so badly;
he could now see Moodys face distinctly, even though the office was dark.
He could still hear screaming and shouting from the distant Quidditch field.
"What did the Dark Lord take from you?" said Moody.
"Blood," said Harry, raising his arm. His sleeve was ripped where
Wormtail's dagger had torn it.
Moody let out his breath in a long, low hiss.
"And the Death Eaters? They returned?"
"Yes," said Harry. "Loads of them . . ."
"How did he treat them?" Moody asked quietly. "Did he forgive
them?"
But Harry had suddenly remembered. He should have told Dumbledore,
he should have said it straightaway -
"There's a Death Eater at Hogwarts! There's a Death Eater here
- they put my name in the Goblet of Fire, thhey made sure I got through
to the end -"
Harry tried to get up, but Moody pushed him back down.
"I know who the Death Eater is," he said quietly.
"Karkaroff?" said Harry wildly. "Where is he? Have
you got him? Is he locked up?"
"Karkaroff?" said Moody with an odd laugh. "Karkaroff fled tonight,
when he felt the Dark Mark burn upon his arm. He betrayed too many
faithful supporters of the Dark Lord to wish to meet them . . . but I doubt
he will get far. The Dark Lord has ways of tracking his enemies."
"Karkaroff's gone? He ran away? But then - he didn't put
my name in the goblet?"
"No," said Moody slowly. "No, he didn't. It was I who did
that."
Harry heard, but didn't believe.
"No, you didn't," he said. "You didn't do that. . . you can't
have done..."
"I assure you I did," said Moody, and his magical eye swung around
and fixed upon the door, and Harry knew he was making sure that there was
no one outside it. At the same time, Moody drew out his wand and
pointed it at Harry.
"He forgave them, then?" he said. "The Death Eaters who
went free? The ones who escaped Azkaban?"
"What?" said Harry.
He was looking at the wand Moody was pointing at him. This was
a bad joke, it had to be.
"I asked you," said Moody quietly, "whether he forgave the scum who
never even went to look for him. Those treacherous cowards who wouldn't
even brave Azkaban for him. The faithless, worthless bits of filth
who were brave enough to cavort in masks at the Quid-ditch World Cup, but
fled at the sight of the Dark Mark when I fired it into the sky."
"You fired . . . What are you talking about. . . ?"
"I told you. Harry ... I told you. If there's one thing I hate
more than any other, it's a Death Eater who walked free. They turned
their backs on my master when he needed them most. I expected him
to punish them. I expected him to torture them. Tell me he
hurt them, Harry. . . ." Moody's face was suddenly lit with an
in-sane smile. "Tell me he told them that I, I alone remained faith-ful...
prepared to risk everything to deliver to him the one thing he wanted above
all... you"
"You didn't... it - it can't be you. ..."
"Who put your name in the Goblet of Fire, under the name of a different
school? I did. Who frightened off every person I thought might try
to hurt you or prevent you from winning the tourna-ment? I did.
Who nudged Hagrid into showing you the dragons? I did. Who
helped you see the only way you could beat the dragon? I did"
Moody's magical eye had now left the door. It was fixed upon
Harry. His lopsided mouth leered more widely than ever.
"It hasn't been easy, Harry, guiding you through these tasks without
arousing suspicion. I have had to use every ounce of cun-ning I possess,
so that my hand would not be detectable in your success. Dumbledore
would have been very suspicious if you had managed everything too easily.
As long as you got into that maze, preferably with a decent head start
- then, I knew, I would have a chance of gettting rid of the other champions
and leaving your way clear. But I also had to contend with your stupidity.
The second task . . . that was when I was most afraid we would fail.
I was keep-ing watch on you, Potter. I knew you hadn't worked out
the egg's clue, so I had to give you another hint -"
"You didn't," Harry said hoarsely. "Cedric gave me the clue -"
"Who told Cedric to open it underwater? I did. I trusted
that he would pass the information on to you. Decent people are so
easy to manipulate, Potter. I was sure Cedric would want to repay
you for telling him about the dragons, and so he did. But even then,
Potter, even then you seemed likely to fail. I was watching all
the time ... all those hours in the library. Didn't you realize that
the book you needed was in your dormitory all along? I planted it
there early on, I gave it to the Longbottom boy, don't you remember?
Magical Water Plants of the Mediterranean. It would have told you
all you needed to know about gillyweed. I expected you to ask everyone
and anyone you could for help. Longbottom would have told you in
an instant. But you did not. . . you did not. . . . You have a streak
of pride and independence that might have ruined all.
"So what could I do? Feed you information from another inno-cent
source. You told me at the Yule Ball a house-elf called Dobby had
given you a Christmas present. I called the elf to the staffroom
to collect some robes for cleaning. I staged a loud conversation
with Professor McGonagall about the hostages who had been taken, and whether
Potter would think to use gillyweed. And your little elf friend ran
straight to Snape's office and then hurried to find you..."
Moodys wand was still pointing directly at Harry's heart. Over
his shoulder, foggy shapes were moving in the Foe-Glass on the wall.
"You were so long in that lake, Potter, I thought you had drowned.
But luckily, Dumbledore took your idiocy for nobility, and marked you high
for it. I breathed again.
"You had an easier time of it than you should have in that maze tonight,
of course," said Moody. "I was patrolling around it, able to see
through the outer hedges, able to curse many obstacles out of your way.
I Stunned Fleur Delacour as she passed. I put the Im-perius Curse
on Krum, so that he would finish Diggory and leave your path to the cup
clear."
Harry stared at Moody. He just didn't see how this could be.
... Dumbledore's friend, the famous Auror. . . the one who had caught so
many Death Eaters ... It made no sense ... no sense at all. ...
The foggy shapes in the Foe-Glass were sharpening, had become more
distinct. Harry could see the outlines of three people over Moody's
shoulder, moving closer and closer. But Moody wasn't watching them.
His magical eye was upon Harry.
"The Dark Lord didn't manage to kill you. Potter, and he so wanted
to," whispered Moody. "Imagine how he will reward me when he finds
I have done it for him. I gave you to him - the thing he needed above
all to regenerate - and then I killed you for him. I will be honored
beyond all other Death Eaters. I will be his dearest, his closest
supporter . . . closer than a son. ..."
Moody's normal eye was bulging, the magical eye fixed upon Harry.
The door was barred, and Harry knew he would never reach his own wand in
time. . . .
"The Dark Lord and I," said Moody, and he looked completely insane
now, towering over Harry, leering down at him, "have much in common.
Both of us, for instance, had very disappointing fathers . . . very disappointing
indeed. Both of us suffered the in-dignity, Harry, of being named
after those fathers. And both of us had the pleasure . . . the very
great pleasure ... of killing our fathers to ensure the continued rise
of the Dark Order!"
"You're mad," Harry said - he couldn't stop himself- "you're mad!"
"Mad, am I?" said Moody, his voice rising uncontrollably. "We'll
see! We'll see who's mad, now that the Dark Lord has returned, with
me at his side! He is back, Harry Potter, you did not conquer him
- and now - I conquer you!"
Moody raised his wand, he opened his mouth; Harry plunged his own hand
into his robes -
"Stupefy!" There was a blinding flash of red light, and with
a great splintering and crashing, the door of Moody's office was blasted
apart -
Moody was thrown backward onto the office floor. Harry, still
staring at the place where Moody's face had been, saw Albus Dum-bledore,
Professor Snape, and Professor McGonagall looking back at him out of the
Foe-Glass. He looked around and saw the three of them standing in
the doorway, Dumbledore in front, his wand outstretched.
At that moment, Harry fully understood for the first time why people
said Dumbledore was the only wizard Voldemort had ever feared. The
look upon Dumbledore's face as he stared down at the unconscious form of
Mad-Eye Moody was more terrible than Harry could have ever imagined.
There was no benign smile upon Dumbledore's face, no twinkle in the eyes
behind the spectacles. There was cold fury in every line of the ancient
face; a sense of power radiated from Dumbledore as though he were giving
off burning heat.
He stepped into the office, placed a foot underneath Moodys unconscious
body, and kicked him over onto his back, so that his face was visible.
Snape followed him, looking into the Foe-Glass, where his own face was
still visible, glaring into the room. Profes-sor McGonagall went
straight to Harry.
"Come along, Potter," she whispered. The thin line of her mouth
was twitching as though she was about to cry. "Come along . . . hospital
wing ..."
"No," said Dumbledore sharply.
"Dumbledore, he ought to - look at him - he's been through enough tonight
-"
"He will stay, Minerva, because he needs to understand," said Dumbledore
curtly. "Understanding is the first step to acceptance, and only with acceptance
can there be recovery. He needs to know who has put him through the ordeal
he has suffered tonight, and why,"
"Moody," Harry said. He was still in a state of complete disbe-lief.
"How can it have been Moody?"
"This is not Alastor Moody," said Dumbledore quietly. "You have
never known Alastor Moody. The real Moody would not have removed
you from my sight after what happened tonight. The mo-ment he took
you, I knew - and I followed."
Dumbledore bent down over Moody's limp form and put a hand inside his
robes. He pulled out Moody's hip flask and a set of keys on a ring.
Then he turned to Professors McGonagall and Snape.
"Severus, please fetch me the strongest Truth Potion you possess, and
then go down to the kitchens and bring up the house-elf called Winky.
Minerva, kindly go down to Hagrid's house, where you will find a large
black dog sitting in the pumpkin patch. Take the dog up to my office,
tell him I will be with him shortly, then come back here."
If either Snape or McGonagall found these instructions peculiar, they
hid their confusion. Both turned at once and left the office. Dumbledore
walked over to the trunk with seven locks, fitted the first key in the
lock, and opened it. It contained a mass of spell-books. Dumbledore
closed the trunk, placed a second key in the second lock, and opened the
trunk again. The spellbooks had van-ished; this time it contained
an assortment of broken Sneako-scopes, some parchment and quills, and what
looked like a silvery Invisibility Cloak. Harry watched, astounded,
as Dumbledore placed the third, fourth, fifth, and sixth keys in their
respective locks, reopening the trunk each time, and revealing different
con-tents each time. Then he placed the seventh key in the lock,
threw open the lid, and Harry let out a cry of amazement.
He was looking down into a kind of pit, an underground room, and lying
on the floor some ten feet below, apparently fast asleep, thin and starved
in appearance, was the real Mad-Eye Moody. His wooden leg was gone,
the socket that should have held the magical eye looked empty beneath its
lid, and chunks of his grizzled hair were missing. Harry stared,
thunderstruck, between the sleeping Moody in the trunk and the unconscious
Moody lying on the floor of the office.
Dumbledore climbed into the trunk, lowered himself, and fell lightly
onto the floor beside the sleeping Moody. He bent over him.
"Stunned - controlled by the Imperius Curse - very weak," he said.
"Of course, they would have needed to keep him alive. Harry, throw
down the imposter's cloak - he's freezing. Madam Pomfrey will need to see
him, but he seems in no immediate danger."
Harry did as he was told; Dumbledore covered Moody in the cloak, tucked
it around him, and clambered out of the trunk again. Then he picked
up the hip flask that stood upon the desk, unscrewed it, and turned it
over. A thick glutinous liquid splattered onto the office floor.
"Polyjuice Potion, Harry," said Dumbledore. "You see the sim-plicity
of it, and the brilliance. For Moody never does drink except from
his hip flask, he's well known for it. The imposter needed, of course,
to keep the real Moody close by, so that he could continue making the potion.
You see his hair ..." Dumbledore looked down on the Moody in the
trunk. "The imposter has been cutting it off all year, see where
it is uneven? But I think, in the excitement of tonight, our fake
Moody might have forgotten to take it as frequendy as he should have done
... on the hour . . . every hour. . . . We shall see."
Dumbledore pulled out the chair at the desk and sat down upon it, his
eyes fixed upon the unconscious Moody on the floor. Harry stared
at him too. Minutes passed in silence... .
Then, before Harry's very eyes, the face of the man on the floor began
to change. The scars were disappearing, the skin was becom-ing smooth;
the mangled nose became whole and started to shrink. The long mane
of grizzled gray hair was withdrawing into the scalp and turning the color
of straw. Suddenly, with a loud clunk, the wooden leg fell away as
a normal leg regrew in its place; next mo-ment, the magical eyeball had
popped out of the man's face as a real eye replaced it; it rolled away
across the floor and continued to swivel in every direction.
Harry saw a man lying before him, pale-skinned, slightly freck-led,
with a mop of fair hair. He knew who he was. He had seen him
in Dumbledore's Pensieve, had watched him being led away from court by
the dementors, trying to convince Mr. Crouch that he was innocent. . .
but he was lined around the eyes now and looked much older. . . .
There were hurried footsteps outside in the corridor. Snape had
returned with Winky at his heels. Professor McGonagall was right
behind them.
"Crouch!" Snape said, stopping dead in the doorway. "Barty
Crouch!"
"Good heavens," said Professor McGonagall, stopping dead and staring
down at the man on the floor.
Filthy, disheveled, Winky peered around Snape's legs. Her mouth
opened wide and she let out a piercing shriek.
"Master Barty, Master Barty, what is you doing here?"
She flung herself forward onto the young man's chest.
"You is killed him! You is killed him! You is killed Master's
son!"
"He is simply Stunned, Winky," said Dumbledore. "Step aside,
please. Severus, you have the potion?"
Snape handed Dumbledore a small glass bottle of completely clear liquid:
the Veritaserum with which he had threatened Harry in class. Dumbledore
got up, bent over the man on the floor, and pulled him into a sitting position
against the wall beneath the Foe-Glass, in which the reflections of Dumbledore,
Snape, and McGonagall were still glaring down upon them all. Winky
re-mained on her knees, trembling, her hands over her face. Dum-bledore
forced the mans mouth open and poured three drops inside it. Then
he pointed his wand at the mans chest and said, "Ennervate."
Crouch's son opened his eyes. His face was slack, his gaze unfo-cused.
Dumbledore knelt before him, so that their faces were level.
"Can you hear me?" Dumbledore asked quietly.
The man's eyelids flickered.
"Yes," he muttered.
"I would like you to tell us," said Dumbledore softly, "how you came
to be here. How did you escape from Azkaban?"
Crouch took a deep, shuddering breath, then began to speak in a flat,
expressionless voice.
"My mother saved me. She knew she was dying. She persuaded
my father to rescue me as a last favor to her. He loved her as he
had never loved me. He agreed. They came to visit me.
They gave me a draft of Polyjuice Potion containing one of my mother's
hairs. She took a draft of Polyjuice Potion containing one of my
hairs. We took on each other's appearance."
Winky was shaking her head, trembling.
"Say no more. Master Barty, say no more, you is getting your
father into trouble!"
But Crouch took another deep breath and continued in the same flat
voice.
"The dementors are blind. They sensed one healthy, one dying
person entering Azkaban. They sensed one healthy, one dying per-son
leaving it. My father smuggled me out, disguised as my mother, in
case any prisoners were watching through their doors.
"My mother died a short while afterward in Azkaban. She was careful
to drink Polyjuice Potion until the end. She was buried un-der my
name and bearing my appearance. Everyone believed her to be me."
The man's eyelids flickered.
"And what did your father do with you, when he had got you home?"
said Dumbledore quietly.
"Staged my mother's death. A quiet, private funeral. That
grave is empty. The house-elf nursed me back to health. Then
I had to be concealed. I had to be controlled. My father had
to use a number of spells to subdue me. When I had recovered my strength,
I thought only of finding my master . . . of returning to his service."
"How did your father subdue you?" said Dumbledore.
"The Imperius Curse," Moody said. "I was under my fathers control.
I was forced to wear an Invisibility Cloak day and night. I was always
with the house-elf. She was my keeper and caretaker. She pitied
me. She persuaded my father to give me occasional treats. Rewards
for my good behavior."
"Master Barty, Master Barty," sobbed Winky through her hands.
"You isn't ought to tell them, we is getting in trouble. ..."
"Did anybody ever discover that you were still alive?" said Dum-bledore
softly. "Did anyone know except your father and the house-elf?"
"Yes," said Crouch, his eyelids flickering again. "A witch in
my father's office. Bertha Jorkins. She came to the house with
papers for my father s signature. He was not at home. Winky showed
her inside and returned to the kitchen, to me. But Bertha Jorkins
heard Winky talking to me. She came to investigate. She heard
enough to guess who was hiding under the Invisibility Cloak. My father
ar-rived home. She confronted him. He put a very powerful Memory
Charm on her to make her forget what she'd found out. Too pow-erful.
He said it damaged her memory permanently."
"Why is she coming to nose into my masters private business?"
sobbed Winky. "Why isn't she leaving us be?"
"Tell me about the Quidditch World Cup," said Dumbledore.
"Winky talked my father into it," said Crouch, still in the same monotonous
voice. "She spent months persuading him. I had not left the
house for years. I had loved Quidditch. Let him go, she said.
He will be in his Invisibility Cloak. He can watch. Let him
smell fresh air for once. She said my mother would have wanted it.
She told my father that my mother had died to give me freedom. She
had not saved me for a life of imprisonment. He agreed in the end.
"It was carefully planned. My father led me and Winky up to the
Top Box early in the day. Winky was to say that she was saving a
seat for my father. I was to sit there, invisible. When everyone
had left the box, we would emerge. Winky would appear to be alone.
Nobody would ever know.
"But Winky didn't know that I was growing stronger. I was start-ing
to fight my father's Imperius Curse. There were times when I was
almost myself again. There were brief periods when I seemed outside
his control. It happened, there, in the Top Box. It was like
waking from a deep sleep. I found myself out in public, in the mid-dle
of the match, and I saw, in front of me, a wand sticking out of a boys
pocket. I had not been allowed a wand since before Azka-ban.
I stole it. Winky didn't know. Winky is frightened of heights.
She had her face hidden."
"Master Barty, you bad boy!" whispered Winky, tears trickling
between her fingers.
"So you took the wand," said Dumbledore, "and what did you do with
it?"
"We went back to the tent," said Crouch. "Then we heard them.
We heard the Death Eaters. The ones who had never been to Azka-ban.
The ones who had never suffered for my master. They had turned their
backs on him. They were not enslaved, as I was. They were free
to seek him, but they did not. They were merely making sport of Muggles.
The sound of their voices awoke me. My mind was clearer than it had
been in years. I was angry. I had the wand.
I wanted to attack them for their disloyalty to my master. My
father had left the tent; he had gone to free the Muggles. Winky
was afraid to see me so angry. She used her own brand of magic to
bind me to her. She pulled me from the tent, pulled me into the forest,
away from the Death Eaters. I tried to hold her back. I wanted
to return to the campsite. I wanted to show those Death Eaters what
loyalty to the Dark Lord meant, and to punish them for their lack of it.
I used the stolen wand to cast the Dark Mark into the sky.
"Ministry wizards arrived. They shot Stunning Spells every-where.
One of the spells came through the trees where Winky and I stood.
The bond connecting us was broken. We were both Stunned.
"When Winky was discovered, my father knew I must be nearby.
He searched the bushes where she had been found and felt me lying there.
He waited until the other Ministry members had left the forest. He
put me back under the Imperius Curse and took me home. He dismissed
Winky. She had failed him. She had let me acquire a wand.
She had almost let me escape."
Winky let out a wail of despair.
"Now it was just Father and I, alone in the house. And then .
. . and then . . ." Crouch's head rolled on his neck, and an insane grin
spread across his face. "My master came for me.
"He arrived at our house late one night in the arms of his servant
Wormtail. My master had found out that I was still alive. He
had captured Bertha Jorkins in Albania. He had tortured her.
She told him a great deal. She told him about the Triwizard Tournament.
She told him the old Auror, Moody, was going to teach at Hog-warts.
He tortured her until he broke through the Memory Charm my father had placed
upon her. She told him I had escaped from Azkaban. She told him my
father kept me imprisoned to prevent me from seeking my master. And
so my master knew that I was still his faithful servant - perhaps the most
faithful of all. My master conceived a plan, based upon the information
Bertha had given him. He needed me. He arrived at our house
near midnight. My father answered the door."
The smile spread wider over Crouch's face, as though recalling the
sweetest memory of his life. Winky's petrified brown eyes were visible
through her fingers. She seemed too appalled to speak.
"It was very quick. My father was placed under the Imperius Curse
by my master. Now my father was the one imprisoned, con-trolled.
My master forced him to go about his business as usual, to act as though
nothing was wrong. And I was released. I awoke. I was
myself again, alive as I hadn't been in years.
"And what did Lord Voldemort ask you to do?" said Dumble-dore.
"He asked me whether I was ready to risk everything for him.
I was ready. It was my dream, my greatest ambition, to serve him,
to prove myself to him. He told me he needed to place a faithful
ser-vant at Hogwarts. A servant who would guide Harry Potter through
the Triwizard Tournament without appearing to do so. A servant who
would watch over Harry Potter. Ensure he reached the Triwizard Cup.
Turn the cup into a Portkey, which would take the first person to touch
it to my master. But first -"
"You needed Alastor Moody," said Dumbledore. His blue eyes were
blazing, though his voice remained calm.
"Wormtail and I did it. We had prepared the Polyjuice Potion
beforehand. We journeyed to his house. Moody put up a struggle.
There was a commotion. We managed to subdue him just in time.
Forced him into a compartment of his own magical trunk. Took some
of his hair and added it to the potion. I drank it; I became Moody's
double. I took his leg and his eye. I was ready to face Arthur
Weasley when he arrived to sort out the Muggles who had heard a disturbance.
I made the dustbins move around the yard. I told Arthur Weasley I
had heard intruders in my yard, who had set off the dustbins. Then
I packed up Moody's clothes and Dark detectors, put them in the trunk with
Moody, and set off for Hog-warts. I kept him alive, under the Imperius
Curse. I wanted to be able to question him. To find out about
his past, learn his habits, so that I could fool even Dumbledore.
I also needed his hair to make the Polyjuice Potion. The other ingredients
were easy. I stole boom-slang skin from the dungeons. When the Potions
master found me in his office, I said I was under orders to search it."
"And what became of Wormtail after you attacked Moody?" said
Dumbledore.
"Wormtail returned to care for my master, in my father's house, and
to keep watch over my father."
"But your father escaped," said Dumbledore.
"Yes. After a while he began to fight the Imperius Curse just
as I had done. There were periods when he knew what was happening.
My master decided it was no longer safe for my father to leave the house.
He forced him to send letters to the Ministry instead. He made him
write and say he was ill. But Wormtail neglected his duty.
He was not watchful enough. My father escaped. My master guessed
that he was heading for Hogwarts. My father was going to tell Dumbledore
everything, to confess. He was going to admit that he had smuggled
me from Azkaban.
"My master sent me word of my father's escape. He told me to
stop him at all costs. So I waited and watched. I used the map I
had taken from Harry Potter. The map that had almost ruined everything."
"Map?" said Dumbledore quickly. "What map is this?"
"Potter's map of Hogwarts. Potter saw me on it. Potter
saw me stealing more ingredients for the Polyjuice Potion from Snape's
of-fice one night. He thought I was my father. We have the same first
name. I took the map from Potter that night. I told him my
father hated Dark wizards. Potter believed my father was after Snape.
"For a week I waited for my father to arrive at Hogwarts. At
last, one evening, the map showed my father entering the grounds.
I pulled on my Invisibility Cloak and went down to meet him. He was
walking around the edge of the forest. Then Potter came, and Krum.
I waited. I could not hurt Potter; my master needed him.
Potter ran to get Dumbledore. I Stunned Krum. I killed my father."
"Noooo!" wailed Winky. "Master Barty, Master Barty, what
is you saying?"
"You killed your father," Dumbledore said, in the same soft voice.
"What did you do with the body?"
"Carried it into the forest. Covered it with the Invisibility
Cloak. I had the map with me. I watched Potter run into the
castle. He met Snape. Dumbledore joined them. I watched
Potter bringing Dumbledore out of the castle. I walked back out of
the forest, dou-bled around behind them, went to meet them. I told
Dumbledore Snape had told me where to come.
"Dumbledore told me to go and look for my father. I went back
to my father's body. Watched the map. When everyone was gone, I Transfigured
my father's body. He became a bone ... I buried it, while wearing
the Invisibility Cloak, in the freshly dug earth in front of Hagrid's cabin."
There was complete silence now, except for Winky's continued sobs.
Then Dumbledore said, "And tonight. . ."
"I offered to carry the Triwizard Cup into the maze before din-ner,"
whispered Barty Crouch. "Turned it into a Portkey. My mas-ter's
plan worked. He is returned to power and I will be honored by him
beyond the dreams of wizards."
The insane smile lit his features once more, and his head drooped onto
his shoulder as Winky wailed and sobbed at his side.
CHAPTER THIRTY-SIX
THE PARTING OF THE WAYS
Dumbledore stood up. He stared down at Barty Crouch for a moment
with disgust on his face. Then he raised his wand once more and ropes
flew out of it, ropes that twisted themselves around Barty Crouch, binding
him tightly. He turned to Professor McGonagall.
"Minerva, could I ask you to stand guard here while I take Harry upstairs?"
"Of course," said Professor McGonagall. She looked slightly nauseous,
as though she had just watched someone being sick. However, when
she drew out her wand and pointed it at Barty Crouch, her hand was quite
steady.
"Severus" - Dumbledore turned to Snape - "please tell Madam Pomfrey
to come down here; we need to get Alastor Moody into the hospital wing.
Then go down into the grounds, find Cornelius Fudge, and bring him up to
this office. He will undoubtedly want to question Crouch himself.
Tell him I will be in the hospital wing in half an hour's time if he needs
me."
Snape nodded silently and swept out of the room.
"Harry?" Dumbledore said gently.
Harry got up and swayed again; the pain in his leg, which he had not
noticed all the time he had been listening to Crouch, now re-turned in
full measure. He also realized that he was shaking. Dum-bledore
gripped his arm and helped him out into the dark corridor.
"I want you to come up to my office first. Harry," he said quiedy as
they headed up the passageway. "Sirius is waiting for us there."
Harry nodded. A kind of numbness and a sense of complete un-reality
were upon him, but he did not care; he was even glad of it. He didn't
want to have to think about anything that had happened since he had first
touched the Triwizard Cup. He didn't want to have to examine the
memories, fresh and sharp as photographs, which kept flashing across his
mind. Mad-Eye Moody, inside the trunk. Wormtail, slumped on
the ground, cradling his stump of an arm. Voldemort, rising from the steaming
cauldron. Cedric. . . dead . . . Cedric, asking to be returned to
his parents. . . .
"Professor," Harry mumbled, "where are Mr. and Mrs. Diggory?"
"They are with Professor Sprout," said Dumbledore. His voice,
which had been so calm throughout the interrogation of Barty Crouch, shook
very slightly for the first time. "She was Head of Cedric's house,
and knew him best."
They had reached the stone gargoyle. Dumbledore gave the password,
it sprang aside, and he and Harry went up the moving spiral staircase to
the oak door. Dumbledore pushed it open. Sirius was standing there.
His face was white and gaunt as it had been when he had escaped Azkaban.
In one swift moment, he had crossed the room.
"Harry, are you all right? I knew it - I knew something like
this - what happened?"
His hands shook as he helped Harry into a chair in front of the desk.
"What happened?" he asked more urgently.
Dumbledore began to tell Sirius everything Barty Crouch had said.
Harry was only half listening. So tired every bone in his body was
aching, he wanted nothing more than to sit here, undisturbed, for hours
and hours, until he fell asleep and didn't have to think or feel anymore.
There was a soft rush of wings. Fawkes the phoenix had left his
perch, flown across the office, and landed on Harry's knee.
"'Lo, Fawkes," said Harry quietly. He stroked the phoenix's beautiful
scarlet-and-gold plumage. Fawkes blinked peacefully up at him.
There was something comforting about his warm weight.
Dumbledore stopped talking. He sat down opposite Harry, be-hind
his desk. He was looking at Harry, who avoided his eyes. Dumbledore
was going to question him. He was going to make Harry relive everything.
"I need to know what happened after you touched the Portkey in the
maze. Harry," said Dumbledore.
"We can leave that till morning, can't we, Dumbledore?" said
Sirius harshly. He had put a hand on Harrys shoulder. "Let
him have a sleep. Let him rest."
Harry felt a rush of gratitude toward Sirius, but Dumbledore took no
notice of Sirius's words. He leaned forward toward Harry.
Very unwillingly, Harry raised his head and looked into those blue
eyes.
"If I thought I could help you," Dumbledore said gently, "by putting
you into an enchanted sleep and allowing you to postpone the moment when
you would have to think about what has hap-pened tonight, I would do it.
But I know better. Numbing the pain for a while will make it worse
when you finally feel it. You have shown bravery beyond anything
I could have expected of you. I ask you to demonstrate your courage
one more time. I ask you to tell us what happened."
The phoenix let out one soft, quavering note. It shivered in
the air, and Harry felt as though a drop of hot liquid had slipped down
his throat into his stomach, warming him, and strengthening him.
He took a deep breath and began to tell them. As he spoke, vi-sions
of everything that had passed that night seemed to rise before his eyes;
he saw the sparkling surface of the potion that had revived Voldemort;
he saw the Death Eaters Apparating between the graves around them; he saw
Cedric's body, lying on the ground beside the cup.
Once or twice, Sirius made a noise as though about to say some-thing,
his hand still tight on Harry's shoulder, but Dumbledore raised his hand
to stop him, and Harry was glad of this, because it was easier to keep
going now he had started. It was even a relief; he felt almost as
though something poisonous were being extracted from him. It was
costing him every bit of determination he had to keep talking, yet he sensed
that once he had finished, he would feel better.
When Harry told of Wormtail piercing his arm with the dagger, however,
Sirius let out a vehement exclamation and Dumbledore stood up so quickly
that Harry started. Dumbledore walked around the desk and told Harry
to stretch out his arm. Harry showed them both the place where his
robes were torn and the cut beneath them.
"He said my blood would make him stronger than if he'd used someone
else's," Harry told Dumbledore. "He said the protection my - my mother
left in me - he'd have it too. And he was right - he could touch
me without hurting himself, he touched my face."
For a fleeting instant, Harry thought he saw a gleam of some-thing
like triumph in Dumbledore's eyes. But next second. Harry was sure
he had imagined it, for when Dumbledore had returned to his seat behind
the desk, he looked as old and weary as Harry had ever seen him.
"Very well," he said, sitting down again. "Voldemort has over-come
that particular barrier. Harry, continue, please."
Harry went on; he explained how Voldemort had emerged from the cauldron,
and told them all he could remember of Voldemort's speech to the Death
Eaters. Then he told how Voldemort had un-tied him, returned his
wand to him, and prepared to duel.
But when he reached the part where the golden beam of light had connected
his and Voldemort's wands, he found his throat ob-structed. He tried
to keep talking, but the memories of what had come out of Voldemort's wand
were flooding into his mind. He could see Cedric emerging, see the
old man, Bertha Jorkins ... his father . . . his mother . . .
He was glad when Sirius broke the silence.
"The wands connected?" he said, looking from Harry to Dum-bledore.
"Why?"
Harry looked up at Dumbledore again, on whose face there was an arrested
look.
"Priori Incantatem," he muttered.
His eyes gazed into Harry's and it was almost as though an in-visible
beam of understanding shot between them.
"The Reverse Spell effect?" said Sirius sharply.
"Exactly," said Dumbledore. "Harry's wand and Voldemorts wand
share cores. Each of them contains a feather from the tail of the
same phoenix. This phoenix, in fact," he added, and he pointed at
the scarlet-and-gold bird, perching peacefully on Harry's knee.
"My wand's feather came from Fawkes?" Harry said, amazed.
"Yes," said Dumbledore. "Mr. Ollivander wrote to tell me you
had bought the second wand, the moment you left his shop four years ago."
"So what happens when a wand meets its brother?" said Sirius.
"They will not work properly against each other," said Dum-bledore.
"If, however, the owners of the wands force the wands to do battle ...
a very rare effect will take place. One of the wands will force the
other to regurgitate spells it has performed - in re-verse. The most
recent first. . . and then those which preceded it. . . ."
He looked interrogatively at Harry, and Harry nodded.
"Which means," said Dumbledore slowly, his eyes upon Harry's face,
"that some form of Cedric must have reappeared."
Harry nodded again.
"Diggory came back to life?" said Sirius sharply.
"No spell can reawaken the dead," said Dumbledore heavily. "All that
would have happened is a kind of reverse echo. A shadow of the living
Cedric would have emerged from the wand . . . am I cor-rect, Harry?"
"He spoke to me," Harry said. He was suddenly shaking again.
"The . . . the ghost Cedric, or whatever he was, spoke."
"An echo," said Dumbledore, "which retained Cedric's appear-ance and
character. I am guessing other such forms appeared . . . less recent
victims of Voldemort's wand...."
"An old man," Harry said, his throat still constricted. "Bertha
Jorkins. And . . ."
"Your parents?" said Dumbledore quietly.
"Yes," said Harry.
Sirius's grip on Harry's shoulder was now so tight it was painful.
"The last murders the wand performed," said Dumbledore, nodding.
"In reverse order. More would have appeared, of course, had you maintained
the connection. Very well, Harry, these echoes, these shadows . ..
what did they do?"
Harry described how the figures that had emerged from the wand had
prowled the edges of the golden web, how Voldemort had seemed to fear them,
how the shadow of Harry's mother had told him what to do, how Cedric's
had made its final request.
At this point. Harry found he could not continue. He looked
around at Sirius and saw that he had his face in his hands.
Harry suddenly became aware that Fawkes had left his knee. The
phoenix had fluttered to the floor. It was resting its beautiful
head against Harry's injured leg, and thick, pearly tears were falling
from its eyes onto the wound left by the spider. The pain vanished.
The skin mended. His leg was repaired.
"I will say it again," said Dumbledore as the phoenix rose into the
air and resettled itself upon the perch beside the door. "You have
shown bravery beyond anything I could have expected of you tonight.
Harry. You have shown bravery equal to those who died fighting Voldemort
at the height of his powers. You have shoul-dered a grown wizard's
burden and found yourself equal to it - and you have now given us all we
have a right to expect. You will come with me to the hospital wing.
I do not want you returning to the dormitory tonight. A Sleeping
Potion, and some peace . . . Sir-ius, would you like to stay with him?"
Sirius nodded and stood up. He transformed back into the great
black dog and walked with Harry and Dumbledore out of the of-fice, accompanying
them down a flight of stairs to the hospital wing.
When Dumbledore pushed open the door. Harry saw Mrs. Weasley, Bill,
Ron, and Hermione grouped around a harassed-looking Madam Pomfrey.
They appeared to be demanding to know where Harry was and what had happened
to him. All of them whipped around as Harry, Dumbledore, and the
black dog en-tered, and Mrs. Weasley let out a kind of muffled scream.
"Harry! Oh Harry!"
She started to hurry toward him, but Dumbledore moved be-tween them.
"Molly," he said, holding up a hand, "please listen to me for a moment.
Harry has been through a terrible ordeal tonight. He has just had
to relive it for me. What he needs now is sleep, and peace, and quiet.
If he would like you all to stay with him," he added, looking around at
Ron, Hermione, and Bill too, "you may do so. But I do not want you
questioning him until he is ready to answer, and certainly not this evening."
Mrs. Weasley nodded. She was very white. She rounded on
Ron, Hermione, and Bill as though they were being noisy, and hissed,
"Did you hear? He needs quiet!"
"Headmaster," said Madam Pomfrey, staring at the great black dog that
was Sirius, "may I ask what - ?"
"This dog will be remaining with Harry for a while," said Dum-bledore
simply. "I assure you, he is extremely well trained. Harry
- I will wait while you get into bed."
Harry felt an inexpressible sense of gratitude to Dumbledore for asking
the others not to question him. It wasn't as though he didn't want
them there; but the thought of explaining it all over again, the idea of
reliving it one more time, was more than he could stand.
"I will be back to see you as soon as I have met with Fudge, Harry,"
said Dumbledore. "I would like you to remain here to-morrow until I have
spoken to the school." He left.
As Madam Pomfrey led Harry to a nearby bed, he caught sight of the
real Moody lying motionless in a bed at the far end of the room.
His wooden leg and magical eye were lying on the bedside table.
"Is he okay?" Harry asked.
"He'll be fine," said Madam Pomfrey, giving Harry some pajamas and
pulling screens around him. He took off his robes, pulled on the
pajamas, and got into bed. Ron, Hermione, Bill, Mrs. Weasley, and the black
dog came around the screen and settled themselves in chairs on either side
of him. Ron and Hermione were looking at him almost cautiously, as
though scared of him.
"I'm all right," he told them. "Just tired."
Mrs. Weasleys eyes filled with tears as she smoothed his bed-covers
unnecessarily.
Madam Pomfrey, who had bustled off to her office, returned holding
a small bottle of some purple potion and a goblet.
"You'll need to drink all of this. Harry," she said. "It's a
potion for dreamless sleep."
Harry took the goblet and drank a few mouthfuls. He felt him-self
becoming drowsy at once. Everything around him became hazy; the lamps
around the hospital wing seemed to be winking at him in a friendly way
through the screen around his bed; his body felt as though it was sinking
deeper into the warmth of the feather matress. Before he could finish
the potion, before he could say an-other word, his exhaustion had carried
him off to sleep.
Harry woke up, so warm, so very sleepy, that he didn't open his eyes,
wanting to drop off again. The room was still dimly lit; he was sure
it was still nighttime and had a feeling that he couldn't have been asleep
very long.
Then he heard whispering around him.
"They'll wake him if they don't shut up!"
"What are they shouting about? Nothing else can have hap-pened,
can it?"
Harry opened his eyes blearily. Someone had removed his glasses.
He could see the fuzzy outlines of Mrs. Weasley and Bill close by.
Mrs. Weasley was on her feet.
"That's Fudge's voice," she whispered. "And that's Minerva McGonagall's,
isn't it? But what are they arguing about?"
Now Harry could hear them too: people shouting and running toward
the hospital wing.
"Regrettable, but all the same, Minerva -" Cornelius Fudge was
saying loudly.
"You should never have brought it inside the castle!" yelled
Pro-fessor McGonagall. "When Dumbledore finds out -"
Harry heard the hospital doors burst open. Unnoticed by any of
the people around his bed, all of whom were staring at the door as Bill
pulled back the screens, Harry sat up and put his glasses back on.
Fudge came striding up the ward. Professors McGonagall and Snape
were at his heels.
"Where's Dumbledore?" Fudge demanded of Mrs. Weasley.
"He's not here," said Mrs. Weasley angrily. "This is a hospital
wing. Minister, don't you think you'd do better to -"
But the door opened, and Dumbledore came sweeping up the ward.
"What has happened?" said Dumbledore sharply, looking from Fudge to
Professor McGonagall. "Why are you disturbing these people?
Minerva, I'm surprised at you - I asked you to stand guard over Barty Crouch
-"
"There is no need to stand guard over him anymore, Dumble-dore!"
she shrieked. "The Minister has seen to that!"
Harry had never seen Professor McGonagall lose control like this.
There were angry blotches of color in her cheeks, and a hands were balled
into fists; she was trembling with fury.-
"When we told Mr. Fudge that we had caught the Death Eater responsible
for tonight's events," said Snape, in a low voice; he seemed to feel his
personal safety was in question. He insisted on summoning a dementor
to accompany him into the castle. He brought it up to the office
where Barty Crouch -"
"I told him you would not agree, Dumbledore!" McGonagall fumed.
"I told him you would never allow dementors to set foot inside the castle,
but -"
"My dear woman!" roared Fudge, who likewise looked angrier than
Harry had ever seen him, "as Minister of Magic, it is my deci-sion whether
I wish to bring protection with me when interview-ing a possibly dangerous
-"
But Professor McGonagall's voice drowned Fudge's.
"The moment that - that thing entered the room," she screamed, pointing
at Fudge, trembling all over, "it swooped down on Crouch and - and -"
Harry felt a chill in his stomach as Professor McGonagall strug-gled
to find words to describe what had happened. He did not need her
to finish her sentence. He knew what the dementor must have done.
It had administered its fatal kiss to Barty Crouch. It had sucked
his soul out through his mouth. He was worse than dead.
"By all accounts, he is no loss!" blustered Fudge. "It seems
he has been responsible for several deaths'."
"But he cannot now give testimony, Cornelius," said Dumble-dore.
He was staring hard at Fudge, as though seeing him plainly for the first
time. "He cannot give evidence about why he killed those people."
"Why he killed them? Well, that's no mystery, is it?" blustered
Fudge. "He was a raving lunatic! From what Minerva and Severus
have told me, he seems to have thought he was doing it all on You-Know-Who's
instructions!"
"Lord Voldemort was giving him instructions, Cornelius," Dumbledore
said. "Those peoples deaths were mere by-products of a plan to restore
Voldemort to full strength again. The plan suc-ceeded. Voldemort has been
restored to his body."
Fudge looked as though someone had just swung a heavy weight into his
face. Dazed and blinking, he stared back at Dumbledore as if he couldn't
quite believe what he had just heard. He began to sputter, still
goggling at Dumbledore.
"You-Know-Who . . . returned? Preposterous. Come now, Dum-bledore
..."
"As Minerva and Severus have doubtless told you," said Dumb-ledore,
"we heard Barty Crouch confess. Under the influence of Veritaserum,
he told us how he was smuggled out of Azkaban, and how Voldemort - learning
of his continued existence from Bertha Jorkins - went to free him from
his father and used him to cap-ture Harry. The plan worked, I tell
you. Crouch has helped Volde-mort to return."
"See here, Dumbledore," said Fudge, and Harry was astonished to see
a slight smile dawning on his face, "you - you can't seri-ously believe
that You-Know-Who - back? Come now, come now . . . certainly, Crouch
may have believed himself to be acting upon You-Know-Who's orders - but
to take the word of a lunatic like that, Dumbledore ..."
"When Harry touched the Triwizard Cup tonight, he was trans-ported
straight to Voldemort," said Dumbledore steadily. "He wit-nessed
Lord Voldemort's rebirth. I will explain it all to you if you will
step up to my office."
Dumbledore glanced around at Harry and saw that he was awake, but shook
his head and said, "I am afraid I cannot permit you to question Harry tonight."
Fudge's curious smile lingered. He too glanced at Harry, then
looked back at Dumbledore, and said, "You are - er - prepared to
take Harry's word on this, are you, Dumbledore?"
There was a moment's silence, which was broken by Sirius growling.
His hackles were raised, and he was baring his teeth at Fudge.
"Certainly, I believe Harry," said Dumbledore. His eyes were
blazing now. "I heard Crouch's confession, and I heard Harry's ac-count
of what happened after he touched the Triwizard Cup; the two stories make
sense, they explain everything that has happened since Bertha Jorkins disappeared
last summer."
Fudge still had that strange smile on his face. Once again, he
glanced at Harry before answering.
"You are prepared to believe that Lord Voldemort has returned, on the
word of a lunatic murderer, and a boy who . . . well..."
Fudge shot Harry another look, and Harry suddenly under-stood.
"You've been reading Rita Skeeter, Mr. Fudge," he said quietly.
Ron, Hermione, Mrs. Weasley, and Bill all jumped. None of them
had realized that Harry was awake.
Fudge reddened slightly, but a defiant and obstinate look came over
his face.
"And if I have?" he said, looking at Dumbledore. "If I
have dis-covered that you've been keeping certain facts about the boy very
quiet? A Parselmouth, eh? And having funny turns all over the
place -"
"I assume that you are referring to the pains Harry has been ex-periencing
in his scar?" said Dumbledore coolly.
"You admit that he has been having these pains, then?" said Fudge
quickly. "Headaches? Nightmares? Possibly - hallucinations?"
"Listen to me, Cornelius," said Dumbledore, taking a step to-ward Fudge,
and once again, he seemed to radiate that indefinable sense of power that
Harry had felt after Dumbledore had Stunned young Crouch. "Harry
is as sane as you or I. That scar upon his forehead has not addled
his brains. I believe it hurts him when Lord Voldemort is close by,
or feeling particularly murderous."
Fudge had taken half a step back from Dumbledore, but he looked no
less stubborn.
"You'll forgive me, Dumbledore, but I've never heard of a curse scar
acting as an alarm bell before. ..."
"Look, I saw Voldemort come back!" Harry shouted. He tried
to get out of bed again, but Mrs. Weasley forced him back. "I saw
the Death Eaters! I can give you their names! Lucius Malfoy -"
Snape made a sudden movement, but as Harry looked at him, Snape's eyes
flew back to Fudge.
"Malfoy was cleared!" said Fudge, visibly affronted. "A very
old family - donations to excellent causes -"
"Macnair!" Harry continued.
"Also cleared! Now working for the Ministry!"
"Avery - Nott - Crabbe - Goyle -"
"You are merely repeating the names of those who were acquit-ted of
being Death Eaters thirteen years ago!" said Fudge angrily.
"You could have found those names in old reports of the trials! For
heavens sake, Dumbledore - the boy was full of some crackpot story at the
end of last year too - his tales are getting taller, and you're still swallowing
them - the boy can talk to snakes. Dumbledore, and you still think
he's trustworthy?"
"You fool!" Professor McGonagall cried. "Cedric Diggory!
Mr. Crouch! These deaths were not the random work of a lunatic!"
"I see no evidence to the contrary!" shouted Fudge, now matching
her anger, his face purpling. "It seems to me that you are all determined
to start a panic that will destabilize everything we have worked for these
last thirteen years!"
Harry couldn't believe what he was hearing. He had always thought
of Fudge as a kindly figure, a little blustering, a little pompous, but
essentially good-natured. But now a short, angry wizard stood before
him, refusing, point-blank, to accept the prospect of disruption in his
comfortable and ordered world - to believe that Voldemort could have risen.
"Voldemort has returned," Dumbledore repeated. "If you accept
that fact straightaway. Fudge, and take the necessary measures, we may
still be able to save the situation. The first and most essential
step is to remove Azkaban from the control of the dementors -"
"Preposterous!" shouted Fudge again. "Remove the dementors?
I'd be kicked out of office for suggesting it! Half of us only feel
safe in our beds at night because we know the dementors are standing guard
at Azkaban!"
"The rest of us sleep less soundly in our beds, Cornelius, know-ing
that you have put Lord Voldemort's most dangerous support-ers in the care
of creatures who will join him the instant he asks them!" said Dumbledore.
"They will not remain loyal to you, Fudge! Voldemort can offer them
much more scope for their pow-ers and their pleasures than you can! With
the dementors behind him, and his old supporters returned to him, you will
be hard-pressed to stop him regaining the sort of power he had thirteen
years ago!"
Fudge was opening and closing his mouth as though no words could express
his outrage.
"The second step you must take - and at once," Dumbledore pressed on,
"is to send envoys to the giants."
"Envoys to the giants?" Fudge shrieked, finding his tongue again.
"What madness is this?"
"Extend them the hand of friendship, now, before it is too late," said
Dumbledore, "or Voldemort will persuade them, as he did be-fore, that he
alone among wizards will give them their rights and their freedom!"
"You - you cannot be serious!" Fudge gasped, shaking his head
and retreating further from Dumbledore. "If the magical commu-nity
got wind that I had approached the giants - people hate them, Dumbledore
- end of my career -"
"You are blinded," said Dumbledore, his voice rising now, the aura
of power around him palpable, his eyes blazing once more, "by the love
of the office you hold, Cornelius! You place too much importance,
and you always have done, on the so-called purity of blood! You fail
to recognize that it matters not what someone is born, but what they grow
to be! Your dementor has just destroyed the last remaining member
of a pure-blood family as old as any - and see what that man chose to make
of his life! I tell you now- take the steps I have suggested, and
you will be remembered, in office or out, as one of the bravest and greatest
Ministers of Magic we have ever known. Fail to act - and history
will remember you as the man who stepped aside and allowed Voldemort a
second chance to destroy the world we have tried to rebuild!"
"Insane," whispered Fudge, still backing away. "Mad . . ."
And then there was silence. Madam Pomfrey was standing frozen
at the foot of Harry's bed, her hands over her mouth. Mrs.Weasley was still
standing over Harry, her hand on his shoulder to prevent him from rising.
Bill, Ron, and Hermione were staring at Fudge.
"If your determination to shut your eyes will carry you as far as this,
Cornelius," said Dumbledore, "we have reached a parting of the ways.
You must act as you see fit. And I - I shall act as I see fit."
Dumbledore's voice carried no hint of a threat; it sounded like a mere
statement, but Fudge bristled as though Dumbledore were advancing upon
him with a wand.
"Now, see here, Dumbledore," he said, waving a threatening fin-ger.
"I've given you free rein, always. I've had a lot of respect for
you. I might not have agreed with some of your decisions, but I've
kept quiet. There aren't many who'd have let you hire werewolves,
or keep Hagrid, or decide what to teach your students without ref-erence
to the Ministry. But if you're going to work against me -"
"The only one against whom I intend to work," said Dumble-dore, "is
Lord Voldemort. If you are against him, then we remain, Cornelius,
on the same side."
It seemed Fudge could think of no answer to this. He rocked backward
and forward on his small feet for a moment and spun his bowler hat in his
hands. Finally, he said, with a hint of a plea in his voice, "He
can't be back, Dumbledore, he just can't be ..."
Snape strode forward, past Dumbledore, pulling up the left sleeve of
his robes as he went. He stuck out his forearm and showed it to Fudge,
who recoiled.
"There," said Snape harshly. "There. The Dark Mark.
It is not as clear as it was an hour or so ago, when it burned black, but
you can still see it. Every Death Eater had the sign burned into
him by the Dark Lord. It was a means of distinguishing one another,
and his means of summoning us to him. When he touched the Mark of
any Death Eater, we were to Disapparate, and Apparate, instantly, at his
side. This Mark has been growing clearer all year. Karkaroff s too.
Why do you think Karkaroff fled tonight? We both felt the Mark burn.
We both knew he had returned. Karkaroff fears the Dark Lord's vengeance.
He betrayed too many of his fellow Death Eaters to be sure of a welcome
back into the fold."
Fudge stepped back from Snape too. He was shaking his head.
He did not seem to have taken in a word Snape had said. He stared,
apparently repelled by the ugly mark on Snape's arm, then looked up at
Dumbledore and whispered, "I don't know what you and your staff are playing
at, Dumbledore, but I have heard enough. I have no more to add.
I will be in touch with you tomorrow, Dum-bledore, to discuss the running
of this school. I must return to the Ministry."
He had almost reached the door when he paused. He turned around,
strode back down the dormitory, and stopped at Harry's bed.
"Your winnings," he said shortly, taking a large bag of gold out of
his pocket and dropping it onto Harrys bedside table. "One thousand
Galleons. There should have been a presentation cere-mony, but under
the circumstances .. ."
He crammed his bowler hat onto his head and walked out of the room,
slamming the door behind him. The moment he had disap-peared, Dumbledore
turned to look at the group around Harry's bed.
"There is work to be done," he said. "Molly... am I right in
thinking that I can count on you and Arthur?"
"Of course you can," said Mrs. Weasley. She was white to the
lips, but she looked resolute. "We know what Fudge is. It's
Arthur's fondness for Muggles that has held him back at the Ministry all
these years. Fudge thinks he lacks proper wizarding pride."
"Then I need to send a message to Arthur," said Dumbledore. "All
those that we can persuade of the truth must be notified im-mediately,
and he is well placed to contact those at the Ministry who are not as shortsighted
as Cornelius."
"I'll go to Dad," said Bill, standing up. "I'll go now."
"Excellent," said Dumbledore. "Tell him what has happened.
Tell him I will be in direct contact with him shortly. He will need
to be dis-creet, however. If Fudge thinks I am interfering at the
Ministry -"
"Leave it to me," said Bill.
He clapped a hand on Harry's shoulder, kissed his mother on the cheek,
pulled on his cloak, and strode quickly from the room.
"Minerva," said Dumbledore, turning to Professor McGonagall, "I want
to see Hagrid in my office as soon as possible. Also - if she will
consent to come - Madame Maxime."
Professor McGonagall nodded and left without a word.
"Poppy," Dumbledore said to Madam Pomfrey, "would you be very kind
and go down to Professor Moodys office, where I think you will find a house-elf
called Winky in considerable distress? Do what you can for her, and
take her back to the kitchens. I think Dobby will look after her
for us."
"Very - very well," said Madam Pomfrey, looking startled, and she too
left.
Dumbledore made sure that the door was closed, and that Madam Pomfrey's
footsteps had died away, before he spoke again.
"And now," he said, "it is time for two of our number to recog-nize
each other for what they are. Sirius ... if you could resume your
usual form."
The great black dog looked up at Dumbledore, then, in an in-stant,
turned back into a man.
Mrs. Weasley screamed and leapt back from the bed.
"Sirius Black!" she shrieked, pointing at him.
"Mum, shut up!" Ron yelled. "It's okay!"
Snape had not yelled or jumped backward, but the look on his face was
one of mingled fury and horror.
"Him!" he snarled, staring at Sirius, whose face showed equal
dislike. "What is he doing here?"
"He is here at my invitation," said Dumbledore, looking be-tween them,
"as are you, Severus. I trust you both. It is time for you
to lay aside your old differences and trust each other."
Harry thought Dumbledore was asking for a near miracle. Sirius
and Snape were eyeing each other with the utmost loathing.
"I will settle, in the short term," said Dumbledore, with a bite of
impatience in his voice, "for a lack of open hostility. You will
shake hands. You are on the same side now. Time is short, and
unless the few of us who know the truth do not stand united, there is no
hope
for any us.
Very slowly - but still glaring at each other as though each wished
the other nothing but ill - Sirius and Snape moved toward each other and
shook hands. They let go extremely quickly.
"That will do to be going on with," said Dumbledore, stepping between
them once more. "Now I have work for each of you. Fudge's attitude,
though not unexpected, changes everything. Sir-ius, I need you to
set off at once. You are to alert Remus Lupin, Arabella Figg, Mundungus
Fletcher - the old crowd. Lie low at Lupin's for a while; I will
contact you there."
"But -" said Harry.
He wanted Sirius to stay. He did not want to have to say good-bye
again so quickly.
"You'll see me very soon. Harry," said Sirius, turning to him.
"I promise you. But I must do what I can, you understand, don't you?"
"Yeah," said Harry. "Yeah . . . of course I do."
Sirius grasped his hand briefly, nodded to Dumbledore, trans-formed
again into the black dog, and ran the length of the room to the door, whose
handle he turned with a paw. Then he was gone.
"Severus," said Dumbledore, turning to Snape, "you know what I must
ask you to do. If you are ready . . . if you are prepared ..."
"I am," said Snape.
He looked slightly paler than usual, and his cold, black eyes glit-tered
strangely.
"Then good luck," said Dumbledore, and he watched, with a trace of
apprehension on his face, as Snape swept wordlessly after Sirius.
It was several minutes before Dumbledore spoke again.
"I must go downstairs," he said finally. "I must see the Diggorys.
Harry - take the rest of your potion. I will see all of you later."
Harry slumped back against his pillows as Dumbledore disappeared.
Hermione, Ron, and Mrs. Weasley were all looking at him. None of
them spoke for a very long time.
"You've got to take the rest of your potion. Harry," Mrs. Weasley said
at last. Her hand nudged the sack of gold on his bedside cabi-net
as she reached for the bottle and the goblet. "You have a good long
sleep. Try and think about something else for a while . . . think
about what you're going to buy with your winnings!"
"I don't want that gold," said Harry in an expressionless voice.
"You have it. Anyone can have it. I shouldn't have won it.
It should've been Cedric's."
The thing against which he had been fighting on and off ever since
he had come out of the maze was threatening to overpower him. He
could feel a burning, prickling feeling in the inner corners of his eyes.
He blinked and stared up at the ceiling.
"It wasn't your fault. Harry," Mrs. Weasley whispered.
"I told him to take the cup with me," said Harry.
Now the burning feeling was in his throat too. He wished Ron
would look away.
Mrs. Weasley set the potion down on the bedside cabinet, bent down,
and put her arms around Harry. He had no memory of ever being hugged
like this, as though by a mother. The full weight of everything he
had seen that night seemed to fall in upon him as Mrs. Weasley held him
to her. His mother s face, his father's voice, the sight of Cedric,
dead on the ground all started spinning in his head until he could hardly
bear it, until he was screwing up his face against the howl of misery fighting
to get out of him.
There was a loud slamming noise, and Mrs. Weasley and Harry broke apart.
Hermione was standing by the window. She was hold-ing something tight
in her hand.
"Sorry," she whispered.
"Your potion, Harry," said Mrs. Weasley quickly, wiping her eyes on
the back of her hand.
Harry drank it in one gulp. The effect was instantaneous.
Heavy, irresistible waves of dreamless sleep broke over him; he fell back
onto his pillows and thought no more.
CHAPTER THIRTY-SEVEN
THE BEGINNING
When he looked back, even a month later, Harry found he had only scattered
memories of the next few days. It was as though he had been through
too much to take in any more. The recollections he did have were
very painful. The worst, perhaps, was the meeting with the Diggorys
that took place the following morning.
They did not blame him for what had happened; on the con-trary, both
thanked him for returning Cedric's body to them. Mr. Diggory sobbed
through most of the interview. Mrs. Diggory's grief seemed to be
beyond tears.
"He suffered very little then," she said, when Harry had told her how
Cedric had died. "And after all, Amos ... he died just when he'd won the
tournament. He must have been happy."
When they got to their feet, she looked down at Harry and said, "You
look after yourself, now."
Harry seized the sack of gold on the bedside table.
"You take this," he muttered to her. "It should've been Cedric's,
he got there first, you take it -"
But she backed away from him.
"Oh no, it's yours, dear, I couldn't. . . you keep it."
Harry returned to Gryffindor Tower the following evening. From
what Hermione and Ron told him, Dumbledore had spoken to the school that
morning at breakfast. He had merely requested that they leave Harry
alone, that nobody ask him questions or badger him to tell the story of
what had happened in the maze. Most peo-ple, he noticed, were skirting
him in the corridors, avoiding his eyes. Some whispered behind their
hands as he passed. He guessed that many of them had believed Rita
Skeeter's article about how disturbed and possibly dangerous he was.
Perhaps they were for-mulating their own theories about how Cedric had
died. He found he didn't care very much. He liked it best when
he was with Ron and Hermione and they were talking about other things,
or else let-ting him sit in silence while they played chess. He felt
as though all three of them had reached an understanding they didn't need
to put into words; that each was waiting for some sign, some word, of what
was going on outside Hogwarts - and that it was useless to speculate about
what might be coming until they knew anything for certain. The only
time they touched upon the subject was when Ron told Harry about a meeting
Mrs. Weasley had had with Dum-bledore before going home.
"She went to ask him if you could come straight to us this sum-mer,"
he said. "But he wants you to go back to the Dursleys, at least at
first."
"Why?" said Harry.
"She said Dumbledore's got his reasons," said Ron, shaking his head
darkly. "I suppose we've got to trust him, haven't we?"
The only person apart from Ron and Hermione that Harry felt able to
talk to was Hagrid. As there was no longer a Defense Against the
Dark Arts teacher, they had those lessons free. They used the one
on Thursday afternoon to go down and visit Hagrid in his cabin. It
was a bright and sunny day; Fang bounded out of the open door as they approached,
barking and wagging his tail madly.
"Who's that?" called Hagrid, coming to the door. "Harry!"
He strode out to meet them, pulled Harry into a one-armed hug, ruffled
his hair, and said, "Good ter see yeh, mate. Good ter see yeh."
They saw two bucket-size cups and saucers on the wooden table in front
of the fireplace when they entered Hagrid's cabin.
"Bin havin' a cuppa with Olympe," Hagrid said. "She's jus' left."
"Who?" said Ron curiously.
"Madame Maxime, o' course!" said Hagrid.
"You two made up, have you?" said Ron.
"Dunno what yeh're talkin' about," said Hagrid airily, fetching more
cups from the dresser. When he had made tea and offered around a
plate of doughy cookies, he leaned back in his chair and surveyed Harry
closely through his beetle-black eyes.
"You all righ'?" he said gruffly
"Yeah," said Harry.
"No, yeh're not," said Hagrid. "Course yeh're not. But yeh will
be."
Harry said nothing.
"Knew he was goin' ter come back," said Hagrid, and Harry, Ron, and
Hermione looked up at him, shocked. "Known it fer years. Harry.
Knew he was out there, bidin' his time. It had ter hap-pen.
Well, now it has, an' we'll jus' have ter get on with it. We'll fight.
Migh' be able ter stop him before he gets a good hold. That's Dumbledores
plan, anyway. Great man, Dumbledore. 'S long as we've got him, I'm
not too worried."
Hagrid raised his bushy eyebrows at the disbelieving expressions on
their faces.
"No good sittin' worryin' abou' it," he said. "What's comin'
will come, an we'll meet it when it does. Dumbledore told me wha'
you did. Harry."
Hagrid's chest swelled as he looked at Harry.
"Yeh did as much as yer father would've done, an' I can' give yeh no
higher praise than that."
Harry smiled back at him. It was the first time he'd smiled in
days. "What's Dumbledore asked you to do, Hagrid?" he asked.
"He sent Professor McGonagall to ask you and Madame Maxime to meet him
- that night."
"Got a little job fer me over the summer," said Hagrid. "Secret,
though. I'm not s'pposed ter talk abou' it, no, not even ter you
lot. Olympe - Madame Maxime ter you - might be comin' with me.
I think she will. Think I got her persuaded."
"Is it to do with Voldemort?"
Hagrid flinched at the sound of the name.
"Migh' be," he said evasively. "Now . . . who'd like ter come
an' visit the las' skrewt with me? I was jokin' - jokin'!" he added
hastily, seeing the looks on their faces.
It was with a heavy heart that Harry packed his trunk up in the dormitory
on the night before his return to Privet Drive. He was dreading the
Leaving Feast, which was usually a cause for celebra-tion, when the winner
of the Inter-House Championship would be announced. He had avoided being
in the Great Hall when it was full ever since he had left the hospital
wing, preferring to eat when it was nearly empty to avoid the stares of
his fellow students.
When he, Ron, and Hermione entered the Hall, they saw at once that
the usual decorations were missing. The Great Hall was normally decorated
with the winning House's colors for the Leav-ing Feast. Tonight,
however, there were black drapes on the wall behind the teachers' table.
Harry knew instantly that they were there as a mark of respect to Cedric.
The real Mad-Eye Moody was at the staff table now, his wooden leg and
his magical eye back in place. He was extremely twitchy, jumping
every time someone spoke to him. Harry couldn't blame him; Moodys
fear of attack was bound to have been increased by his ten-month imprisonment
in his own trunk. Professor Karkar-off s chair was empty. Harry
wondered, as he sat down with the other Gryffindors, where Karkaroff was
now, and whether Volde-mort had caught up with him.
Madame Maxime was still there. She was sitting next to Hagrid.
They were talking quietly together. Further along the table, sitting
next to Professor McGonagall, was Snape. His eyes lingered on Harry
for a moment as Harry looked at him. His expression was difficult
to read. He looked as sour and unpleasant as ever. Harry continued
to watch him, long after Snape had looked away.
What was it that Snape had done on Dumbledores orders, the night that
Voldemort had returned? And why. . . why . . . was Dumbledore so
convinced that Snape was truly on their side? He had been their spy,
Dumbledore had said so in the Pensieve. Snape had turned spy against
Voldemort, "at great personal risk." Was that the job he had taken
up again? Had he made contact with the Death Eaters, perhaps?
Pretended that he had never really gone over to Dumbledore, that he had
been, like Voldemort himself, biding his time?
Harry's musings were ended by Professor Dumbledore, who stood up at
the staff table. The Great Hall, which in any case had been less noisy
than it usually was at the Leaving Feast, became very quiet.
"The end," said Dumbledore, looking around at them all, "of another
year."
He paused, and his eyes fell upon the Hufflepuff table. Theirs
had been the most subdued table before he had gotten to his feet, and theirs
were still the saddest and palest faces in the Hall.
"There is much that I would like to say to you all tonight," said Dumbledore,
"but I must first acknowledge the loss of a very fine person, who should
be sitting here," he gestured toward the Huf-flepuffs, "enjoying our feast
with us. I would like you all, please, to stand, and raise your glasses,
to Cedric Diggory."
They did it, all of them; the benches scraped as everyone in the Hall
stood, and raised their goblets, and echoed, in one loud, low, rumbling
voice, "Cedric Diggory."
Harry caught a glimpse of Cho through the crowd. There were tears
pouring silently down her face. He looked down at the table as they
all sat down again.
"Cedric was a person who exemplified many of the qualities that distinguish
Hufflepuff house," Dumbledore continued. "He was a good and loyal friend,
a hard worker, he valued fair play. His death has affected you all,
whether you knew him well or not. I think that you have the right,
therefore, to know exactly how it came about."
Harry raised his head and stared at Dumbledore.
"Cedric Diggory was murdered by Lord Voldemort."
A panicked whisper swept the Great Hall. People were staring
at Dumbledore in disbelief, in horror. He looked perfectly calm as
he watched them mutter themselves into silence.
"The Ministry of Magic," Dumbledore continued, "does not wish me to
tell you this. It is possible that some of your parents will be horrified
that I have done so - either because they will not be-lieve that Lord Voldemort
has returned, or because they think I should not tell you so, young as
you are. It is my belief, however, that the truth is generally preferable
to lies, and that any attempt to pretend that Cedric died as the result
of an accident, or some sort of blunder of his own, is an insult to his
memory."
Stunned and frightened, every face in the Hall was turned toward Dumbledore
now... or almost every face. Over at the Slytherin table. Harry
saw Draco Malfoy muttering something to Crabbe and Goyle. Harry felt
a hot, sick swoop of anger in his stomach. He forced himself to look
back at Dumbledore.
"There is somebody else who must be mentioned in connection with Cedrics
death," Dumbledore went on. "I am talking, of course, about Harry Potter."
A kind of ripple crossed the Great Hall as a few heads turned in Harry's
direction before flicking back to face Dumbledore.
"Harry Potter managed to escape Lord Voldemort," said Dum-bledore.
"He risked his own life to return Cedric's body to Hog-warts. He
showed, in every respect, the sort of bravery that few wizards have ever
shown in facing Lord Voldemort, and for this, I honor him."
Dumbledore turned gravely to Harry and raised his goblet once more.
Nearly everyone in the Great Hall followed suit. They mur-mured his
name, as they had murmured Cedric's, and drank to him. But through
a gap in the standing figures. Harry saw that Malfoy, Crabbe, Goyle,
and many of the other Slytherins had remained defiantly in their seats,
their goblets untouched. Dumb-ledore, who after all possessed no
magical eye, did not see them.
When everyone had once again resumed their seats, Dumble-dore continued,
"The Triwizard Tournament's aim was to further and promote magical understanding.
In the light of what has hap-pened - of Lord Voldemorts return - such ties
are more impor-tant than ever before."
Dumbledore looked from Madame Maxime and Hagrid, to Fleur Delacour
and her fellow Beauxbatons students, to Viktor Krum and the Durmstrangs
at the Slytherin table. Krum, Harry saw, looked wary, almost frightened,
as though he expected Dum-bledore to say something harsh.
"Every guest in this Hall," said Dumbledore, and his eyes lin-gered
upon the Durmstrang students, "will be welcomed back here at any time,
should they wish to come. I say to you all, once again - in the light
of Lord Voldemort's return, we are only as strong as we are united, as
weak as we are divided. Lord Volde-morts gift for spreading discord
and enmity is very great. We can fight it only by showing an equally strong
bond of friendship and trust. Differences of habit and language are
nothing at all if our aims are identical and our hearts are open.
"It is my belief- and never have I so hoped that I am mistaken - that
we are all facing dark and difficult times. Some of you in this Hall
have already suffered directly at the hands of Lord Voldemort. Many
of your families have been torn asunder. A week ago, a student was
taken from our midst.
"Remember Cedric. Remember, if the time should come when you
have to make a choice between what is right and what is easy, remember
what happened to a boy who was good, and kind, and brave, because he strayed
across the path of Lord Voldemort. Re-member Cedric Diggory."
Harry's trunk was packed; Hedwig was back in her cage on top of it.
He, Ron, and Hermione were waiting in the crowded entrance hall with the
rest of the fourth years for the carriages that would take them back to
Hogsmeade station. It was another beautiful summer's day. He
supposed that Privet Drive would be hot and leafy, its flower beds a riot
of color, when he arrived there that evening. The thought gave him
no pleasure at all.
"'Arry!"
He looked around. Fleur Delacour was hurrying up the stone steps into
the castle. Beyond her, far across the grounds. Harry could see Hagrid
helping Madame Maxime to back two of the gi-ant horses into their harness.
The Beauxbatons carriage was about to take off.
"We will see each uzzer again, I 'ope," said Fleur as she reached him,
holding out her hand. "I am 'oping to get a job 'ere, to im-prove
my Eenglish."
"It's very good already," said Ron in a strangled sort of voice.
Fleur smiled at him; Hermione scowled.
"Good-bye, 'Arry," said Fleur, turning to go. "It 'az been a
plea-sure meeting you!"
Harrys spirits couldn't help but lift slightly as he watched Fleur
hurry back across the lawns to Madame Maxime, her silvery hair rippling
in the sunlight.
Wonder how the Durmstrang students are getting back," said Ron.
"D' you reckon they can steer that ship without Karkaroff?"
"Karkaroff did not steer," said a gruff voice. "He stayed in his cabin
and let us do the vork."
Krum had come to say good-bye to Hermione. "Could I have a vord?"
he asked her.
"Oh . . . yes ... all right," said Hermione, looking slightly flus-tered,
and following Krum through the crowd and out of sight.
"You'd better hurry up!" Ron called loudly after her. "The
carriages'll be here in a minute!"
He let Harry keep a watch for the carriages, however, and spent the
next few minutes craning his neck over the crowd to try and see what Krum
and Hermione might be up to. They returned quite soon. Ron
stared at Hermione, but her face was quite impassive.
"I liked Diggory," said Krum abruptly to Harry. "He vos alvays
polite to me. Alvays. Even though I vos from Durmstrang - with Karkaroff,"
he added, scowling.
"Have you got a new headmaster yet?" said Harry
Krum shrugged. He held out his hand as Fleur had done, shook
Harry's hand, and then Ron's. Ron looked as though he was suffer-ing some
sort of painful internal struggle. Krum had already started walking
away when Ron burst out, "Can I have your autograph?"
Hermione turned away, smiling at the horseless carriages that were
now trundling toward them up the drive, as Krum, looking surprised but
gratified, signed a fragment of parchment for Ron.
The weather could not have been more different on the journey back to
King's Cross than it had been on their way to Hogwarts the previous September.
There wasn't a single cloud in the sky. Harry, Ron, and Hermione
had managed to get a compartment to them-selves. Pigwidgeon was once again
hidden under Rons dress robes to stop him from hooting continually; Hedwig
was dozing, her head under her wing, and Crookshanks was curled up in a
spare seat like a large, furry ginger cushion. Harry, Ron, and Hermione
talked more fully and freely than they had all week as the train sped them
southward. Harry felt as though Dumbledore's speech at the Leaving
Feast had unblocked him, somehow. It was less painful to discuss
what had happened now. They broke off their conversation about what
action Dumbledore might be taking, even now, to stop Voldemort only when
the lunch trolley arrived.
When Hermione returned from the trolley and put her money back into
her schoolbag, she dislodged a copy of the Daily Prophet that she had been
carrying in there. Harry looked at it, unsure whether he really wanted
to know what it might say, but Hermi-one, seeing him looking at it, said
calmly, "There's nothing in there. You can look for yourself, but
there's nothing at all. I've been checking every day. Just a small
piece the day after the third task saying you won the tournament.
They didn't even mention Cedric. Nothing about any of it. If
you ask me. Fudge is forcing them to keep quiet."
"He'll never keep Rita quiet," said Harry. "Not on a story like
this."
"Oh, Rita hasn't written anything at all since the third task," said
Hermione in an oddly constrained voice. "As a matter of fact," she
added, her voice now trembling slightly, "Rita Skeeter isn't going to be
writing anything at all for a while. Not unless she wants me to spill
the beans on her."
"What are you talking about?" said Ron.
"I found out how she was listening in on private conversations when
she wasn't supposed to be coming onto the grounds," said Hermione in a
rush.
Harry had the impression that Hermione had been dying to tell them
this for days, but that she had restrained herself in light of everything
else that had happened.
"How was she doing it?" said Harry at once.
"How did you find out?" said Ron, staring at her.
"Well, it was you, really, who gave me the idea. Harry," she said.
"Did I?" said Harry, perplexed. "How?"
"Bugging," said Hermione happily.
"But you said they didn't work -"
"Oh not electronic bugs," said Hermione. "No, you see ... Rita
Skeeter" - Hermiones voice trembled with quiet triumph - "is an unregistered
Animagus. She can turn -"
Hermione pulled a small sealed glass jar out other bag.
"- into a beetle."
"You're kidding," said Ron. "You haven't.. . she's not..."
"Oh yes she is," said Hermione happily, brandishing the jar at them.
Inside were a few twigs and leaves and one large, fat beetle.
"That's never - you're kidding -" Ron whispered, lifting the jar to
his eyes.
"No, I'm not," said Hermione, beaming. "I caught her on the windowsill
in the hospital wing. Look very closely, and you'll no-tice the markings
around her antennae are exactly like those foul glasses she wears."
Harry looked and saw that she was quite right. He also remem-bered
something.
"There was a beetle on the statue the night we heard Hagrid telling
Madame Maxime about his mum!"
"Exactly," said Hermione. "And Viktor pulled a beetle out of
my hair after we'd had our conversation by the lake. And unless I'm
very much mistaken, Rita was perched on the windowsill of the Divination
class the day your scar hurt. She's been buzzing around for stories
all year."
"When we saw Malfoy under that tree ..." said Ron slowly.
"He was talking to her, in his hand," said Hermione. "He knew,
of course. That's how she's been getting all those nice little inter-views
with the Slytherins. They wouldn't care that she was doing something
illegal, as long as they were giving her horrible stuff about us and Hagrid."
Hermione took the glass jar back from Ron and smiled at the beetle,
which buzzed angrily against the glass.
"I've told her I'll let her out when we get back to London," said Hermione.
"I've put an Unbreakable Charm on the jar, you see, so she can't transform.
And I've told her she's to keep her quill to her-self for a whole year.
See if she can't break the habit of writing hor-rible lies about people."
Smiling serenely, Hermione placed the beetle back inside her schoolbag.
The door of the compartment slid open.
"Very clever. Granger," said Draco Malfoy.
Crabbe and Goyle were standing behind him. All three of them
looked more pleased with themselves, more arrogant and more menacing, than
Harry had ever seen them.
"So," said Malfoy slowly, advancing slightly into the compart-ment
and looking slowly around at them, a smirk quivering on his lips.
"You caught some pathetic reporter, and Potter's Dumble-dore's favorite
boy again. Big deal."
His smirk widened. Crabbe and Goyle leered.
"Trying not to think about it, are we?" said Malfoy softly, look-ing
around at all three of them. "Trying to pretend it hasn't happened?"
"Get out," said Harry.
He had not been this close to Malfoy since he had watched him muttering
to Crabbe and Goyle during Dumbledores speech about Cedric. He could
feel a kind of ringing in his ears. His hand gripped his wand under his
robes.
"You've picked the losing side, Potter! I warned you! I
told you you ought to choose your company more carefully, remember?
When we met on the train, first day at Hogwarts? I told you not to
hang around with riffraff like this!" He jerked his head at Ron and
Hermione. "Too late now. Potter! They'll be the first to go, now
the Dark Lord's back! Mudbloods and Muggle-lovers first! Well
- sec-ond - Diggory was the f-"
It was as though someone had exploded a box of fireworks within the
compartment. Blinded by the blaze of the spells that had blasted from every
direction, deafened by a series of bangs, Harry blinked and looked down
at the floor.
Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle were all lying unconscious in the doorway.
He, Ron, and Hermione were on their feet, all three of them having used
a different hex. Nor were they the only ones to have done so.
"Thought we'd see what those three were up to," said Fred matter-of-factly,
stepping onto Goyle and into the compartment. He had his wand out,
and so did George, who was careful to tread on Mal-foy as he followed Fred
inside.
"Interesting effect," said George, looking down at Crabbe. "Who
used the Furnunculus Curse?"
"Me," said Harry.
"Odd," said George lightly. "I used Jelly-Legs. Looks as
though those two shouldn't be mixed. He seems to have sprouted little
ten-tacles all over his face. Well, let's not leave them here, they
don't add much to the decor."
Ron, Harry, and George kicked, rolled, and pushed the uncon-scious
Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle - each of whom looked dis-tinctly the worse for
the jumble of jinxes with which they had been hit - out into the corridor,
then came back into the compartment and rolled the door shut.
"Exploding Snap, anyone?" said Fred, pulling out a pack of cards.
They were halfway through their fifth game when Harry de-cided to ask
them.
"You going to tell us, then?" he said to George. "Who you
were blackmailing?"
"Oh," said George darkly. "That."
"It doesn't matter," said Fred, shaking his head impatiently.
"It wasn't anything important. Not now, anyway."
"We've given up," said George, shrugging.
But Harry, Ron, and Hermione kept on asking, and finally, Fred said,
"All right, all right, if you really want to know ... it was Ludo Bagman."
"Bagman?" said Harry sharply. "Are you saying he was involved in -"
"Nah," said George gloomily. "Nothing like that. Stupid
git. He wouldn't have the brains."
"Well, what, then?" said Ron.
Fred hesitated, then said, "You remember that bet we had with him at
the Quidditch World Cup? About how Ireland would win, but Krum would
get the Snitch?"
"Yeah," said Harry and Ron slowly.
"Well, the git paid us in leprechaun gold he'd caught from the Irish
mascots."
"So?"
"So," said Fred impatiently, "it vanished, didn't it? By next
morning, it had gone!"
"But - it must've been an accident, mustn't it?" said Hermione.
George laughed very bitterly.
"Yeah, that's what we thought, at first. We thought if we just
wrote to him, and told him he'd made a mistake, he'd cough up. But
nothing doing. Ignored our letter. We kept trying to talk to
him about it at Hogwarts, but he was always making some excuse to get away
from us."
"In the end, he turned pretty nasty," said Fred. "Told us we
were too young to gamble, and he wasn't giving us anything."
"So we asked for our money back," said George glowering.
"He didn't refuse!" gasped Hermione.
"Right in one," said Fred.
"But that was all your savings!" said Ron.
"Tell me about it," said George. "'Course, we found out what
was going on in the end. Lee Jordan's dad had had a bit of trouble getting
money off Bagman as well. Turns out he's in big trouble with the
goblins. Borrowed loads of gold off them. A gang of them cornered
him in the woods after the World Cup and took all the gold he had, and
it still wasn't enough to cover all his debts. They followed him
all the way to Hogwarts to keep an eye on him. He's lost everything
gambling. Hasn't got two Galleons to rub together. And you
know how the idiot tried to pay the goblins back?"
"How?" said Harry.
"He put a bet on you, mate," said Fred. "Put a big bet on you
to win the tournament. Bet against the goblins."
"So that's why he kept trying to help me win!" said Harry.
"Well - I did win, didn't I? So he can pay you your gold!"
"Nope," said George, shaking his head. "The goblins play as dirty
as him. They say you drew with Diggory, and Bagman was betting you'd
win outright. So Bagman had to run for it. He did run for it
right after the third task."
George sighed deeply and started dealing out the cards again.
The rest of the journey passed pleasantly enough; Harry wished it could
have gone on all summer, in fact, and that he would never arrive at King's
Cross . . . but as he had learned the hard way that year, time will not
slow down when something unpleasant lies ahead, and all too soon, the Hogwarts
Express was pulling in at platform nine and three-quarters. The usual
confusion and noise filled the corridors as the students began to disembark.
Ron and Hermione struggled out past Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle, carrying
their trunks. Harry, however, stayed put.
"Fred - George - wait a moment."
The twins turned. Harry pulled open his trunk and drew out his
Triwizard winnings.
"Take it," he said, and he thrust the sack into George's hands.
"What?" said Fred, looking flabbergasted.
"Take it," Harry repeated firmly. "I don't want it."
"You're mental," said George, trying to push it back at Harry.
"No, I'm not," said Harry. "You take it, and get inventing.
It's for the joke shop."
"He is mental," Fred said in an almost awed voice.
"Listen," said Harry firmly. "If you don't take it, I'm throwing
it down the drain. I don't want it and I don't need it. But
I could do with a few laughs. We could all do with a few laughs.
I've got a feel-ing we're going to need them more than usual before long."
"Harry," said George weakly, weighing the money bag in his hands, "there's
got to be a thousand Galleons in here."
"Yeah," said Harry, grinning. "Think how many Canary Creams that
is."
The twins stared at him.
"Just don't tell your mum where you got it... although she might not
be so keen for you to join the Ministry anymore, come to think of it. .
. ."
"Harry," Fred began, but Harry pulled out his wand.
"Look," he said flatly, "take it, or I'll hex you. I know some
good ones now. Just do me one favor, okay? Buy Ron some different
dress robes and say they're from you."
He left the compartment before they could say another word, stepping
over Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle, who were still lying on the floor, covered
in hex marks.
Uncle Vernon was waiting beyond the barrier. Mrs. Weasley was
close by him. She hugged Harry very tightly when she saw him and
whispered in his ear, "I think Dumbledore will let you come to us later
in the summer. Keep in touch, Harry."
"See you. Harry," said Ron, clapping him on the back.
"'Bye, Harry!" said Hermione, and she did something she had never
done before, and kissed him on the cheek.
"Harry - thanks," George muttered, while Fred nodded fer-vently at
his side.
Harry winked at them, turned to Uncle Vernon, and followed him silently
from the station. There was no point worrying yet, he told himself,
as he got into the back of the Dursleys' car.
As Hagrid had said, what would come, would come ... and he would have
to meet it when it did.
THE END